Hermetic Museum
Hermetic Museum
Hermetic Museum
The
Hermetic Museum
Restored and Enlarged;
Most Faithfully Instructing All Disciples of the Sopho-Spagyric Art How That Greatest and Truest Medicine
of
Now First Done Into English From The Latin Original Published at
Frankfort in the Year 1678
Note: not all of the items in this huge anthology of alchemical writings are
available. The section numbering has been retained, however.
Volume 1
I. The Golden Tract
II.
III. The Sophic Hydrolith (part 1)
The Sophic Hydrolith (part 2)
The Sophic Hydrolith (part 3)
The Sophic Hydrolith (part 4)
The Sophic Hydrolith (part 5)
IV. The Remonstration of Nature
V.
VI. The Only True Way
VII. The Glory of the World (part 1)
The Glory of the World (part 2)
The Glory of the World (part 3)
The Glory of the World (part 4)
VIII.A Tract of Great Price
IX. ...Concerning the Philosophical Stone
Volume 2
I.
II. The Testament of Cremer
III.
IV. ...Concerning the Secrets of Alchemy
V. An Open Entrance to the Closed Palace of the King
VI.
VII. The Three Treatises of Philalethes (part 1)
VIII. The Three Treatises of Philalethes (part 2)
IX. The Three Treatises of Philalethes (part 3)
X.
XI.
Index
While the treatises now translated are for the most part anonymous, as befits
veiled masters, the literary reader will remember the name of John de Meung
connects the allegorical "Romance of the Rose" with the parables of Alchemy;
Flamel will be familiar to all Hermetic students as the most celebrated of the
French adepts; the saintly name of Basil Valentine, investigator of the properties
of antimony, will not even now be unhonoured by the chemist; Eireneaus
Philalethes, equally revered and unknown by all devout Spagyrites, is supposed to
have been the most lucid of hierorphants, and the "Open Entrance" to be the
clearest of all his works. Helevetius was an illustrious chemist, and Michael Maier
It should be understood that the writer of this brief note must not be accredited
with the translation which it seeks to introduce. That is the work of a gentleman
who is said to have had a life-long acquaintance with alchemical literature; it has
been subjected to a searching revision at the hands of the present editor, who may
himself be permitted to claim some experience in Hermetic antiquities; the
version as it stands does not uncreditably represent both the spirit and the sense
of the original without the original's prolixity. While affording to the modern
student of secret doctrines an unique opportunity for acquiring in English a
collection of alchemical writers, ths edition of the HERMETIC MUSEUM also claims
consideration at the hands of the historian as a contribution of real value to the
early history of chemistry.
Index
[Anonymous]
It would be unjust to double, most gentle reader, that of all the arts invented for
the use of life by the reason of man, that of Alchemy is the most noble and
glorious. For all philosophers exclaim, as it were, with one voice, albeit in many
languages, that this art is not only true, but (after the Divine Law by which our
souls are saved) the best and most magnificent gift imposed on man by God; and
that it should therefore be invesigated with all zeal and with the greatest pains.
But as good wine needs no praise, so neither does this art need a herald; for its
truth is undoubted, and its utility in human life universally acknowledged, and
shewn forth, not only in the Art of Medicine, in Pharmacy, and many other
sciences, but especially in the Art of Transmuting Metals, is so clearly and
perspicuously demonstrated, that it in no way requires to be adorned by the
splendour of oratory, or tricked out with the device of language. I will not enlarge
upon the blessing which the elaboration of minerals and metals has bestowed on
our race. I merely point it out, but refrain from discussing it at length. Different
men devote themselves to the study of this science from different motives. The
philosopher is impelled by the love of truth, and the thirst after wisdom. He
delights in knowledge for its own sake. He welcomes every elegant and copious
treatise on the marvels of Nature, to the glory of Almighty God. This is a
sufficiently generous reward for a philosopher. He has it at his command the most
effectual means of becoming rich, if he would only use them. But he is fired by the
love of philosophy, and does not care for the mocking grandeur of fortune. So
thought the Sages of the Saracens, Egyptians, Arabs, and Persians; for when they
were oppressed by tyrants, and violently driven into exile, they protected and
supported themselves by means of their Art, and, though protected and supported
themselves by means of their Art, and, through their knowledge of the
transmutation of metals, they had at their command, not only sufficient to live
upon, but all the comforts and pomp of life, and thus practically demonstrated
that they could obtain all that gold and silver could give. Concerning this true
transmutation of metals, which is accomplished only by the Elixer or Stone of the
Philosophers, we here propose to speak. This art is set forth in a series of treatises
by different authors, which appeared several years ago, and, like the present
volume, was entitled "A Museum of Hermes." But many writers having discussed the
subject, and treated it from various points of view (so that one writes more clearly
than the other, and each throws light on the other's meaning), some of my friends,
who are adepts in this Art, urged me to add to the former collection certain
treatises supplementary of those already given. For though that former collection
contained the most select writings on the subject, yet is was not as complete as it
might have been, nor was it calculated to furnish to the reader in full measure the
eagerly expected fruit of his study. To this wish of my friends I have all the more
readily submitted, because its fulfilment must redound to the advantage of the
student. I have, therefore, enlarged the collection with several most select
treatises, and caused it to be adorned with many engravings. I was most strongly
impelled to undertake this task by the consideration, viz., that thorugh fraudulent
machinations of greedy imposters many false, so-called chemical treatises have
been put forward, in which there is not a single spark of truth, and that very many
have been, and still are being deceived by them. These dupes, by reading this
book, in which the Magistry of the Stone is most clearly and plainly set forth, and
into which no error or forgery has been admitted, will be secured against the
imposture of that wicked and mercenary band who delight in fraud. For in this
book all errors are shewn up and dispelled. For this reason I confidently offer this
volume to the sons of knowledge, in order that while they may think upon and
investigate the secret workings of Nature, they may obtain from it nothing but the
truth, and gain a clear insight into the very nature of things. In this alone consists
the perfection of the entire most Holy Art of Philosophy. Only let them go forward
along the Royal Road which Nature prescribes in all her operations. As to the rest, I
heartily bet the friends of this Art to give a kindly reception to the present
volume, and when, through the Will of God, by constant labour, they have put
ashore in the desired haven of philosophy, after the nature of philosophers to
exclude all that are unworthy from the knowledge thereof, and, being mindful of
charity towards their needy neighbor in the fear of God (without any vain
ostentation), to sing eternal praises to the Good and Thrice Great God for this
Wonderful and Divine Gift (without any abuse thereof) in a silent and devoutly
joyful heart.
Index Next
Worthy reader, and true enquirer into the secrets of nature, marvel not that in the
old age of this world, when it seems to have one foot already in the grave, I have
determined to write this tract, although all libraries ale already full of books on
this subject -- of which, however, the greater part are false, and wear merely the
rouge and powder of philosophy. I have written it not for my own pleasure, but for
your advantage, that, by pointing to the foundation of truth, I might lead you back
from the pathless wilderness into the right way -- which is certainly for your own
interest. As far as I am concerned, I have long known all that I seek to know in
regard to this matter, and have no need of many books, seeing that during the last
twenty-two years I have read and re-read all the works that fell into my hands --
including numerous manuscripts, as well as many printed volumes.
In this my tract you will find the subject set forth, and the true solution given, not
only theoretically, but also from a practical and allegorical point of view, with a
clearness and lucidity such as I believe to be almost unparalleled in any previous
philosophical treatise. In quoting, I have always been careful to give the exact
reference, so that you may look out the passage for yourself, and by diligently
considering it, sharpen your understanding. I could more easily have composed this
treatise, and made myself known to the Brethren of the Golden Cross, if I had left
out those references; but for your sake I decided otherwise. Do not wonder that I
conceal my name, and refuse to appear to you face to face. I have come forward,
not for the sake of any paltry glory, or of worldly praise, but to do you good.
Moreover, my teachers, even the true philosophers, advised me not thus to risk my
life for the sake of obtaining a high place in the world's esteem, to expose myself
to greedy robbers or to give occasion for many crimes by the prostitution of this
profound secret. No doubt the gentle reader has learned by the works of
Sendivogius that whenever he shewed himself openly to the powerful, he went in
constant fear of his life. Experience teaches that many philosophers who gave no
thought to their personal safety, have been killed and deprived of their tincture by
greedy and powerful robbers; and it stands to reason that any one going about
with a great treasure in his hand, must fall a prey to brigands. Sendivogius
concealed his name by an anagram. Thus also a short time ago another philosopher
and Brother of the Golden Cross, whose real name has long been familiar to me,
concealed it beneath an anagram, and made himself known to his friends by an
enigmatical designation. Why then should I place myself at the mercy of this
impure world? Permit me rather, dear friend, to follow the example of the sages,
and leave the rest to the thrice good and great God, who will make my true self
known to you in good time, if it be for the glory of His name, and for your and my
good. Do not be eager to enquire after my name. For even if you should get to
know it, or become personally acquainted with me, you would have to rest
satisfied with the contents of this tract. For I have solemnly promised two
philosophers- Bernard, Count of Trevisan, and Neigens -- that I will not betray to
any one more than has been revealed in this book. Neither be anxious to ask
whether I actually possess this precious treasure. Ask rather whether I have seen
how the world was created; whether I am acquainted with the nature of the
Egyptian darkness; what is the cause of the rainbow; what will be the appearance
of the glorified bodies at the general resurrection; what is the most indelible
colour. Of you that rightly understand this little book, I will enquire whether you
have seen that great salt sea, without any corrosion, raise a sufficiency of the
moisture of all nature to the summits of the highest mountains. Tell me where
there is sulphur out of sulphur, and mercury out of mercury -- or where sulphur
springs from mercury, and again mercury from sulphur. When was there placed
before your eyes the idea of most fervent love, the male and the female
embracing each other so closely that they could no more be torn asunder, but
through unsearchable love became one? If you understand what I am alluding to,
and have performed the experiment with your own hands, and seen it with your
own eyes, I welcome you as fellow partakers of the mystery, and have no dearer
wish than to enjoy your familiar intercourse -- for which reason I have also sent
forth into the world this little tract.
If any one complain of the difficulty of our Art, let him know that in itself it is
perfectly simple, and can present no obstacle to those who love God, and are held
worthy by Him of this knowledge. If any one blame me for setting forth the truths
of this Art too plainly and clearly, so as to render it possible for any one to gain a
knowledge thereof, I answer that I have indeed explained them with sufficient
lucidity for those who are worthy and foreordained of God, but that the unworthy
can derive no profit from them. To some foolish and shallow persons I have several
times expounded this Art in the simplest manner, and even word for word, but
they despised it only, and would not believe me that there is exhibited in our work
a twofold resurrection of the dead. Our Art, its theory as well as its practice, is
altogether a gift of God, Who gives it when and to whom He elects: it is not of him
that wills, or of him that runs, but simply through the mercy of God. Though I had
diligently studied this Art for 17 or 18 years, yet I had, after all, to wait for God's
own time, and accept it as a free gift. No one need doubt the truth or certainty of
this Art. It is as true and certain, and as surely ordained by God in nature, as it is
that the sun shines at noontide, and the moon shews her soft splendour at night.
But I must conclude this preface, and gird myself for writing the tract itself. But
ye, beloved Brethren of the Golden Cross, who are about to learn how to enjoy and
use this most precious gift of God in secret, do not remain unknown to me, and if
ye know me not, be sure that the faithful will be approved and their faith become
known through the Cross, while security and pleasure overshadow it. God be with
us, Amen!
ANCIENT as well as modern philosophers, most beloved reader, and devoted seeker
after true wisdom, when through the grace of God they had reached the goal of
their desires, have endeavoured to make their discovery known to their fellow
inquirers in all parts of the world -- not only because they wished to inform them
that the thrice great and good God had enlightened their minds, blessed the
labours of their hands, and shewn to them the greatest and most profound secret
of earthly wisdom (for which benefit all praise, honour, and glory are justly due to
Him) -- but also that they might afford assistance to beginners in the Art, by
which, with God's permission, they too might attain to the knowledge of this most
holy mystery. Such men there have been in all countries. Amongst the Egyptians
Hermes Trismegistus holds the highest place; then come Chaldaeans, Greeks,
Arabs, Italians, Gauls, Englishmen, Dutchmen, Spaniards, Germans, Poles,
Hungarians, Hebrews, and many others. Though the aforementioned Sages wrote
at different times, and in different languages, yet their works exhibit so
marvellous an agreement, that any true philosopher may easily see that all their
hearts had been gladdened by God in the discovery of this stone, and that they all
had performed this work with their own hands. Now, as the truth of their views is
perceived by their agreement, so the disagreement of certain others marks them
as false philosophers. For, not knowing the foundation of this glorious Art, and
making up fanciful theories out of their own heads, they exhibit their ignorance to
all.
The aforesaid agreement exists in regard to the Matter, its solution, its weight,
and the regulation and increase of the fire.
As concerns the Matter, it is one, and contains within itself all that is needed. Out
of it the artist prepares whatever he wants. Its "Birth is in the sand," as the
philosopher Anastratus says in "The Crowd": "Nothing is more precious than the red
sand of the sea; it is the distilled moisture of the Moon joined to the light of the
Sun, and congealed." That only this one substance is required is attested by
Agadmon in the same book. He says: "Know that unless you take my body [sulphur]
without the spirit [mercury] ye will not obtain what ye desire. Cease to think of
many things. Nature is satisfied with one thing, and he who does not know it is
lost."
In the same way Arnold, of Villa Nova, writes in his "Flower of Flowers"; "Our stone
is made out of one thing, and with one thing." To the same effect he says to the
King of Naples: "All that is in our stone is essential to it, nor Does it need any
foreign ingredient. Its nature is one, and it is one thing." And Rosinus says: "Know
that the object of your desire is one thing, out of which all things are made."
Lilium: "You have need only of one thing, which at any stage of our experiment can
be changed into another nature." So Geber says in his "Summary": "Our stone is
one, one medicine, to which we add nothing, from which we take nothing away,
only removing that which is superfluous." Again, Scites in "The Crowd" says: The
essence of this Art is in like manner a certain one thing which is stronger and more
exalted than all other things, and is called the most powerful acid, because it
changes gold into a clear spirit, without which there is neither whiteness, nor
blackness, nor redness. When the spirit is joined to the body it becomes one with
it; and yet again becomes a spirit, and is saturated with the spiritual and
unchangeable tincture, and thus again by combination receives a bodily tincture
which cannot be annihilated. If you place the body without the acid over She fire,
it will be burnt and destroyed." From these words of Scites the reader might
conclude, that not one but two things, namely a body and an acid (as he calls it)
are required, and that a liquid must be combined with a dry thing lest the dry
thing should be consumed by the fire, in order that by the moist thing it may be
preserved from such combustion. To such a conclusion, if rightly accepted, I gladly
subscribe. But from the above mentioned philosophical dicta (however obscurely
worded they may be) it is clearer than day that the substance of our Blessed Stone
is one (although different sages call it by different names), and that Nature has
made it ready to the hand of the adept, having willed this one thing, and no other
thing in all the world, to be the material of the Stone. This Matter lies before the
eyes of all; everybody sees it, touches it, loves it, but knows it not. It is glorious
and vile, precious and of small account, and is found everywhere. Theophrastus
Paracelsus, in his book concerning "The Tincture of Physical Things," calls it the
Red Lion, which is named by many, but known by few. Hermes, in the first chapter
of his Treatise, calls it "Quick Silver coagulated in its innermost chambers." In the
"Rosary of the Philosophers" it goes by the name of Salt. But, to be brief, our
Matter has as many names as there are things in the world; that is why the foolish
know it not. Foolish I call those who, without any previous knowledge of Nature
and her properties, undertake to learn this Art, and come to it (as Arnold says) like
the ass to the crib, not knowing for what they open their mouths. Hence it is well
said by Geber, in the "Sum of Perfection": "He who has no elementary knowledge of
Nature is far from a proper appreciation of this Art." And Rosarius says: "I advise no
one to approach this Art unless he knows the principle and the regimen of Nature:
if he be acquainted with these, little is wanting to him except one thing, nor need
he put himself to a great expense, since the stone is one, the medicine is one, the
vessel one, the rule one, the disposition one." Yet this one substance is so divided
by the operation of Nature, and the skill of the Artist, that it is transmuted into
our White Eagle, nor does the splendour of the sun illuminate more abundantly the
spagyric matter with its beams; or, as Basilius Valentinus hath it, that, "thence is
born a spirit white as snow, and another spirit red as blood, which two spirits are
contained in a third hidden thing." Hence King Aros well says: "Our medicine is
composed out of two things having one essence, namely, through the mercurial
union of a solid and a liquid, a spiritual and a corporeal, a cold and a moist, a
warm and a dry, and in no other way can it be made." And Richard the Englishman
says: "The stone is one, the medicine one, which, however, according to the
philosophers is called Rebis (Two-thing), being composed of two things, namely a
body and spirit [red or white]. But over this many foolish persons have gone astray,
explaining it in divers ways." Rebis is two things, and these two things are one
thing, namely, water joined to a body, by which the body is dissolved into a spirit,
that is, mineral water, out of which it was first made; and this body and spirit
make up one mineral water, which is called Elixir, that is to say, ferment; for then
water and spirit are one thing, of which is composed a tincture and medicine for
purging all bodies. And thus, according to the philosophers, we have the nature of
sulphur and mercury above ground, while underground they become gold and
silver. Bernard, Count of Trevisan and the March, says: "Our work is performed by
means of one root, and two crude mercurial substances, drawn and extracted from
a mineral, pure and clear, being conjoined by the heat of friendship, as this
matter requires, and carefully cooked until the two things become one thing," &c.
Basilius Valentinus (Lib. Nat. et Supernat., c. 4) says: "I will make this known to
thee in all truth for the love of God], that the root of philosophic sulphur, which is
a heavenly spirit, is united in the same material with the root of the spiritual and
supernatural mercury, and the principle of spiritual salt -- out of which is made the
Stone, and not out of several things. That universal thing, the greatest treasure of
earthly wisdom, is one thing, and the principles of three things are found in one,
which has power to change all metals into one. The three things are the true spirit
of mercury, and the soul of sulphur, united to spiritual salt, and dwelling in one
body; they are dragon and eagle, king and lion, spirit and body, etc."
In this way our prepared material is also called male and female, active and
passive. So Zimon says, in "The Crowd" : "Know that the secret of the work consists
in male and female, i.e., an active and a passive principle. In lead is found the
male, in orpiment the female. The male rejoices when the female is brought to it,
and the female receives from the male a tinging seed, and is coloured thereby."
And Diomedes says: "Join the male child of the 'red servant' to the fragrant spouse,
and they will produce the object of our Art. But you must not introduce any
foreign matter, neither dust, nor any other thing. The conception will then be
perfect, and a true son will be born. Oh, how precious is the nature of the 'red
servant,' without whom nothing can be effected !" Others call it quicksilver, or
mercury, and sulphur, or fire, as Roger Bacon says, in the third chapter of his
"Mirror" : "Out of sulphur and mercury are all metals, and nothing adheres to them,
neither is joined to them, or transmutes them, but what is of them. And thus we
must accept mercury and sulphur as the matter of the stone." So also Menabadus
says: "He who joins quicksilver to the body of magnesia, and the woman to the
man, extracts the secret essence by which bodies are coloured." Lullius in his
"Codicil" says : "The property of our mercury is to be coagulated by its sulphur".
And, in the Practice of his Testament: "The silver is a flowing moisture, floating
above and preserving the whole from combustion."
Others use the names, body, spirit, and soul. Thus Arnold, in his "Flower of
Flowers," says: "The Sages have affirmed that our Stone is composed of body, soul,
and spirit, and they have spoken truly. For the imperfect part they have compared
to a body, because it is weak. The water they have called spirit, and truly,
because it is spirit. The ferment they have termed soul, because it gives life to the
imperfect body (which before was dead), and makes its form more beautiful."
Again, he says: "A spirit is never joined to a body but by the interposition of a soul.
For the soul is the medium between body and spirit, joining them together."
Morienus says: "The soul quickly enters its own body -- but if you tried to join it to
a foreign body, you would labour in vain." And Lilium says: "Body, soul, and spirit
make up one thing, which has all in itself, and to which nothing is added."
But why should we mention and explain all the names by which our Matter is
designated? We will be content with the foregoing, seeing that they are the most
common and the most germane to our purpose. In the following pages, after
endeavouring to find where our substance lies hid, and where it may be obtained,
we will say some words about the mode of its dis solution, that being after all the
principal object of our inquiry. And first, as concerns the search after our Matter,
we should remember that in the beginning, when there was nothing but Himself,
God, who is infinite in wisdom, created two classes of things, namely, those that
are in heaven, and those that are under heaven. The heavenly things (about which
we need not here speak at length) are the heavens themselves, and the dwellers in
heaven The things that are under the heavens were created out of four elements,
and are commonly divided into three classes. Those that live and feel hold the first
place, and are called animals. The second class are the plants, that grow out of
the earth, but do Dot feel. The third class, that of the minerals, has its origin
underground. These three classes include all that (beneath the moon) has been
created out of the elements. They can never become more or less, and God has
bound each thing to its own genus and species, so that it cannot change from one
genus to another. If any one tried to make a man or a tree out of a stone, or a
monkey or lead out of a plant, or an animal or a plant out of lead, he would be
prevented from doing so by the eternal order of the Great King. If such a thing
were possible, all classes of natural objects could be changed into one. But,
because such a change would put an end to the world, the Ruler of the Universe
does not permit it. Nay, what is more, He not only restricted everything to its own
kind, but gave each created thing its own seed, by which it might be propagated
after its own manner -- always remaining in its own class, and not overstepping the
bounds of some other species. If any one wished to change a man into a horse, an
apple into a lettuce, a diamond or any other jewel into gold, he would make an
enormous mistake. For such an attempt would be against the nature of sublunar
things. And as it was in the beginning so it shall be in the end, when the Almighty,
who in the beginning said "Let it be," shall say "Let it perish." But among those
things which have a common substance, seed, and elementary composition, it is
not difficult to accomplish an amelioration and improvement, by the purification
of their matter. So we may see a man of a clear and subtle mind attain to a higher
degree of human excellence than others who are less gifted. This difference arises
from the superior purity and subtlety of his spiritual substance, which again has its
origin in a rectified and well constituted body. Thus also we see one horse excel
the strength and speed of another; and it is the same with all kinds of living
beings. A like rule holds good to an even greater degree in regard to plants and
trees -- with trees, by transplanting, grafting, and kindred methods well familiar
to gardeners; while as to other vegetable natures, we are taught by daily
experience how plants and flowers of the same kind differ from each other in
glory, in beauty, in fragrance, and savour. Of this cloves and tulips afford a striking
instance. Into how many different species have these flowers been developed; and
even these new developments are being made more beautiful from day to day, and
it is universally admitted that never were there such fine and fragrant flowers
before. What am I to say about metals which have a common substance, namely,
quicksilver, digested and consolidated by the power of sulphur ? Concerning this
common substance, Richard the Englishman has the following words: "Nature has
elaborated all kinds of fusible things by a natural process out of mercury, and the
substance of its sulphur, because it is the property of quicksilver to be
consolidated by steam, as by the heat of white and red sulphur which does not
burn."
The same view is expressed by Arnold (pt. I., cp. ii.): "Quicksilver is the
elementary form of all things -fusible; for all things fusible, when melted, are
changed into it, and it mingles with them because it is of the same substance with
them. Such bodies differ from quicksilver in their composition only so far as itself
is or is not free from the foreign matter of impure sulphur." Similarly Rosinus (Ad
Saratantam) says: "The substance of all metals in the heart of the earth is
solidified and imperfect quicksilver; for by the quickening heat of sulphur different
metals (according to the different varieties of sulphur) are generated in the earth;
their original substance is one and the same, and is modified only by a greater or
smaller external influence." Hence we see daily how busily Nature is occupied in
bringing them to mortification and perfection. Now the perfection of metals, and
the final intention of Nature in regard to them, is gold. For all metals shew that
Nature has done something for them towards ultimate perfection, no metal is so
base as not to contain a single grain of gold or silver Nature would always change
quicksilver that has within itself its own sulphur into gold, if she were not often
hindered by some outward impediment, viz., impure, foetid, and combustible
sulphur. In most cases gold is dug out pure, clear, free from dross, and unmixed
with any other metals. But most frequently a large quantity of foreign sulphur
mingles with the quicksilver, and thus prevents its perfect development; and,
according to the variety of that sulphur, different kinds of metals are generated,
as Aristotle says (4. Meteor.): "If the quicksilver be of a good substance but the
sulphur impure and combustible, it changes the quicksilver into brass. If the
quicksilver be stony, impure, and earthy, and the sulphur not pure, it becomes
iron. Tin seems to have good and pure quicksilver; but the sulphur is bad and not
well mixed. Lead has gross, bad, and ill-smelling quicksilver, and is thus not
properly coagulated."
That retarding, combustible, and foetid sulphur is not the true fire that fashions
metals; but quicksilver has its own sulphur in itself, which is sufficient for the
purpose of fashioning it, as Bernard, Count of Trevisan, says: "Some believe that in
the generation of metals, a sulphuric substance is introduced from without; but,
on the contrary, it is clear that in the working of Nature sulphur is already
enclosed in the mercury. Yet it has no power in it except through the moving heat,
by which the said sulphur is changed, and with it two other qualities of the
mercury. In this way, then, Nature generates by means of this sulphur the
different kinds of metals in the veins of the earth, according to the diversity of
degrees and alterations." For in metals, according to Arnold (pt. I., cp. iii.), "there
is a two-fold superfluity: one that is enclosed in the innermost nature of the
quicksilver, and got there at the first mingling of the metal; the other does not
belong to the essence of it, is external to it, and corruptible. To remove the
former is a difficult task; the latter may be removed without any difficulty. The
combustible sulphur is taken away by being subjected to the action of fire, or is
destroyed by foreign bodies; but the other, which is in the quicksilver, is preserved
by it from combustion." But again, that inward sulphur which fashions the
quicksilver belonging to it, and matures it towards perfection, is either pure or
impure, combustible or incombustible. Impure sulphur hinders the digestion of the
quicksilver, which cannot be transformed into gold until that which does not
belong to it has been entirely separated from it; but the pure, incombustible,
fixed sulphur remains with it, and then at length it passes either into gold or
silver, according as the sulphur is either white or red. This internal sulphur is
nothing but mature mercury, and the most advanced part of the quicksilver. and
for this reason the quicksilver receives it so kindly, as being of its own essence,
while it rejects the other which is foreign to it. So Richard the Englishman says, in
his ninth chapter: "The more simple the sulphur is, the more readily does it
combine with simple and pure mercury, and the more intimately they combine the
more precious is the metal which is produced. "But such sulphur, says Avicenna, "is
not found on earth, except in so far as it exists in metallic bodies through the
action of the sun and moon. In the sun it exists in a perfect state, because there it
is better digested and decocted." According to Richard, in his twelfth chapter, the
red sulphur of the philosophers exists in the sun on account of its greater
digestion, and the white sulphur in the moon on account of its inferior digestion."
Since, then, the substance of the metals is one and common to all, and since this
substance is (either at once, or after laying aside in course of time the foreign and
evil sulphur of the baser metals by a process of gradual digestion) changed by the
virtue of its own indwelling sulphur into GOLD. which is the goal of all the metals,
and the true intention of Nature -- we are obliged to admit, and freely confess
that in the mineral kingdom, as well as in the vegetable and animal kingdoms,
Nature seeks and demands a gradual attainment of perfection, and a gradual
approximation to the highest standard of purity and excellence.
natural order, is naturally developed within its own limits, bearing fruit after its
own kind, and not within some other essentially different order: everything in
which seed is sown must correspond to its own seed." And Basil. Valentinus says:
"Consider and know, my friend, that you must not select an animal soul for this
your purpose. For flesh and blood were given by the Creator to animals, and are
proper to animals, and from them animals are formed and brought forth." For this
reason I wonder at those who wish to be regarded as great adepts, and yet look for
the substance of the stone in female menstruums, the seminal fluid, eggs, hairs,
urine, and similar things, and are not ashamed to fill so many volumes with their
vain and worthless recipes, and to deceive the ignorant with such foolish, futile,
and useless speculations. Roger, in his "Mirror" (cp. iii.), expresses his amazement
at the folly of these men when he exclaims: "How strange that any sane person
should look for what he wants in the animal and vegetable worlds, which have
nothing whatever to do with the object of his search, while the mineral world is
quite as ready to his hand. It is incredible that any philosopher should establish his
art on such a remote foundation, except indeed by way of allegory." "For our Stone
(says Basil) is not made of combustible things. Verily that Stone and the matter
thereof are safe from all such violence, therefore cease to seek it in the animal
kingdom; for Nature herself could not find it there." Again, whoever hopes to find
it in the vegetable world, as, for instance, in trees, herbs, flowers, is quite as
much mistaken as he who would change an animal into a stone. Plants and trees,
with all that they produce, may be consumed by fire, and leave nothing behind but
the dust out of which they are made, and the salt which at the first creation of
their species they received from Nature. Let no one be misled by the confident
assertions of those who pretend that they can produce the Philosopher's Stone out
of wheat, or out of wine. These persons fancy they understand the meaning of a
certain passage in the writings of Raymond Lullius, but they exhibit the depth of
their folly by the assumption of profound wisdom, and thus only deceive
themselves and others. I do not deny that some excellent solvents, indispensable
both to the physician and to the chemist, are obtained from these sources; but I do
most positively deny that the Philosopher's Stone can be prepared, or its seed
elicited, from them, since the Creator has ordained that nothing should overstep
the bounds of the natural order to which it was originally assigned. Hence every
true disciple of wisdom may gather that the substance of the Stone is to be
obtained neither in the animal nor in the vegetable world, seeing that both are
combustible. We must therefore look for it among incombustible things, that is to
say, in the mineral world, and thence only can we prepare it. Since, then, the
Stone of the Wise is mineral, and there are different kinds of minerals, as stones
(including clay and the different varieties of earth), salts, general minerals, and
metals, we must further ask, in which of all these it is contained. We may at once
eliminate stones, because they contain no fusible mercury and cannot be melted,
dissolved, or divided into their component parts on account of the large quantity
of foreign sulphur and earthly substance which cleave to them.
Nor will the wise investigator of Nature's secrets expect to find the substance of
the Blessed Stone in salts, alums, or similar minerals. In them he meets with a
sharp, corroding, destructive spirit, but mercury and sulphur, as understood by
philosophers, he would vainly look for. General minerals, like magnesia, bismuth,
antimony, etc., can never under any circumstances become metals; how, then,
can the substance of this Stone, which is the essential perfection of all metals and
minerals, be obtained from them? Moreover, they have nothing in common with
metals, but do burn corrode, and destroy them: -- how then can they be the means
of their improvement?
Hear what Richard the Englishman has to say on this head (cp. x.) : "The lesser
minerals cannot become metals -- First, because they were not generated out of
the elementary substance of metals, which is quicksilver. But seeing that their
generation differs from the generation of metals in form, and substance, and
composition, they can never become metals, because things belonging to the same
species have the same elementary substance, and spring from the same seed. But
the lesser minerals are not generated from mercury, as we learn from Aristotle and
Avicenna. If they were to become metals, they would have to change into the
elementary substance of metals. And, since such a transformation is beyond the
power of chemistry, they can never become metals; that is to say, they can never
be the substance of the Stone. Second, since the lesser minerals cannot be come
the elementary substance of metals, which is mercury, they can never reach the
middle and the end of the same development, namely, metals and the tincture.
But because the properties of the lesser minerals are foreign to those of the
metals, although they may have some of the virtues of minerals, yet on the whole
they are less excellent and are liable to be injured by fire. Therefore the nature of
metals delights not in them, but repels them, while it receives that which is suited
to it. For this reason they are foolish who bring in so many foreign speculations for
the purpose of imposing upon their hearers; for the things they put forward are
altogether unlike metals and can never receive nor impart their nature."
The student must not suffer himself to be misled by the language occasionally
employed with regard to salts by the philosophers whom we have quoted, as, for
instance, when it is said, in the mystic language of our Sages, "He who works
without salt will never raise dead bodies"; or, again, when he reads in the book of
Soliloquies," He who works without salt draws a bow without a string." For you
must know that these sayings refer to a very different kind of salt from the
common mineral. This you may see from the following passage of the "Rosary of
the Philosophers": "The salt of metals is the Philosopher's Stone; for our Stone is
water congealed in gold and silver; it is hostile to fire and may be dissolved into
the water of which it is composed after its kind." And that the "congealed water"
of the Sages does not mean ordinary water may be gathered from the following
words of Geber (lib. forn., cp. xix.): "Seek to resolve the sun and the moon into
their dry water, which the vulgar call mercury." The Sages have also described
their earth under the name of salt -- e.g., in the "Sounding of the Trumpet," where
it is said: "That which is left at the bottom of the distilling vessel is our salt -- that
is to say, our earth." And in the "Allegories of the Wise" one bursts forth into these
words: "Mark well that those bodies which flow forth from our bodies are salts and
alums." At times they call the medicine itself "Salt," as in the following passage of
the "Scale" : "The virtue of the second water is to exalt earth into its own mineral
salt, as though assimilating it by its own strength." And Arnold, in his work
concerning the "Preservation of Youth," (lib. iii.) says: "This prepared salt has great
virtue in preserving youth. The Sages have compared it to the natural heat of
healthy youth. The Stone itself has sometimes been called by the wise the Animal
Stone, sometimes the Mineral Secret, on account this similitude; sometimes the
Everlasting Remedy, or the Water of Life. The whole preparation may be reduced
to the purest drinking water, like other things that have the same properties."
From the aforesaid it clearly appears that we are forbidden both by the teaching
of the Sages and by the nature of the thing to suppose that the Stone can be made
out of the lesser minerals.
We should next enquire more carefully whether the matter of our Stone may be
obtained from the intermediate minerals -- like bismuth, antimony, magnesia, and
so on. They are certainly often mentioned in this connection by the Sages. Thus
Senior says, in a certain passage: "If yellow orpiment has not the power of
coagulating mercury our Magistery can never attain its goal." Thomas de Aquinas
recommends us to take "our antimony or black earth," while Parmenides, in "The
Crowd," says: "Take quicksilver and coagulate it in the body of magnesia, or
corruptible sulphur." But in all such passages these terms are used metaphorically;
it is not meant that the Great Stone can ever be made out of such substances. The
orpiment and magnesia of the Sages are not the common minerals, but the
substance which in other passages is called the Agent, the Lion, the King, Sulphur,
and by many other names. They call it orpiment because it gives a deeper and
more brilliant colouring to gold; magnesia because of the excellence and greatness
of that which is gained from it; antimony, with Thomas Aquinas, on account of the
brilliant blackness which it assumes after solution. As a matter of fact, when the
Stone has assumed its ebony colour they are in the habit of comparing it to all
black things.
But it may be said that some of these intermediate minerals are, as a matter of
fact, composed of mercury and sulphur, and may become metals, e.g., magnesia
unites with lead and tin, and antimony not only mingles with metals, but also
produces a lead not very different from natural lead. Moreover, it is asserted that
many persons of high and low degree have actually seen gold made of these
minerals. It is further said that as these minerals are composed of mercury and
sulphur (and can by chemical means be reduced to them), and are therefore of a
common origin with the metals, the substance of the Stone may also be elicited
from them. But, in the first place, we must draw a distinction between the various
minerals of this class, namely those which contain mercury, and those which
hardly ever contain it. Those that are full of mercury are of greater account,
since, by means of our Medicine, their mercury may be transformed into gold and
silver; and, their nature being partly metallic, they may well be called half metals.
But the rest, which have no mercury, are of no use for our purpose. But forasmuch
as, on account of the gross and combustible sulphur which is in them, even the
first are very far indeed from the metallic goal, so they cannot be taken for the
substance of our Stone, which should be pure and perfect mercury combined with
pure, subtle, and incombustible sulphur. That they are most impure and deeply
infected with the grossness of their sulphur, may be easily seen by the test of a
chemical experiment. One of them (zinetum) might, by reason of its weight and
brilliance, be taken at first sight for pure mercury by the careless; but when
brought to the test of fire it is consumed with a smoke, like that of sulphur.
Bismuth, on the other hand, is not even fusible by fire -- such is its earthy
grossness and impurity. Antimony, again, can be purged by a chemical process, and
reduced to a very white and beautiful regulus. As we gaze upon it in this purified
state, it seems difficult to believe that it may not be transformed into something
glorious. Hence it is natural that some self-conceited people should have supposed
that the Stone may be prepared from it. But however much antimony is purged of
its blackness, it still retains its grossness, hardness, and sulphuric properties; it can
never become malleable (like the metals), and therefore, in spite of its numerous
affinities, cannot be regarded as a metal. Moreover, it has gross and impure
mercury; and its sulphur is combustible. Ye, then, who would be great
philosophers and do deceive many with your voluminous writings, in which you put
this mineral forward as the essence of the universal remedy -- I ask you again and
again to reconsider your opinion, and to mark the saying of Arnold, that "it is
foolish to seek in a thing that which it does not contain." He also says, in his
Commentary on "The Crowd" : "The philosopher's stone is a pure substance." Again,
Lullius in his "Last Testament," observes: "Our tincture is nothing but pure fire."
There is an expression to the same effect in his "Vade Mecum" : "It is a subtle spirit
which tinges bodies and cleanses them of their leprous infirmities." But this
mineral (like all the rest, without a single exception) is so gross and impure that it
can only be cleansed by the mediation of our tincture. Therefore, the substance of
our Great Stone cannot be elicited from it, since (Richard, cp. I.) nothing can be
obtained from a body which does not exist therein. What shall we say of vitriol,
which misleads many by its wonderful qualities, especially as some part of it
changes into copper, and itself has the power of transforming if on into copper? As
a matter of fact, it is the elementary substance of copper, and when this mineral
vapour (or aeriform mercury) finds in the mineral veins of the earth a place where
its bitter, acid, salt, and venereal sulphur lies hid, it immediately amalgamates
with it into a metal. But since the quantity of the aforesaid sulphur greatly
exceeds that of the mercury, when the pure is separated from the impure, and the
combustible from the incombustible by the segregating office of Nature, the
mercury itself is changed into a greenish inferior substance. When common sulphur
is added to copper, and the whole brought in contact with fire (for art can do by
intense heat in a few moments what it takes the gentle heat of Nature a long time
to accomplish) it corrodes the copper, and changes it into vitriol, and, in
proportion to the quantity of the sulphur, the vitriol assumes a richer or fainter
colour; whence it comes that some vitriol contains more copper and some less. In
iron, too, there is gross sulphur; hence it is corroded by vitriol which seeks its
mercury (the mercury of iron being very like that of vitriol), and (the mercury
being joined to the sulphur) the iron becomes pure copper.
It should be carefully noticed that the acid spirit of vitriol is generated from
sulphur; for the smell of sulphur is perceived in the spirit of vitriol, and the spirit
of sulphur, like the spirit of vitriol, has power to change into vitriol. Since, then,
this corrosive sulphur is hid in vitriol, and since it contains so small a quantity of
impure mercury, we may be sure that it cannot be the object of our search. In this
we agree with Alphidius, who says: "Take heed, my son, and eschew dead bodies,
and stones; in these things there is no true way of procedure, for their life
preserves not, but destroys. Such are salts, orpiments, arsenic, magnesia, bismuth,
tutty, and the like." And Arnold (Flos Flor.) says: "The reason of these mistakes is
that the four spirits, viz., orpiment, salt of ammonia, mercury, and sulphur, are
not the seed of perfect or imperfect metals (except, of course, mercury and
sulphur by themselves)."
But from these last words of Arnold it might be inferred that common mercury and
quicksilver are the substance of the stone, seeing that these are referred to the
four spirits, and that sulphur is supposed to consolidate the mercury. But I answer,
with Richard the Englishman, in his eleventh chapter, that it does not really do so.
For every kind of common sulphur is repugnant to metals, as the Sage says: "Indeed
you must know that sulphur comes forth out of the fatness of the earth, and is
thickened in the minera by gentle heat; when it becomes hard it is called sulphur."
Now there are two kinds of sulphur, the living and the combustible. Quick sulphur
is the active principle of metals, and, when purged from all foreign matter, is the
Matter of our Stone. But the common combustible variety is not the Matter of
metals or of our Stone; rather, it is injurous to them. Common, combustible
sulphur -- so we are told by Avicenna and Richard the Englishman -- has nothing to
do with our art. However carefully prepared, it still disintegrates and destroys
metals, because it has no affinity with them. When enclosed in metals, it retards
their fusion. This is clearly seen in the case of iron, which contains hard, gross,
and impure sulphur. When this sulphur is burned it is nothing but a dead, earthy,
powdery substance. How then can it impart life to other things? For it has two
principles of decay -- its inflammability and its earthy impurity. The sulphur of the
Sages, on the other hand, is living fire; it is quick, and quickens and matures
lifeless substances. Common sulphur, then, cannot be the substance of the Stone.
But what shall we infer concerning common mercury? The Sages tell us that the
Matter of our Stone is a mercurial substance, and many of its qualities closely
resemble those of vulgar mercury. For it is the elementary substance of all fusible
minerals, as Arnold says (Ros., pt. I., Cp. ii.): "Since all fusible substances, when
melted, are changed into it, and it mingles with them because of its common
nature: they can differ from it only in so far as It contains impure foreign sulphur."
And, again (cp. iv.): "Living mercury is clearly most perfect, and proved in all its
operations, since it saves from combustion and promotes fusion. It is the red
tincture, the sum of perfection, and quick as lightning; nor is it severed from that
with which it has mingled so long as it exists. The same is full of affinity, cleaving
faithfully, and is the medium by which tinctures are united, for it mingles most
intimately with them, penetrating naturally into their inmost part, for it is of the
same nature. We imitate Nature exactly, who in her minera hath no other matter
whereon she works except a pure mercurial form. It is the only thing that
overcomes fire, and is not overcome by it, but delights in its amicable warmth."
Again, Bernard says "In this mercury is enclosed essential sulphur, which the fire
cannot touch; and it accomplishes our object without any other substance than
that of pure mercury." Seeing, then, that mercury has such excellent properties, it
must surely be the substance of our Stone? True; but as there are two kinds of
sulphur, so there are two kinds of mercury, the common mercury and the mercury
of the Sages. Common mercury is gross and crude; nor does it stand the test of fire
like our mercury, but is dissipated in the form of smoke, even by gentle heat.
Hence the Sages have laid down this rule: "Our mercury is not the mercury of the
vulgar herd." So Lullius says (Clav. cp. I.) : "Common quicksilver, however carefully
prepared, can never become the quicksilver of the Sages, for common quicksilver
can only stand the test of fire by the aid of some other dry and more highly
digested quicksilver." But most students of this art have spoken largely about the
sublimation of common mercury, and have persisted in seeking the treasure of
earthly wisdom where it cannot be found, because Nature has not placed it there.
And, truly, the working even of common mercury is so wonderful that it has misled
some who supposed themselves to be adepts in this art. The following is a case in
point. I knew a man who succeeded in giving to his amalgam an orange colour, but
he could not get it any nearer to the colour of gold. At last this clever chemist
determined to increase the heat of the furnace, thinking that this would have the
desired effect of more intimately combining the various ingredients. But alas ! the
alembic burst, the gold was hurled into the fire, and almost changed from its
nature by the still volatile mercury. Hence it appears that the mercury (which is its
body) so strongly affected the gold in its minutest particles as to reduce it to a
tincture, although several colours were obtained by the action of the heat on the
melted mass. If that good man had taken to heart Arnold's words in the "Flower of
Flowers," he would never have made that experiment. For the said Arnold makes
reference to those who adopt this method in the following terms: "They knew that
mercury is the elementary principle of the metals, and that they are produced
through its digestion by the heat of sulphur; they therefore sublimed mercury by
itself, then fixed and consolidated it, again melted it and did again coagulate it:
but when they came to examine the alembic, they found no gold, etc." Therefore
we cannot believe that common quicksilver is the substance of the Stone. At the
same time I do not deny that it is indispensable both to the philosophical chymist
We have carefully sought the substance of our stone in the animal and vegetable
world, among stones, lesser, intermediate, and greater minerals, but in vain. We
must now see whether we can find it in the metals, and if so, whether in all or
only in some. It is a well-known fact (to which Roger bears witness, Spec., cp. iii.),
that all metals are generated out of sulphur and quicksilver, and that nothing will
become one with them, or change them, but what originates in themselves; since
a thing can be developed and improved only by that which belongs to its own
nature (Richard, cp. i.).
I need not say that the Great Artist has ordained that throughout the whole of
Nature things should generate and produce only that which is like them, so that,
for instance, a horse can never be the offspring of a man. "As brute animals," says
Basil Valentine, "cannot multiply after their kind by way of generation except by
virtue of their common nature; so you cannot expect to obtain the Blessed Stone,
but out of its own seed, out of which it was made from the beginning. Now to find
the seed you should diligently consider for what purpose you require the Store.
You will at once see that it can be obtained only from the metallic root from which
God has ordained that the metals themselves should be generated. Moreover,
there is a great conformity between the generation of the metals and the Stone.
For in both sulphur and quicksilver (containing that salt which is their quickening
soul) are indispensably required; nor can any useful metal be generated until these
three (making up the metallic substance) have been combined for in the
composition of metals there must be nothing which has not been obtained from a
metallic source." "No external thing says Draco, "which is not derived from these
two [sulphur and mercury] has power to produce or transmute metals. On this
account we must select a metallic substance for the production of the Stone." We
must next briefly enquire whether it is to be found in imperfect metals. Many
imagine that the substance of the white (tincture) may be elicited from tin or
lead, and that of the red out of copper or iron, or both. This idea is doubtless
owing to a misconception of the words of the Sages. For Geber (lib. forn. cp., ix.)
says: "The mass for fermentation we generally gain from the imperfect [base]
bodies." Therefore we lay it down as a general rule that the white paste may be
extracted from Jupiter and Saturn, the red from Venus, Saturn, and Mars. And
Basil. Valentinus says (Lib. de phys. et hyperphys.), that the tincture is prepared
out of a conjunction of Mars and Venus. Again (Triumph. Antimon.), he uses these
words: "After this tincture of the Sun and Moon comes the tincture of Venus and
Mars which two make up the tincture of the Sun, when they have been thoroughly
perfected and condensed. After these come the tinctures of Jupiter and of Saturn
(for the coagulation of mercury) and at last the tincture of mercury itself." But the
searcher of Nature must know that there can be no contradiction of opinion
between Geber or Basil, for it is impossible that the true philosophers should ever
lie, and so these words should be parabolically understood. For no perfection can
be obtained from imperfect metals, either by themselves or mixed, nor can that
which is itself imperfect bring other things to perfection. For the purest substance
of mercury is required for our purpose, as is testified in the "Sounding of the
Trumpet," and by Avicenna, Lullius, and almost all the Sages, who unanimously
affirm that "the purest substance of mercury is selected by us for our work." Now
this highly refined substance of mercury is not found in the base metals, since they
are rendered so gross by their impure and unessential sulphur, that, like leprous
bodies, they can never be thoroughly purged and cleansed, in which process is the
essence of our artifice. Nor do they well stand the test of fire, which is one of the
properties required in our Matter. Let us hear what Geber has to tell us (Summa,
cp. ixiii.) concerning the impurity of imperfect metals, and the properties of
perfect mercury: "Thus," he says, "we happen upon two most wonderful secrets.
The one is that there exists a twofold cause for the destruction of every
[imperfect] metal by fire: namely, (1), the combustible sulphur enclosed in their
interior substance is kindled by fierce heat, and (unimpeded by any excellence in
their mercury) annihilates, and converts into smoke their entire substance; (2), the
outward flame is fed by them, penetrates into their interior, and dissolves them
into smoke, even though they be very solid; (3), their interior is laid bare by
calcination. Now when all these conditions of destruction are found together,
bodies must needs be destroyed; if they are not found together, they are
destroyed somewhat more slowly. The second secret is the excellence which
quicksilver imparts to bodies. For quicksilver (no other condition of decay being
present) does not permit itself to be separated into its elements, but proves its
perfection by preserving its substance intact in the fire. Blessed be God who
created it, and gave it such' a substance and such properties as are not found in all
Nature besides. This is that which overcomes fire, and delights in its amicable
heat. "Here Geber clearly shews that the substance of our Stone cannot exist in
imperfect metals; because things that are impure in themselves do not abide the
fire which might purify them, while our mercury (on account of its purity) is not in
the slightest degree injured by the fire. Thus we perceive that no one imperfect
metal can contain the substance of our Stone. But neither is it to be found in a
mixture of impure metals -- for by mixing they become less pure than they were
before. Moreover we said above that the substance we required was one. This fact
is clearly set forth by Halys (lib. secret., cp. vi.), when he says: "The Stone is One;
nothing else must be added to it: out of one substance the Sages obtain our
remedy. Nothing else must mingle with the Stone itself, or with its substance." And
Morienus says: "This Magistery grows from one original root, which branches out
into several parts, and from which springs one thing." But if base metals cannot be
the substance of the Stone, why do the Sages bid us employ them? I will tell you.
When they speak of impure bodies, they do not mean copper, iron, lead, tin &c.,
but its own body, or its earth -- as Arnold (Flos Flor.) says "Mercury is united to
earth, i.e., to an imperfect substance [or body]. "For though this "earth" is so
perfect and pure that in these respects it would seem to attain the utmost
possibility of Nature, yet in regard to the Stone it is still imperfect and impure. In
this point art leaves Nature behind, since it accomplishes what Nature could not
perform. That this earth before its plenary purgation and regeneration is
imperfect, may be seen from the fact that it cannot yet accomplish more in the
matter of tinging than Nature has given to it, while after its regeneration it is most
powerful. Its grossness is clearly perceived in an actual experiment: for first it is
black and looks like lead or antimony; then it is of a whitish colour, and is called
Jupiter (or tin, or magnesia), and this also before it has attained true whiteness,
but when it has passed the white stage it is called Mars and Venus; after that it
becomes perfect and red. That Basil Valentinus agrees with me, and did not really
hold the opinion which he expressed in some of his writings, is clear from his tract
concerning the Great Stone where (speaking of the Matter of the Stone) he says
that in the Sun all three perfections are found together, whence it derives its
power of resisting the fire, and that the Moon, on account of its fixed mercury,
does not easily yield to the fire, but endures the trial. "That noble paramour
Venus," he continues, "is furnished with an abundance of colour, and the greater
and richer part of her body is full of tincture. The colour is the same which dwells
in the most precious of metals, and on account of its abundance has a reddish
appearance. But its body is leprous, for which reason the tincture cannot remain
fixed in it, but evaporates when the former is destroyed. For when the body
decays the soul cannot remain, but is dissipated and driven off. Its habitation is
destroyed and burnt with fire, and its place knows it no more. In a fixed body it
would without difficulty remain. The fixed ' salt ' gives to brave Mars a hard,
strong, and heavy body; whence the strength of his soul is perceived: for this
warrior is not easily overcome. For his body is hard and difficult to wound."
But let no one conclude from these words of Basilius that that fixed sulphur of
Venus, when united to the spirit of perfect mercury, will become the tincture. We
must again repeat that our substance is not collected from many sources; but, as
Basilius says, it is one universal thing, and is found in, and obtained from one
thing, being the spirit of mercury, the soul of sulphur, and a spiritual salt, united
under one heaven and dwelling in one body. Therefore let us turn our backs upon
the base metals, and turn our minds to the precious metals, taking to heart those
words of Plato (qu. ii.): "Why do you melt and dissolve other bodies with great
labour, when in these [the precious metals] you have what you seek? If you wish to
use the base metals, you must first change them into the substance of perfect
bodies." Therefore, beloved inquirer into the secrets of Nature, leave on one side
all things animal and vegetable, all salts, alums, vitriols, bismuths, magnesias,
antimonies, and all base and impure metals, and seek thy Stone with Arnold de
Vill.nov. ( Pt. 1., cp. vii.): "in Mercury and the Sun for the Sun, and in Mercury and
the Moon for the Moon; since the whole virtue of this art consists in them
alone."For as the source of ignition is fire, so gold is the principle of gold making,"
says Ripley, in his "First Gate." If, therefore, thou wouldest make gold and silver by
the philosopher's art, take for this purpose neither eggs, nor blood, but gold and
silver, which, being subjected to the action of fire naturally, prudently, and not
manually, generate new substances after their own kind, like all things in Nature.
Richard (cp. x.) tells us "to sow gold and silver, that aided by our labour they may
bring forth fruit, through the mediation of Nature: for these two have [and are]
what you seek and nothing else in all the world." And why should I not fix on them
since they contain pure and perfect mercury, with red and white sulphur.
(Richard, cp. xvii.) So Avicenna teaches that, "in all silver is white, as in all gold
there is red, sulphur. No other sulphur like that which exists in these bodies is
found on all the earth. Therefore we cunningly prepare these two bodies, that we
may have sulphur and quicksilver of the same substance as that which generates
gold and silver under the earth. For they are shining bodies, whose rays tinge other
bodies with true whiteness and redness, according to the manner of their own
preparation." "For our Magistery," says, Arnold (Rosar. pt. 1., cp. v.) "aids perfect
bodies, and works upon the imperfect without the admixture of anything else.
&old, then, being the most precious of all the metals, is the red tincture, tinging
and transforming every body. Silver is the white tincture, tinging other bodies with
its perfect whiteness." Let me tell the gentle reader that the metals, that is to
say, gold and silver in their metallic form, are not the Matter of our Stone -- being
in the middle between them and the base metals, as our Matter is in the middle
between the former and our Great Stone. no Bernard says (pt. ii.): "Let them be
silent who affirm that there is any tincture but our own, or any other sulphur than
that which lies hid in magnesia; also those who would extract the quicksilver from
any but the red slave, and who speak of some other water but our own which is
incorruptible and combines with nothing except that which belongs to its own
nature, and moistens [tinges] nothing except that which is one with its own
nature. There is no acid but our own, no other regimen, no other colours. In the
same way, there is no other true solution, sublimation, consolidation,
putrefaction. I therefore advise you to have done with alums, vitriols, salts, black
bodies, borax, aqua fortis, herbs, animals, beasts, and all that proceeds from
them, hairs, blood, urine, human seed, flesh, eggs, and all minerals, and to keep
to the metals. But though the quicksilver required for our Stone is found in metals
only, and in these is the beginning of the work, they are not therefore our Stone,
so long as they retain their metallic form. For one and the same substance cannot
have two forms. How can they be the Stone which holds an intermediate form
between metals and mercury, unless their present form is first destroyed and
removed? Therefore, also, Raymond Lully says in his "Testament" (cp. vi.): "On this
account a good artist takes metals for his media in the work of the magistery, and
especially the Sun and Moon, because in them the substance of the Mercury and
Sulphur is ripened, pure, and well-digested by Nature's own artifice.. The artist
would vainly endeavour to produce this exact proportion out of the natural
elements, if he did not find it ready to his hand in these bodies." And in the
"Codicil" he says: "Without these two, viz., gold and silver, our art would have no
existence since the sulphur they contain has been purified by nature with a
thoroughness such as art would vainly strive to imitate. From these two bodies,
with their prepared sulphur [or prepared arsenic] our Medicine may be elicited,
but without them we can never obtain it." In the preface to his "Key" he says: "I
advise you, my friends, to operate on nothing but the Sun and Moon; but these you
should resolve into their elementary substances, viz., our quicksilver and our
sulphur." In like manner Arnoldus assures us that "from these bodies there is
extracted an exceedingly white and red sulphur; for in these there is a most pure
substance of sulphur, cleansed to the highest degree by Nature's own artifice."
Nicarus, in "The Crowd," says: "I bid you take gold, which you desire to multiply
and renew, and to divide its water into two parts; for that metal falling into that
water will be called the fermenting matter of gold." How can this Sage call his
"water" gold? To assist the student in solving this enigma I must tell him that the
gold of the Sages is not common gold, as also Senior tells us. In "The Crowd" it is
said: "As mercury is the element of all metals, so gold is their ultimate goal; hence
in all metals, pure and impure, there are gold, silver, and mercury. But there is
one true gold which is the essence of all." Thus you see that there is a gold of the
Sages, which, though derived from common gold, is yet very different from it. The
following words occur in the "Rising Dawn" (cp. xvi.) "The philosopher's gold
resembles common gold neither in colour nor in substance. That which is extracted
from it is the red and white tincture." "The philosopher's gold may be bought at a
low price" (Aphidius). "All that is bought at a high price is false. With little gold we
buy much" (Morienus). Moreover, our gold is living gold, and our silver is living
silver, so that they can cause nothing but life and growth. Common gold and silver
are dead. They can effect nothing until they are raised from the dead and
quickened by the Sage. Then they live, and possess in a high degree the power of
propagating and multiplying their race. Concerning the life of our metals that
great philosopher, Sendivogius (who is still living), has the following words: "Let
me advise you not to receive the gold and silver of the vulgar herd, for they are
dead. Take our living metals. Place them in our fire, and there will result a dry
liquid. First, earth will be resolved into water [for thus the Mercury of the Sages is
called]. That water will solve gold and silver, and consume them until only the
tenth part with one part is left. This will be the humid radical of the metals."
It is to be noted that Sages sometimes call their water, as well as their earth, gold.
Hereunto we have already heard the words of Nicarus, and after a like manner we
are told in the "Rosary of the Philosophers: "Our gold and silver are not the gold
and silver of the vulgar. We call gold the water which rises into the air when
exposed to fire. Verily, this gold is not the gold of the vulgar. The vulgar would not
believe of their gold that it could be volatilised on account of its solid nature."
The philosopher's "earth," then, is sometimes designated their gold, as the same
author testifies: "Know that our ore, which is the gold of the philosophers, is their
earth." This "earth" is also called ore, ferment, or tincture; just as the "water" is
called white and flaky "earth". So we read in the "Sounding of the Trumpet" :
"Wherefore Hermes says, "Sow your gold in white, flaky earth which by calcination
has been made glowing, subtle, and volatile." That is to say: Sow gold, i.e., the
soul and quickening virtue, into the white earth, which by preparation has been
made white and pure and freed from all its grossness. Thus natural gold is not the
fermenting matter, but the philosopher's gold is the quickening ferment itself."
Again, in the Seventh Step of the is "Ladder of the Philosophers": "Their earth is
white in which their gold [which is the soul] is sown, and this body is the centre of
knowledge, the concentration thereof, and the habitation of tinctures." Once
more: "Therefore Hercules says: "Solve the body of magnesia which has become
white and like the leaves of the bramble." This is the body; the soul is the essence
which is called the philosopher's gold." (For with water the spirit ascends into the
upper air.) "Mix," says Senior, "gold with gold, that is water [mercury] and ashes."
Again, Hermes says: "Sow gold into the white flaky earth." From these expressions,
however obscurely worded it is clear that our gold is not common gold.
But why do the philosophers call their gold now "water," and now "earth"? Do they
not contradict themselves, or each other? No; our Sages, in expounding the truth,
veil it under obscure and allegorical expressions, but nevertheless agree with each
other so marvellously that they all seem to speak, as it were, with one mouth.
They do not confound one thing with another, nor do they wish to lead the earnest
enquirer astray. They express themselves in mystic phrases to hide the truth from
the unworthy and impious, lest they should seem to be casting pearls before
swine, and giving the holy thing to be trodden underfoot by these who think only
of indulging their lustful desires. But the noble student of our art has been told
more than once, not only from what quarter our Stone may be obtained, but also
that its substance must be one, which by the artist's skill may be resolved into two,
viz., earth and fire, or mercury and sulphur.
The Sages, then, do well to call their gold earth or water; for they have a perfect
right to term it whatever they like. So they have frequently called their Stone
their gold, their superperfect gold, their regenerate gold, and by many other
names besides. If any one does not perceive their meaning at the first glance, he
must blame his own ignorance, not their jealousy.
The reader now knows that the substance of our Stone is neither animal nor
vegetable, and that it does not belong to the minerals or the base metals, but that
it must be extracted from gold and silver, and that our gold and silver are not the
vulgar, dead gold and silver, but the living gold and silver of the Sages. We must
now say something about the mode of solution, as the greatest arcanum of all, and
the root of the matter. A solution takes place when we transform a dry thing into a
liquid, a hard thing into a soft, a hidden thing into one that is manifest, i.e., when
a solid is changed into water; not, however, the vulgar water (as Parmenides and
Agadmon in "The Crowd "teach us: "When some persons hear of the liquefaction,
they think a change takes place into the water of the clouds. But if they had read
and understood our books, they would know that our water is permanent), but into
the water of the Sages, i.e., the elementary substance, as Arnold (Ros. I., cp. ix.)
says: "he object of the Sages is to dissolve the Stone into its mercury, or
elementary matter" And Avicenna says: "Thou who wouldest attain our object must
first endeavour to dissolve and sublime the two luminaries, which is the first stage
of the experiment, that they may become quicksilver." Therefore Arnold (Ros. II.,
cp. ii.) describes the solution as a resolving of bodies, and a preparation of the
first Matter or Nature. And Richard the Englishman (cp. xviii.) writes thus: "First
the Stone must be resolved into its elementary substance [seeing that it is an
union of body and spirit], that the two may become one mercurial water." But
even as this first solution is the most vital part of our process, so is it also the most
difficult, as Eobold Vogelius testifies when he says: "How hard this achievement is
can be affirmed by those who have performed it." Bernard of Trevisan, in his book
addressed to Thomas of Bononia, says: "He who knows the secret of the solution is
acquainted with the arcanum of the Art, which is, to mingle kinds, and effectually
to extract elements from elements which lie hid in them." The solution must not
be made with aqua fortis; for aqua fortis corrodes and destroys the body which
should be only liquefied and improved. The solution does not take place into any
water that wets the hands, but into a dry water, which is called both sulphur and
mercury, as Zneumo says (Turba): "Unless by resolving it into its elements you
extract from the body its marrow, and make it an impalpable spirit, you labour in
vain." And Richard the Englishman, following Avicenna, affirms (cp. xi.): "The
Sages have striven to discover how those sulphurs may be extracted from more
perfect bodies, and how their qualities may be so refined by Art, that that which
was not manifest before (although it always lay hid in them) may appear by the
mediation of the said Art with Nature." And this they confess cannot be done
unless the body be resolved into its First Matter, which is quicksilver, out of which
it was made in the beginning, without admixture of any outward things; since
foreign matter cannot improve the nature of our Stone. "For no water," says
Bernard, "dissolves our bodies, but that which is of their kind, and may be
inspissated by them." (Ep. to Thom. of Bonon.) And in the same Epistle he writes:
"The solution should be permanent, so that from both elements, viz., the male and
female seed, a new species may result. Amen, I say unto you that no natural water
can dissolve metals, except that which is always in them substantially and
formally, and which the metals themselves, being dissolved, may again
consolidate."' Thus Morfoleus, in "The Crowd" says: "Every body is dissolved with
the spirit that is joined to it, and doubtless also becomes spiritual. And every spirit
is modified and coloured by bodies, to which spirit is thus added a tinging colour
which stands the test of fire." Hence the student of our art must diligently enquire
what that water is. "For the knowledge of the menstruum," says Raymond (Comp.
An., p. i.) "is a thing without which nothing can be done in the magistery of this
Art. Nothing preserves the metals while it dissolves them, but our menstruum,"
which, as he further states in his ' Codicil,' is "the water by which the metals are
solved, while all their essential properties are conserved." Though this is the Great
Arcanum which our Sages have always kept secret, and have forbidden us to
reveal, yet, as far as we may, we will put you on the right track by two quotations.
The first is found in the abridged Rosary, and runs as follows: "The first
preparation and foundation of this Art, is the solution [i.e., reduction] of the body
into water, i.e., into quicksilver, and this they call the solution, when they say:
Let the gold be dissolved, which is hid in the body of magnesia, that it may be
reduced to its First Matter, that thence it may become sulphur and quicksilver, and
not be again liquefied into water. The object of our solution is to make it liquid,
and resolve it into the substance of quicksilver that the saltness of its sulphur may
be diminished, which divine sulphur is prepared by extraction from two sulphurs,
when the spirit meets the body." The second quotation is from the "Proemium of
the Twelve Gates," by Ripley: "I will straightway teach thee that thou mayest know
that there are three mercuries, which are the keys of knowledge [which Raymond
calls his menstrua], without which nothing is properly done. But two of them are
superficial. The third is of the essence of the Sun and Moon, the properties of
which I will describe to thee. For mercury, the essence of other metals, is the
principal substance of our Stone. In Gold and Silver our menstrua are not visible to
the eye, and are only perceived by their effect. This is the Stone of which we
speak, if anyone understand our books aright. It is the soul and shining substance
of the Sun and Moon, that subtile influence from which the earth derives its
splendour. For what are gold and silver (says Avicenna) but pure red and white
earth? Take away from it the aforesaid splendour, and it will be nothing but
worthless earth. The whole compound we call our lead. The quality of splendour
comes from the Sun and Moon. And, in brief, these are our solvents. Perfect bodies
we naturally calcine with the first, without adding any impure body but one
commonly called by philosophers the green lion, and this is the medium for
perfectly combining the tinctures of the Sun and Moon. With the second, which is a
vegetable liquid, reviving what before was dead, the two principles [both material
and formal] must be solved; else they would be of little value. With the third,
which is a permanent, incombustible liquid, of unctuous quality, the tree of
Hermes is burnt to ashes. This is our natural, most sure fire, our mercury, our
sulphur, our pure tincture, our soul, our Stone raised with the wind, born in the
earth. These things take to heart. This Stone, I dare to tell thee, is the powerful
essence of the metal, and thou must be careful how thou dost obtain it. For this
solvent is invisible, although with the secondary philosophic water it may, by the
separation of elements, become visible in the form of pure water. Out of this
solvent, and with it, thou mayst obtain the sulphur of Nature, if it be naturally
turned into a pure spirit. Then. thou mayst with it dissolve thy fundamental mass
[i.e. gold and silver]."
In these two quotations the whole mystery of the solution is revealed. If you will
consider the properties and powers of Nature, and compare them with these
words, and annihilate all the workings of Nature (i.e. reduce them. and unroll
them like the thread of a skein), you will find in them all truth plainly and
fundamentally. But if you cannot gather from them where are the bolted gates,
and do not know the substance and the powers of Nature, you shall be conducted
to them, not by contemptuous self-conceit, but by ardent prayer and indefatigable
study.
For (by the revelation of the great and good God) I have attained this Art only by
persevering application, vigils, and repeated reading of authentic books. I do not
speak of the matter -- that was made known to me by the revelation of God alone;
but I have by study discovered the secret of its solution, which is the same with
ancient and modern Sages, and the true arcanum of the Art, in the absence of
which neither past nor present Philosophers could have performed anything,
whence it is a secret of Art and an arcanum of wisdom which no one but God must
reveal, for which benefit I give undying thanks with heart and lips to the Creator of
all things, world without end, Amen.
That you may have no cause to complain of me, gentle reader, I will, however, for
the love of God, expound to you another mystery. You are to know that, although
the solution is one, yet in it there may be distinguished a first, and a second, as
they say in the schools. The first solution is that of which Arnold speaks in the
above quotation, viz., the reduction of it to its First Matter; the second is that
perfect solution of body and spirit at the same time, in which the solvent and the
thing solved always abide together, and with this solution of the body there takes
place simultaneously a consolidation of the spirit.
Here you may clearly and plainly see with your eyes what you have long desired to
see. If you understand it, it is mere child's play; therefore, I will forbear to speak
any further about it. If you know the beginning, the end will duly follow by the
help of God, from whom alone we may obtain all glory, the corruptible glory of
this world, and that eternal glory in which with glorified bodies we shall see God
face to face -- despising all mundane pleasure that we may behold with our own
eyes that eternal, infinite, and unspeakable joy of heaven. With these words I will
conclude my little tract. Everything else that remains to be said I will set forth in
the following parable, where you will find the entire system and practice clearly
expounded. If you duly follow it, you will doubtless attain to the true wisdom. May
it be shewn to you, and to all good men, by God the Father, God the Son, and God
the Holy Spirit, Blessed for evermore!
M.S.
The thing is one in number, and one essence, which Nature strives to transform,
but with the help of Art, into two, and twice two: mercury and sulphur impart
nourishment to themselves. Spirit, and soul, and body, and four elements: the fifth
which they furnish is the Philosopher's Stone. Select your substance without guile,
let it be double, and let its splendour be of pure mercury. Take sulphur free from
every foreign substance, and consume it in a fiery furnace. But when you put it
together again, let it still be of the same weight. Then I will believe that you are
upon the road of the mystery. When you have dissolved, quickly sublime it. Pound
what you obtain, and ceaselessly distil it. Then endeavour to condense it, and
continue to expose it to heat. After this begin to "tinge" largely. You have the
panacea of men, and the sum of the metals, and you shall be able to cure
whomsoever and whatsoever you please.
Once upon a time, when I was walking abroad in a wood, and considering the
wretchedness of this life, and deploring that through the lamentable fall of our
first parents we had been reduced to this pitiable state, I suddenly found myself
upon a rough, untrodden, and impracticable path, which was beset with briars.
Then I was afraid, and strove to retrace my steps. But it was not in my power to do
so; for so violent a tempest blew upon me from behind that it was easier to take
ten steps forward than to take one backward. So I had to hurry forward, and follow
the rugged path up and down hill. After a while, I reached a beautiful meadow,
surrounded with heavy-laden fruit trees, which the inhabitants of the place called
the Meadow of Happiness. There I met a crowd of decrepit men with grey beards,
one of whom, an elderly personage, had a long darkish beard, whom also I knew by
name, but whose face I had never seen. These men were discussing various
subjects, e.g., the goodness and wisdom of God, all natural objects, and especially
the great mystery which lies hid in Nature, which -- they said -- God conceals from
the whole world, and makes known only to a few who truly love Him. I listened to
them for a long time (for I was pleased with their discourse) till I thought that
some were talking rather wildly, not in regard to the substance and the method,
but as concerns parables, similitudes, etc., which were the figments of Aristotle,
Pliny, and others. When I heard these things, I could no longer contain myself,
and, like Saul among the prophets, I began to give my opinion, and to refute those
futile assertions by arguments drawn from experience and reason. Some of them
agreed with me, and began to test my knowledge with many questions. But I was
so well grounded that I stood the test to the admiration of all. They all marvelled
at the soundness of my knowledge, and affirmed with one voice that I should be
received into their fellowship. These words filled me with great joy. But they said I
could not be their Brother until I knew their Lion, and his internal and external
properties. They told me I must summon up my whole strength to subdue him. I
confidently replied that I would leave no stone unturned to attain this object. For
their kindness affected me so that I would not have left them for all the wealth of
this world. Therefore they conducted me to the Lion, and were at great pains to
declare to me his nature. But no one would tell me how I must treat him at first.
Some of them did indeed mutter a few words on this point, but so confusedly and
obscurely, that scarce one in a thousand would have understood their meaning.
However, they said that when I had bound him without being harmed by his sharp
claws and terrible teeth, I should know all the rest. This Lion was old, fierce,
great, and terrible to behold with his flowing yellow mane. Then I repented of my
temerity, and would gladly have retreated if I had not been held to my purpose by
my vow, and the old men that surrounded me. So I carefully descended into the
Lion's den, and strove to pacify him; but he glared upon me with red eyes, and
affrighted me so that I could hardly stand upon my feet, and thought that my last
hour had come. But calling to mind what one of the old men had said to me when I
entered the den, namely, that many had undertaken to tame the Lion, but that
only few had accomplished it, I summoned up courage, and tried several artifices,
which I had learned by diligent training. Moreover, I had some knowledge of
natural magic. I therefore relinquished my blandishments, and seized him so
gently, skilfully, and subtly, that almost before he knew what I was about I had
drawn all the blood from his body, and from his very heart and bowels. This blood
was red indeed, but choleric. Then I proceeded to dissect him, and made a most
marvellous discovery: -- his bones were as white as snow, and their quantity more
considerable than that of the blood. When the old men who stood round the den,
and had watched our struggle, saw this, they began to converse with great
eagerness, as I could see from their gestures -- for, being in the den, I could not
hear their words. But anon their dispute began to run high, and I could distinguish
these words: "He must bring him to life again if he wishes to be our brother."
Therefore, without further delay, I stepped out of the den into a large open space,
and then suddenly (I know not how) found myself upon a very high wall, which rose
more than 100 yards into the air, but at the top was not more than a foot in width,
and along the middle of it ran an iron battlement of great strength. Now as I
passed along I thought I saw one walking before me on the right side of the
battlement. When I had followed him a short distance I became aware of another
person following me on the other side; but, whether it was a man or a woman I
cannot undertake to say. This person hailed me, and said that there was more
convenient footing on his side than on mine. This I was quite ready to believe; for
the battlement, which was on the middle of the wall, made the path so narrow as
to render progress extremely difficult at such a great height, indeed, I noticed that
some of those who followed me actually fell. Therefore I got over the battlement
on to the other side, and proceeded to the end of the wall, which presented a
most difficult and dangerous descent. Then I was sorry that I had deserted my own
side, as I could neither advance nor retreat But, remembering that fortune
befriends the bold, I attempted the descent, and by using my hands and feet, I got
down safely. Now when I had advanced a little further, I put away all thought of
danger, and forgot all about the wall and the battlement. Then lighting upon a
certain place, I found white and red roses, but the latter were more abundant; so I
gathered some of them and stuck them in my cap. In that place were some most
beautiful women, and in the neighbouring garden a number of young men were to
be seen. But a wall which surrounded the garden prevented the latter from joining
the women. They were eager to do so, but were not allowed to go round the
garden and find the gate. The sight moved me to pity, and therefore I hastily went
back by the smooth path along which I had come, and soon reached some houses,
among which I expected to find the gardener's cottage. But I found there many
men, of whom each had his own cell (in very few there were two living together).
They were all busily at work, each labouring by himself. Their work was of a kind
long and familiarly known to me -- indeed, far too well known. So I said to myself:
"Behold, here are many persons at work upon vain arid foolish experiments, which
have a certain specious plausibility (according to each man's idiosyncrasy), but no
real foundation in Nature. Surely you, too, will obtain forgiveness." At least, I
would not suffer myself to be detained with these barren futilities, but went on
my way. When I reached the gate of the garden some looked askance at me, and I
was afraid they would prevent me from carrying out my purpose. Others
murmured, and said: "Look, this fellow presumes to approach the gate of the
garden, and we who have spent so many years in these horticultural labours, have
never gained admittance! How we will jeer at him if he meets with a repulse." But
I paid no attention to their talk (for I knew the interior of that garden better than
they, although I had never been in it), and approached the gate, which was
double-locked, and in which there appeared to be no keyhole, but soon I perceived
a keyhole which would have escaped any common observer. So I inserted my
master key (called by some "the adulteress"), which I had diligently fashioned for
the purpose, pushed back the bolt, and entered. After passing this gate, I came
upon other bolted gates, which, however, I opened without any difficulty. So I
entered the garden, and found in the middle of it a small square garden, which
was surrounded with a rose hedge covered with beautiful roses, and as a little rain
was falling, and the rays of the sun shone upon it, It beheld a rainbow. But I was
hastening past the small garden, to that place where I thought I could aid the
young women, when, behold, there came forward the most beautiful of all the
maidens, arrayed in silk and satin, with the most beautiful of the youths, dressed
in a scarlet robe. They walked arm in arm to the rose garden, and carried many
fragrant roses in their hands. I greeted them, and and asked how she had got over.
"This my beloved bridegroom," she said, "helped me, and now we are leaving this
pleasant garden, and hastening to our chamber to satisfy our love." "I am glad," I
returned, "that without any trouble on my part your desires have been fulfilled.
But you see how much trouble I have taken on your behalf, having traversed so
great a distance in so short a time." Then I came to a water-mill, built within of
stones, where there were no flour bins or other miller's requisites; yet I saw wheels
driven round by the water. I asked the decrepit miller the reason, and he told me
the grinding took place somewhere out of view. At the same moment I saw a miller
enter that place by a small bridge, and immediately followed him. When I had
passed the bridge, which was on the right side of the wheels, I paused and beheld
a wonderful sight. In a moment the wheels were above the bridge; I saw very black
water, with white drops; the bridge was only about three inches wide; but by
clinging to the rails I got safely back, without being wetted at all, and asked the
old man how many wheels he had. He answered, "Ten." I was troubled by the
marvellous incident, and would gladly have known its meaning, but felt that it was
labour lost to ask the old man any questions, and so departed. Before the mill was
a raised platform on which some of the aforesaid old men were walking to and fro
in the warm sunshine, discussing a letter which they had received from the Faculty
of the University. I guessed the tenor of the letter, and, feeling sure that it
concerned me, I addressed to them a question to that effect "It does concern you,"
they said, "the wife whom you married a long time ago, you must keep for ever, or
else we must tell our chief." "You need not trouble yourselves about this matter," I
said, "for we were born together, and brought up together as children, and now
that I have married her, I will never forsake her, but cherish her till her last
breath; nay, even death itself shall not sever us." "It is well," they said, "your wife
is satisfied, too; you must be joined together." "I am content," I said. "It is well,"
they repeated. "For thus the Lion will be restored to life, and be more powerful
and more active than he was before." Then I remembered my labours, and knew by
certain signs that this matter concerned not myself, but a very good friend of
mine. As these thoughts crossed my mind, I saw our bridegroom and his beloved
bride -- both clothed in the aforesaid garments -- come forward, eager to be
joined together. This sight gladdened me; for I had been afraid that the whole
matter concerned me. Now when the bridegroom, in his bright scarlet robe, with
his bride, whose silk dress gave out shining rays, reached the old men, they were
straightway joined together. And I marvelled that the maiden, who was said to be
the mother of her bridegroom, was of so youthful an appearance, that she might
have seemed his daughter. But I know not what sin they had committed, except
that brother and sister had been drawn to each other by such passionate love that
they could no more be separated; and, being charged with incest, they were shut
up for ever in a close prison, which, however, was as pellucid and transparent as
glass, and arched like the heavenly vault, so that all that they did could be seen
from without. Here they were to do penance for their sins with ever-flowing tears,
and true sorrow. All their clothes and outward ornaments were taken away. None
of their servants and friends were allowed to be with them, but after they had
received sufficient meat and drink (the latter taken from the aforesaid water), the
door was shut and locked, and the seal of the Faculty was affixed to it. I was
entrusted with the charge of heating their chamber in the winter, so that they
might be neither. too hot nor too cold, and I was further to see that they did not
escape. If any accident of any kind happened, I was to be severely punished. I did
not like this charge; and, as I remembered that the matter was most important,
and that the College of Sages were not wont to say what they did not mean, I was
filled with fear. But since I had to bear that which I could not alter, and since the
chamber was situated in a strong tower, and surrounded with battlements and
lofty walls, and, moreover, could be easily heated with a gentle and continuous
fire, I called upon God for help, and began to heat the chamber. But what
happened ? As soon as they felt the grateful warmth they fell to embracing each
other so passionately that the husband's heart was melted with the excessive
ardour of love, and he fell down broken in many pieces. When she who loved him
no less than he loved her, saw this, she wept for him, and, as it were, covered him
with overflowing tears, until he was quite flooded and concealed from view. But
those complaints and tears did not last long, for being weary with exceeding
sorrow, she at length destroyed herself. Alas ! what fear and anguish fell upon me,
when I saw those who had been so straitly committed to my charge lying, as it
were, melted and dead before me. I felt sure that I should be put to death for it;
but the jeers, the derision, and the contempt which I would have to undergo
seemed more grievous even than death. In this anxious state of mind I spent
several days, until the thought occurred to me that, if Medea had restored a dead
body to life, I might perhaps be able to do the same. But I could think of no better
plan than to keep up the warmth of the chamber until the water should have
evaporated, and the dead bodies of the lovers could again be seen. I doubted not
that then I should most honourably escape from all danger. So I kept up the fire
forty days, the water diminishing from day to day, and the dead bodies beginning
to reappear. Now, however, they looked as black as coals. This effect would have
been produced sooner if the chamber had not been so closely shut and sealed so
that I could in no wise open it. For I noticed that the water rose to the \roof of the
chamber, and then came down again like rain, but it could find no exit from the
chamber, until the dead bodies had putrefied and began to give out a grievous
smell. In the meantime the rays of the sun shining upon the moisture of the
chamber, produced a most beautiful rainbow; and, after all my sorrow, the sight
of its gay colours filled me with great delight; and I was particularly pleased to see
my lovers lying before me. But as there is no joy without a drop of bitterness, so I
was still disturbed by the thought that those who had been committed to my care
were still lying lifeless. Nevertheless, I comforted myself with the reflection that
the chamber (being so tightly closed) must still contain their souls and spirits.
Therefore I continued diligently to perform my office of warming them, being
assured that they would not return to their bodies while they could enjoy that
moist atmosphere. This conjecture was justified by the event. For towards evening
I noticed that many vapours rose from the earth through the heat of the sun, and
were lifted up as water is attracted by the sun; afterwards when night fell, they
watered the earth as fertilising dew, and washed our bodies, which became more
beautiful and white the oftener this sprinkling took place. And the whiter they
became, the more the quantity of moisture in the air diminished, until at last the
atmosphere was too thin for the spirit and soul to remain therein any longer; so
they were at length compelled to return to the clarified body of the Queen, which
(to my great joy) was straightway restored to life. My joy was all the greater,
because now she was arrayed in a beautiful and magnificent garment such as is
rarely seen by mortal eye, a d had a glorious crown, all made of diamonds, upon
her head. Thus attired, she stood upon her feet and cried: "Know this, ye mortals,
and let it enter your hearts, that the most High God is one God, who has power to
set up and pull down kings. He makes rich and poor as He wills. He has killed, and
raised again. I was great, and was brought low; but now, having been humbled, I
have been made Queen of many more kingdoms. After death life has been restored
to me. When I was poor, the treasures of the wise and mighty were committed to
me. Therefore I, too, can make the poor rich, give grace to the humble, and
restore the health of the sick. But I am not yet able to raise my beloved brother,
the most mighty King, from the dead. Nevertheless, when he comes, he will show
that my words are true." When she had thus spoken the sun lighted up the world
with his glorious rays, and the heat waxed great (for the dog days were
approaching). Long before this, garments of rich black silk, of grey or ash-coloured
damask, of rare white silk, embroidered with silver, precious pearls, and brilliant
diamonds, had been got ready towards the marriage of our Queen; and now
garments of many colours, of flesh colour, orange, and saffron, and of red and
scarlet silk, richly embroidered with rubies and carbuncles, were being prepared
for the adornment of our new King. But there was no one to be seen working at
those garments; yet one after another was got ready, insomuch that I greatly
marvelled, because I knew that none but the bride and the bridegroom had
entered the chamber. My wonder increased when I observed that as each dress was
finished, those that had been there before straightway vanished, though I could
see no one put them away. Now when that most precious scarlet garment had
been finished, the great and mighty King appeared in great splendour and
indescribable magnificence, and when he saw that he was shut in, he besought
me, in the most persuasive accents, to open the door, as it would be to my
advantage to let him out of the chamber. Now, though I had been most strictly
enjoined not to open the chamber, I was filled with awe by the majesty and
persuasive speech of the King, and acceded to his request. When he left the
chamber, he bore himself so kindly, so gently, and so humbly, that I could not help
reflecting that these virtues are the most glorious ornaments of the great. As he
had passed the dog days in great heat he was extremely thirsty spent, and weary
wherefore he humbly requested me to bring him some water from the river where
it raged and foamed under the wheels. I gladly acceded to his request, and, after
slaking his thirst with a deep draught, he returned to the chamber, requesting me
to shut the door carefully so that no one might disturb him or rouse him from his
sleep. So he slept a few days, and then called me back to open the door again. He
looked much more beautiful, ruddier, and more royal, and said that this water was
very precious and full of virtue. When at his request I had fetched him some more,
he took a deeper draught than before, insomuch that the size of the chamber
seemed to become enlarged. After drinking of this water (which is lightly
esteemed by the ignorant) as much as he desired, he became so beautiful and
glorious that in all my life I do not remember to have seen a more glorious man, or
more glorious deeds. For he took me into his kingdom and showed me all the
treasures and riches of the whole world, till I was obliged to confess, that so far
from exaggerating his power, the Queen had not told me the half of it. Of gold and
precious carbuncles there was no end. There was also to be found renewal and
restoration of youth and of the natural faculties, and recovery of lost health, with
a never failing panacea for all diseases. What pleased me most of all, was that the
people of that kingdom knew, feared, and honoured their Creator, and asked and
obtained of him wisdom, understanding, and, after this life, eternal glory and
beatitude. May this latter be given to us also by God the Father, God the Son, and
God the Holy Spirit, the Blessed Trinity, to Whom belong praise, glory, and honour,
world without end, Amen.
or
A BRIEF EXPOSITION
OF THE
COMMONLY CALLED
From the beginning of the world, there have always been God-enlighten men and experienced philosophers and wise Gentiles who diligently
studied the nature and properties of the lower Creation. They laboriously endeavoured and fervently longed to discover whether Nature contained
anything that would preserve our earthly body from decay and death, and maintain it in perpetual health and vigour. For by the light of Nature,
and Divine revelation, they intuitively perceived that the Almighty, in His love to men, must have concealed in the world some wonderful arcanum
by which every imperfect, diseased, and defective thing in the whole world might be renewed, and restored to its former vigour.
By the most diligent and careful search they gradually found out that there was nothing in this world that could procure for our earthly and
corruptible body immunity from death, since death was laid upon the Protoplasts, Adam and Eve, and their posterity, as a perpetual penalty. But
they did discover one thing which, being itself incorruptible, has been ordained of God for the good of man, to remove disease, to cure all
imperfection, to purge old age, and to prolong our brief life - a boon actually enjoyed by the Patriarchs.
This wonderful remedy was industriously sought by the wise and understanding, until they discovered it, and its precious virtue. Thus, the
Patriarchs used it to restore their bodily vigour, and prolong their lives; and it was no doubt revealed by God to Adam, our thrice great parent, who
bequeathed the secret to all the Patriarchs who were his descendants, who thereby procured for themselves length of days and boundless wealth.
When the aforesaid Gentiles had received this knowledge, they justly regarded it as a most precious gift of God, and a most holy Art, and
forasmuch as they perceived that, by God's providence, it had been revealed only to a few, and concealed from the majority of mankind, they
always made it a point of conscience and honour to keep it secret.
But that the secret might not be lost, but rather continued and preserved to posterity, they expounded it most faithfully, both in their writings and
in oral teaching to their faithful disciples, for the benefit of posterity; nevertheless, they so clothed and concealed the truth in allegorical
language that even now only very few are able to understand their instruction and turn it to practical account. For this practice they had a very
good reason; they wished to force those who seek this wisdom to feel their dependence on God (in Whose hand are all things), to obtain it through
instant prayer, and, when it has been revealed to them, to give all the glory to Him. Moreover, they did not wish the pearls to be cast before
swine. For they knew that if it were made known to the wicked world, men would greedily desire nothing but this one thing, neglect all labour, and
give themselves up to a dissolute and degraded life.
But although the said philosophers have treated this subject with so great a variety of method, and used many peculiar and singular expressions,
curious parables, and strange and fanciful words, yet they all agree in pointing out the same goal, and one and the same Matter as essential to the
right conduct of the Art. Nevertheless, many students of the Art have entirely missed their meaning, and the secret Matter of which they speak.
For at the present day there are (as there have always been) a large number not only of low charlatans, but of grave and learned men, who have
sought this knowledge with unwearied industry, and yet have not been able to attain to it. Nay, some, angling with a golden hook, have utterly
ruined themselves, and have been compelled to abandon their search in despair. Therefore, lest anyone should doubt the existence of this secret
Art, or, after the manner of this wicked world, look upon it as a mere figment, I will enumerate some of the true Sages (besides those named in
Holy Scripture) who really knew this Art, in the natural order of their succession. They are Hermes Trismegistus, Pythagoras, Alexander the Great,
Plato, Theophrastus, Avicenna, Galen, Hippocrates, Lucian, Longanus, Rasis, Archelaus, Rupescissa, the Author of the Great Rosary, Mary the
Prophetess, Dionysius, Zachaire, Haly, Morienus, Calid, Constantius, Serapion, Albertus Magnus, Estrod, Arnold de Villa Nova, Geber, Raymond
Lully, Roger Bacon, Alan, Thomas Aquinas, Marcellus Palingenius; and, among moderns, Bernard of Trevisa, Frater Basil Valentinus, Phillip
Theophrastus (i.e., Paracelsus), and many others. Nor is there any doubt that, among our own contemporaries, there, might be found some, who,
through the grace of God, daily enjoy this arcanum, though they keep it a close secret from the world. But, side by side with these great Sages who
have written truly and uprightly concerning this Magistery, there are found many charlatans and impostors who falsely pretend to have a
knowledge of this Art, and, by tricking out their lies in the phraseology of the Sages, throw dust into men's eyes, make their mouths water, and at
length fail to make good their promises. Their dupes should well ponder the following warning: "Trust not him who distills gold out of your
money-box. If you are wise you will be on your guard against such. If you would not suffer both loss and mockery, beware of these dishonest
charlatans. Follow those who are simple, straightforward, and modest He who has the good, enjoys it in silence." But where are you to find such?
"Seek the good; you may know them by their excelling the rest in weight, matter, and performance." Now, since there are many students of this
Art who would fain learn its secret by a true and straight path, and are yet so bewildered by these impostors and charlatans, by their empty talk
and their high pretensions, that they do not know which way to turn: therefore I have determined briefly to expound the true principles of this Art.
For though I account myself unworthy to speak of so great a Mystery, yet I may say, without any self-glorification, that, through the grace of God, I
have made greater progress in this Magistery than most; and I consider it as my duty not to hide the talent which my Lord and Master, the great
and good God, has committed to my unworthy keeping. For this reason I am willing to show the right way, by which they may attain a true
knowledge of this subject, to all lovers of chemistry, and have put forth this Brief Epitome and Declaration of the Whole Art (so far as it may be
committed to writing), in the hope that through my means, God may perchance open the eyes of some, and lead them back from their
preconceived notions to the right path, and so manifest to them His mighty works. For the greater convenience of the reader I will divide the work
into four Parts:
In the First part I will set forth the rudiments of the Art, and the best mode of preparing oneself for its study.
In the Second I will shew and describe the quality and properties of the substance required, as also the method of its preparation and
manipulation.
In the Third something will be said concerning the great utility of the Art, and its unspeakable efficacy and virtue.
In the Fourth will follow a Spiritual Allegory, in which this whole Magistery is set forth, being the true form of the Heavenly, Everlasting, and
Blessed Corner Stone of the Most High. It will also contain a true, brief, and simple, practical manual of the method of proceeding, for I am no
friend of many specious words.
PART I.
Who is he that fears the Lord? He will instruct him in the right path. (Psalm 25.)
In the first place, let every devout and God-fearing chemist and student of this Art consider that this arcanum should be regarded, not only as a
truly great, but as a most holy Art (seeing that it typifies and shadows out the highest heavenly good). Therefore, if any man desire to reach this
great and unspeakable Mystery, he must remember that it is obtained not by the might of man, but by the grace of God, and that not our will or
desire, but only the mercy of the Most High, can bestow it upon us. For this reason you must first of all cleanse your heart, lift it to Him alone, and
ask of Him this gift in true, earnest, and undoubting prayer. He alone can give and bestow it.
If the omnipotent God, who is the unerring searcher of all hearts, should find in you uprightness, faithfulness, sincerity, and a desire to know this
Art, not for any selfish end, but for His true honour and glory, He will doubtless hear your prayer (according to his promise), and so lead you by His
Holy Spirit that you will begin to understand this art, and feel that this knowledge would never have entered your heart if the most gracious Lord
had not answered your petition, and revealed to you the understanding even of the most elementary principles.
Then fall upon thy knees, and with a humble and contrite heart render to Him the praise, honour, and glory due for the hearing of thy prayer, and
ask Him again and again to continue to thee His grace, and to grant that, after attaining to full and perfect knowledge of this profound Mystery,
thou mayest be enabled to use it to the glory and honour of His most Holy Name, and for the good of thy suffering fellow men.
Moreover, as you love your soul, beware of revealing the Mystery to any unworthy or wicked man, even in the smallest particular, or by making him
in any sense a partaker thereof. If you in any way abuse the gift of God, or use it for your own glorification, you will most certainly be called to
account by the Almighty Giver, and you will think that it would have been better for you if you had never known it.
When you have thus, as it were, devoted yourself to God (who is not mocked), and learned to appreciate justly the aim and scope of this Art, you
should, in the first place, strive to realise how Nature, having been set in order by God the Triune, now works invisibly day by day, and moves and
dwells in the will of God alone. For no one should set about the study of this Art without a just appreciation of natural processes. Now Nature may
truly be described as being one, true, simple, and perfect in her own essence, and as being animated by an invisible spirit. If therefore you would
know her, you, too, should be true, single-hearted, patient, constant, pious, forbearing, and, in short, a new and regenerate man. If you know
yourself to be so constituted and your nature adapted to Nature, you will have an intuitive insight into her working, such as it would otherwise be
impossible to obtain.
For the study of this Art is such a perfect guide to excellence that a good knowledge of its principles will (as it were, against your will) hurry you on
to an understanding of all the wonderful things of God, and teach you to rate all temporal and worldly things at their true value. But let not him
who desires this knowledge for the purpose of procuring wealth and pleasure think that he will ever attain to it. Therefore, let your mind and
thoughts be turned away from all things earthly, and, as it were, created anew, and consecrated to God alone. For you should observe that these
three, body, soul, and spirit, must work together in harmony if you are to bring your study of this Art to a prosperous issue, for unless the mind and
heart of a man be governed by the same law which develops the whole work, such an one must indubitably err in the Art.
When you are in inward harmony with God's world, outward conformity will not be wanting. Yet our artist can do nothing but sow, plant, and
water: God must give the increase. Therefore, if any one be the enemy of God, all Nature declares war against him; but to one who loves God,
heaven and earth and all the elements must lend their assistance. If you bear these things in mind, and know the true First Matter (of which we
shall speak later on) you may at once set about the practical part of this study, calling on God for grace, direction, and guidance, so that your work
may be carried successfully through all its stages.
He that abides in the fear of the Lord, and cleaves to His Word, and waits faithfully on His office, will transform tin and copper into silver and
gold, and will do great things with the help of God: yea, with the grace of Jehovah, he will have power to make gold out of common refuse.
(Ecclesiastes. XI.)
PART II.
Therefore, thus saith the Lord: Behold I lay in Zion for a foundation a Stone, a
tried Stone, a precious corner Stone, a sure foundation. He that has it shall not be
confounded. (Isaiah XXVIII.)
The numerous writers on our most noble Art have never wearied of singing its
praises, and inventing for it new and glorious names. Its most precious object they
have called the PHILOSOPHER'S STONE, or the most ancient, secret, natural,
incomprehensible, heavenly, blessed, beatified, and triune universal Stone of the
Sages. Their reason for naming it a stone, or likening it to a stone, was this: First
because its original Matter is really a kind of stone, which, being hard and solid
like a stone, may be pounded, reduced to powder, and resolved into its three
elements (which Nature herself has joined together), and then again may be
re-combined into a solid stone of the fusibility of wax: by the skilled hand of the
artist adjusting the law of Nature.
The importance of starting with an exact knowledge of the first or otherwise the
second Matter of the Philosophical Stone has been largely dwelt upon by all writers
on this subject. This Matter is found in one thing, out of which alone our Stone is
prepared (although it is called by a thousand names), without any foreign
admixture; and its quality, appearance, and properties have been set forth in the
following manner. It is composed of three things, yet it is only one. Likewise,
having been created and made of one, two, three, four, and five, it is everywhere
found in one and two. They also call it the universal Magnesia, or the seed of the
world, from which all natural objects take their origin. Its properties are of a
singular kind; for, in addition to its marvelous nature and form, it is neither hot
and dry like fire, nor cold and wet like water, nor cold and dry like earth, but a
perfect preparation of all the elements. Its body is incorruptible, and is not
destroyed by any of the four elements, but its properties far exceed those of the
four elements, and the four qualities, like heaven and the Quintessence. With
respect to its outward appearance, figure, form, and shape, they call it a stone,
and not a stone; they liken it to gum and white water, and to the water of the
Ocean. It is named the water of life, the purest and most blessed water, yet not
the water of the clouds, or of any common spring but a thick, permanent, salt, and
(in a certain sense) dry water, which wets not the hand, a slimy water which
springs out of the fatness of the earth. Likewise, it is a double mercury and Azoth,
which, being supported by the vapour or exudation of the greater and lesser
heavenly and the earthly globe, cannot be consumed by fire. For itself is the
universal and sparkling flame of the light of Nature, which has the heavenly Spirit
in itself, with which it was animated at first by God, Who pervades all things, and
is called by Avicenna, the Soul of the world. For as the soul lives and moves in all
the members of the body, so that spirit lives and moves in all elementary
creatures, and is the indissoluble bond of body and soul, the purest and most noble
essence in which lie hid all mysteries in their inexhaustible fullness of marvelous
virtue and efficacy. Moreover, they ascribe to it infinite Divine power and virtue
when they say that it is the Spirit of the Lord who fills the Universe, and in the
beginning moved upon the face of the waters. They also call it the spirit of truth
that is hid in the world, and cannot be understood without the inspiration of the
Holy Spirit, or the teaching of those who know it. It is found potentially
everywhere, and in everything, but in all its perfection and fulness only in one
thing. In short, it is a Spiritual Essence which is neither celestial nor infernal, but
an aerial, pure, and precious body, in the middle between the highest and lowest,
the choicest and noblest thing under heaven. But by the ignorant and the beginner
it is thought to be the vilest and meanest of things. It is sought by many Sages, and
found by few; suspected by those that are far away, and received by those that
are near; seen by all, but known by few, as you may see from the following lines:
Into three the great good is divided, yet it is one, and highly esteemed by the
world. Men have it before their eyes, handle it with their hands, yet know it not,
though they constantly tread it under their feet It is the greatest wealth, and he
who knows the Art may rival the richest.
ANOTHER ENIGMA
(Much easier.)
There is one thing in this world which is found occasionally. It is bluish-grey and
green, and, wonderful to say, there is in this thing a red and white colour. It
flows like water, yet it makes not wet ; it is of great weight, and of small. I might
give it a thousand names, yet the thousand know it not. It is mean to look upon,
yet to the Sage it is precious. He who solves it with the second and condenses it
with the third, he has our glorious subject.
Now when you have the substance indicated (which is in part heavenly in part
earthly, and in its natural state a mere confused chaos without certain name or
colour), and know it well (for this knowledge the Sages have always accounted the
Principal part of this work, then you must give your whole mind to manipulating it
in the proper manner. But before doing anything to it with his hands, the student
should remember not to begin the preparation of this great and inscrutable
arcanum before he knows well the spirit that lurks in it according to its essential
qualities and properties. "With this spirit," says a certain philosopher, "you should
not meddle until you first have a full and exact knowledge of it. For God is
marvellous in His works, and He is not mocked, I could give some instances of men
who set about this matter with great levity and were heavily punished by meeting
(some or them) with fatal accidents in their laboratories. For this work is no light
thing, as many suppose, perhaps, because the Sages have called it child's play.
Those to whom God has revealed His secrets may indeed find the experiment
simple and easy. But do thou carefully beware of exposing thyself to great danger
by unseasonable carelessness. Rather begin thy work with reverent fear and awe
and with earnest prayer, and then thou wilt lie in little danger."
Now when you have exercised yourself with exceeding diligence in the oratory, the
matter being ready to your hand, go into the laboratory, take the substance
indicated, and set to work in the following manner.
Above all things you must let it be your first object to solve this substance (or first
Entity, which the Sages have also called the highest natural good). Then it must be
purged of its watery and earthy nature (for at first it appears an earthy, heavy,
thick, slimy, and misty body), and all that is thick, nebulous, opaque, and dark in
it must be removed, that thus, by a final sublimation, the heart and inner soul
contained in it may be separated and reduced to a Precious essence. All this can
be accomplished with our Pontic and Catholic water, which in its refluent course
irrigates and fertilizes the whole earth, and is sweet, beautiful, clear, limpid, and
brighter than gold, silver, carbuncles, or diamonds. This blessed water is enclosed
and contained in our Matter.
Then the extracted Heart, Soul, and Spirit must once more be distilled and
condensed into one by their own proper salt (which in the interior of the substance
is first of a blood-red colour, but then becomes of a bright, clear, and transparent
white, and is called by the Sages the Salt of Wisdom). You have thus first, by what
is called the anterior process, separated the pure from the impure, and first
rendered the visible invisible, then, again, the invisible visible or palpable (but yet
no longer so gross and shapeless as it was at first), and it is now a bright body with
a pleasant, penetrating smell, and withal so subtle and ethereal that if it were not
fixed it would evaporate and vanish away. For this reason the Sages call it
mercurial water, or water of the sun, or mercury of the sun, or mercury of the
wise. But so long as it remains in the aforesaid form it would, if used as a
medicine, produce no good effect, but rather act as a poison. If, therefore, you
wish to enjoy its glorious virtue, and manifold power, you must subject it to some
further chemical processes.
For this purpose you must diligently observe the working of Nature (extending over
a considerable period of time), and strictly follow her guidance. When you have
this knowledge, you should take two parts of the aforesaid prepared aqueous
matter, and again three different parts The first two parts you should keep; but to
the three parts add another matter, viz., the most precious and divinely endowed
Body of Gold, which is most intimately akin to the First Matter. Of this add one
twelfth for the first fermentation; for both, the spiritual and heavenly prepared
substance, and this earthly Body of Gold, must be joined together, and coagulated
into one body.
But it should be noted that common gold is useless for this purpose, being
unsuitable and dead. For though it has been declared by God the Omnipotent to be
the most precious and beautiful of metals, yet so long as it lay hid in the mine its
perfect growth and development was hindered. Daily use, moreover, blunts its
indwelling powers, namely, sulphur, or its soul, and it is continually becoming
mingled and defiled with other things that are foreign to its nature. Hence it
becomes daily more and more unfit to be the subject of art. You must, therefore,
seek to obtain gold which has a pure, living spirit, and of which the sulphur is not
yet weakened and sophisticated, but is pure and clear (by passing through
antimony, or by the heaven and sphere of Saturn, and being purged of all its
defilement): otherwise the first substance, being spiritual and ethereal, will not
combine with it. For this Magistery deals only with pure bodies, and suffers no
unclean thing near, on, or around it.
Now when these unequal parts of the water and gold (differing not only in quality,
but also in quantity, for the first is, after its preparation, ethereal, thin, subtle,
and soft, while the other is very heavy, firm and hard) have been combined in a
solutory alembic, and reduced to a dry liquid or amalgam, they should be left six
or seven days exposed to gentle heat of at least a tepid character. Then take one
part of the three parts of water, and pour it into a round, oval glass phial, similar
to an egg in shape; put the tempered liquid in the midst thereof, and leave it once
more for six or seven days; the Body of the Sun will then be gradually dissolved by
the water. Thereupon both will begin to combine, and one will mingle with the
other as gently and insensibly as ice with warm water. This union the Sages have
shadowed out in various ways, and likened it, for instance, to the wedlock of a
bride and bridegroom (as in the Song of Solomon). When this is done, add the third
part (which you have kept) to the rest, but not all at once, or in one day, but in
seven different installments: otherwise the Body would become too liquid, and
entirely corrupted by too much moisture.
For as seed, when cast into the ground, is destroyed and rendered useless by an
excess of moisture and rain, so our work cannot prosper unless the water is
judiciously administered. All this being done, let the phial be carefully closed and
sealed, to prevent the compound from evaporating or losing its odour; and place it
in the furnace, there exposing it to a gentle, continuous, airy, vaporous, and
well-tempered heat, resembling the degree of warmth with which the hen hatches
her eggs.
[NOTE. The Sages have said much about vaporous fire, which they have called the
fire of wisdom, which is not elementary or material, but (according to them)
essential and preternatural. They also call it the Divine fire, i.e., the water of
mercury, roused into action by common fire.] Digest and heat it well, yet take
care that none of it is sublimed, or, in the parabolic language of the Sages, that
the wife does not rule the husband, and that the husband does not abuse his
authority over the wife, &c. - if you do this, the whole will proceed normally,
without any interference on your part (except that, of course, you must keep up
the fire). At first the earthly Body of the Sun is totally solved, and decomposed,
and robbed of all strength (the Body, which was first of a muddy impurity,
changing to a coal-black colour, called by the Sages the Raven's Head, within the
space of forty days), and is thus despoiled of its Soul. The Soul is borne upward,
and the Body, being severed from the Soul, lies for some time, as if dead, at the
bottom of the still, like ashes. But if the fire is increased, and well tempered, the
Soul gradually descends again in drops, and saturates and moistens its Body, and so
prevents it from being completely burned and consumed. Then, again, it ascends
and descends, the process being repeated seven times. The temperature you must
keep at the same point from beginning to end. Haste slowly - for it is of the
greatest importance that the influence of the fire should be brought to bear gently
and gradually. In the meantime you will observe various chemical changes (e.g., of
colour) in the distilling vessel, to which you must pay careful attention. For if they
appear in due order, it is a sign that your undertaking will be brought to a
prosperous issue.
First there appear granular bodies like fishes' eyes, then a circle around the
substance, which is first reddish, then turns white, then green and yellow like a
peacock's tail, then a dazzling white, and finally a deep red - until at last, under
the rarefying influence of the fire, the Soul and Spirit are combined with their
Body, that lies at the bottom, into a fixed and indissoluble Essence, which union
and conjunction cannot be witnessed without unspeakable admiration and awe.
Then you will behold the revivified, quickened, perfected, and glorified Body,
which is of a most beautiful purple colour (like cochineal), and its tincture has
virtue to change, tinge, and cure every imperfect body, as we shall hereafter show
more in detail. When thus, by the grace and help of God, you have happily
attained the goal of your labours, and found the Phoenix of the Sages, you should
once more return thanks to Him with your whole heart, and use His unspeakable
gift solely for His glory, and for the advantage of your suffering brethren. Thus I
have most faithfully explained to you the whole process by which this most noble
Art, and highest achievement, to wit, the Egg of the Sages, or Philosopher's Stone,
may be begun and successfully completed.
If, however, during the operation, any accidental mishap should occur, it must be
seen to in time, or else the chemical process will never be brought to perfection.
If you
(1) observe that before the compound is solved and turns black, anything is
sublimed, or evaporated, or something resembling a red oil floats on the surface of
the substance (which is a bad sign);
or (2) if before or after it has turned white, it turns red too suddenly;
or (3) if, towards the end, it does not properly coagulate;
or (4) if the substance is so strongly affected by the heat that, being taken out, it
does not instantly melt on red hot iron like wax, but tinges and colours the iron,
and afterwards will not remain fixed in the fire - you may regard all these
indications as symptoms of a false composition and temperature, or of some kind
or other of carelessness.
If these defects are not immediately seen to, they will speedily become
incorrigible. A cunning adept should be acquainted with the various devices by
which they may be remedied; and I will recount them here for the sake of the
beginner.
If one or more of the above defects are observed, the whole compound must again
be taken out of the phial, and once more solved in the aforesaid water of mercury
(also called virgin's milk, or the milk, blood, and sweat of the First Matter, or the
never-failing fountain, or the water of life, which nevertheless contains the most
malignant poison); with this water it must once more be moistened and saturated,
and then subjected to the action of the fire, until there is no longer any
sublimation or formation of gaseous vapours; or till the final coagulation has duly
taken place, as described above. Of its subsequent fermentation and
multiplication, and of its uses, more will be said in the third part.
Of the time required for the whole process, it is impossible to say anything very
definite; and, indeed, the Sages have put forward the most conflicting opinions on
this point - no doubt because some have been occupied with it longer than others.
But if any man will carefully observe the working of Nature, and be guided by her
teaching, and in all things hold a middle course, he will gain his object sooner than
one that trusts too blindly to his own wisdom.
But I tell thee not to go beyond the middle point of the letter X either in the
former or latter stage of the operation, but to take one half (V) for the time of the
solution and the other half for the composition. Then, again, for the final union,
the number XX should be thy guide (unless anything unforeseen should occur). Be
satisfied with that space of time. On the other hand, do not try to hurry on the
consummation, for one hour's mistake may throw thee back a whole month. If thou
strivest unduly to shorten the time thou wilt produce an abortion. Many persons
have, through their ignorance, or self-opinionated haste, obtained a Nihilixir
instead of the hoped for Elixir.
In view of the importance of this magical science, I have thought it right to lay this
before the sons of knowledge, for their careful consideration.
RIDDLE.
There are seven cities, seven metals, seven days, and the number seven; seven
letters, seven words in order meet, seven times, and as many plates; seven herbs,
seven arts, and seven stones. Divide seven by three, and thou shalt be wise. No
one will then strive to precipitate the half. In brief, all will proceed favourably in
this number.
"My son, give me thy heart, and let thine eyes observe my ways." (Proverbs XXIII.)
PART III.
Who, has seen Him that he should tell of Him? Who can exalt Him according to His
greatness? We see but the smallest of His works: those that are much greater are
hidden from us. For God has made all, and gives understanding thereof to those
that fear Him. (Sirach xliii.)
Concerning the end of this great Art, and the excellence, virtue, efficacy, and
unspeakable utility of the marvellous Philosopher's Stone, much has been written:
yet has no one been able to tell out its thought-surpassing glory or to adequately
set forth its fame. All Sages have regarded it as the chief felicity that this earth
can afford, without which no one can attain perfection in this world. For Morienus
says: "He who has this Stone has all, and needs no other help." For it includes all
temporal felicity, bodily health, and solid good fortune.
They have also commended the Stone for that the spirit and efficacy which lie
concealed in it are the spirit of the Quintessence of all things beneath the disc of
the moon; on this account they say that it upholds the sky, and moves the sea.
They also describe it as the most elect, the most subtle, the purest, and noblest of
all the heavenly spirits, to which all the rest yield obedience as to their King, that
bestows on men all health and prosperity, heals all diseases, gives to the
God-fearing temporal honour and a long life, but to the wicked, who abuse it,
eternal punishment. It is also extolled by the Sages because it has never been
known to fail of effecting its purpose, but is found to be in all proved, perfect, and
unerring. Therefore Hermes and Aristotle call it the true, undeceiving, and
unfailing arcanum of all arcana, the Divine Virtue which is hidden from the foolish.
In brief, they have designated it the chief of all things under heaven, the
marvellous conclusion or epilogue of all philosophic works. Hence some devout
Sages have affirmed, that it was Divinely revealed to Adam, and by him handed
down to all the holy Patriarchs.
For by its aid Noah is said to have built the Ark, Moses the Tabernacle with all its
golden vessels, and Solomon the Temple, besides accomplishing many other great
deeds, fashioning many precious ornaments, and procuring for himself long life and
boundless riches.
Moreover, the Sages own that through its means they invented the seven liberal
arts, and sought and obtained sustenance for themselves. God gave them this gift
that they might not be hindered in their researches by poverty, or driven to flatter
the rich for the sake of gain, and thus become contemptible, and as a jest or
by-word in His sight. The Stone enabled them to discern the great mysteries of the
Divine wonders, and the inexhaustible riches of the Divine Glory. By it their hearts
were roused and stirred up to a more intimate knowledge of God. For they sought
not to obtain great wealth, or the honour and pleasures of this world, but all their
delight was to search out and contemplate the marvellous secrets of Nature. They
regarded the works of God with very different eyes, and in a very different manner
than most men in our own times, who, alas, look on them like cows or calves, and
pursue the study of our noble Art for the sake of wealth, and temporal advantage
and pleasure. But they will never find what they seek. For God gives not this gift
to the wicked, who despise His word, but to the godly who strive to live honestly
and quietly in this wicked and impure world, and to lend a helping hand to the
needy brethren; or, in the words of the poet:
"God gives this Art to the sincere and good, nor can the world purchase it with all
its gold. The vulgar know nothing of this Mystery, for if any man be impious, he
seeks the Stone in vain. He who holds it in silence dwells where he would, and
fears neither accidents, nor thieves, nor any evil. For this reason this sacred gift is
granted to few: it is in the hands of God, and He gives it to whomsoever He will."
Much has been said concerning the operation, virtue, and utility of this Art in a
variety of writings which have heretofore seen the light, as, for example, unto
what extent the said Stone, prepared and made more than perfect, becomes a
medicine which is above every medicine. It has been denominated the universal
panacea, to which not only all diseases yield (as, for instance, leprosy and gout),
but by the use of which, old men may become young again, recover their lost
faculties, and their former strength, and by which those who are already half dead
may be revivified and quickened. But, as I am no physician, I will forbear to give
an opinion on this point. That the Stone has this virtue, every one that possesses it
can discover for himself. I prefer to set down a few observations concerning those
qualities and uses of the Stone which are known to me by daily experience.
In the first place, the practice of this Art enables us to understand, not merely the
marvels of Nature, but the nature of God Himself, in all its unspeakable glory. It
shadows forth, in a wonderful manner, how man is the image of the most Holy
Trinity, the essence of the Holy Trinity, and the Oneness of Substances in that
Trinity, as well as the difference of Persons; the Incarnation of the Second Person
of the Holy Trinity, His Nativity, Passion, Death, and Resurrection; His Exaltation
and the Eternal Happiness won by Him for us men; also our purification from
original sin, in the absence of which purification all good actions of men would be
vain and void - and, in brief, all the articles of the Christian faith, and the reason
why man must pass through much tribulation and anguish, and fall a prey to death,
before he can rise again to a new life. All this we see in our Art as it were in a
mirror, as we shall take occasion to set forth in our Fourth Part. Secondly, its
earthly and natural use consists in changing all imperfect metals, by means of its
tincture, into pure and solid gold, as I will try to show as briefly as I can.
The Stone or Elixir cannot be used for this purpose in the form in which we left it
at the completion of the previous stage of our process; but it should be still further
fermented and augmented: in the following manner, as otherwise it could not be
conveniently applied to imperfect metals and bodies.
Take one part of the Essence, and add to it three parts of purest gold, which has
been purged and melted by means of antimony, and reduced to very thin plates.
Let them be placed together in the crucible.
Thereupon the whole compound will be transformed into a pure and efficacious
Tincture, which, when applied to base metals, in the ratio of 1::1000, will change
them into pure gold.
Note - The purer the metals are, and the greater their affinity to our substance,
the more easily are they received by the Tincture, and the more perfect and rapid
is the process of regeneration. For the transformation consists in all that is impure
and unsuitable being purged off, and rejected like dress in the same manner
flawed stones can be transmuted into precious diamonds, and common crystal can
be so tinged as to become equal to the most precious stones.
Moreover, many other things may be done with the Tincture which must not be
revealed to the wicked world. These virtues of the Stone, and others of a like kind,
are looked upon as the least important by the Sages, and by all Christians on whom
God has bestowed this most precious gift. Such men think them vile indeed when
compared with the knowledge of God and of His works which is afforded by the
Stone.
For let me tell you that he on whom the Most High has conferred the knowledge of
this Mystery esteems mere money and earthly riches as lightly as the dirt of the
streets. His heart and all his desires are bent upon seeing and enjoying the
heavenly reality of which all these things are but a figure; as Solomon, the wisest
of wise Kings, testifies in chapter vii. of the Book of Wisdom, where he says: "I
preferred wisdom before sceptres and thrones, and esteemed riches nothing in
comparison of her. Neither compared I unto her any precious stone, because all
gold in respect of her is as a little sand, and silver shall be counted as clay before
her." Those, therefore, that desire this Art as a means of procuring temporal
honour, pleasure, and wealth, are the most foolish of men; and they can never
obtain that which they seek at so great an expense of money, time, and trouble,
and which fills their hearts, their minds, and all their thoughts. For this reason the
Sages have expressed a profound contempt for worldly wealth (not as though it
were in itself a bad thing, seeing that it is highly commended in Holy Scripture as
an excellent gift of God, but because of its vile abuse). They despised it because it
seemed to hinder men from following the good and the true, and to introduce a
mischievous confusion into their conceptions of right and wrong. These abuses of
money the illustrious Marcellus Palingenius Stellatus has graphically described in
the poem entitled the "Zodiac of Life", under the sign of Sagittarius, where he
draws a vivid picture of the evils of avarice. To this poem I would therefore refer
the gentle reader.
From this poem we may gather how lightly this distinguished man, though
evidently a possessor of the Stone, as appears out of his "Zodiac of Nature", held
gold and silver, and all things temporal, in respect of virtue.
Nor is his case by any means exceptional. All Sages have regarded wisdom, and the
knowledge of heavenly things, as far better than the transient things of earth, and
have so ordered their lives and actions that at the last they might obtain
immortality and eternal glory. This feeling is well expressed by Solomon, in his
Book of Proverbs (cp. xvi.), where he says: "How much better is it to get wisdom
than gold ! and to get understanding rather to be chosen than silver!" - and again
in the xxii. chapter: "A good name is rather to be chosen than great riches, and
knowledge rather than silver and gold." The same aspiration prompted the
following words of the son of Sirach: "See that thou keep a good name, for it is
better than a thousand treasures of gold." By reason of these and other virtues
which result from the philosophy of the Stone, the Sages have never wearied of
extolling its marvellous excellence; and they have taken great pains to make it
known to the worthy, in order that its wisdom might be accepted and practically
exhibited by them. But to the foolish everything is obscure and difficult to be
understood. This is the gist of the first six chapters of Solomon's Book of Proverbs,
where he says that men should strain every nerve to attain to our wisdom. In the
Book of Ecclesiastes, too, he uses the following words: "My son, be satisfied with a
lowly station: for it is better than all that this world desires. The greater thou art,
the more humble thyself, and God will give thee grace. For the Lord is a most High
God, and does great things through the lowly."
PART IV.
"I will open my mouth in parables, and declare things hidden from the foundation
of the world." (Psalm LXXVIII. and Matthew XIII.)
When it pleases Almighty God by His Divine Word to make known unto the human
race His marvellous, deep, and celestial mysteries, He is wont to do so in parables,
and to shadow forth His meaning in things familiar to our eyes which are depicted
visibly before us. For instance, when pronouncing upon Adam in Paradise, after the
Fall, the sentence of death, He told him that as he was made and formed of dust,
he should also return to dust - dust being a thing which in itself has no life. Again,
when promising to Abraham an innumerable posterity, He illustrated His meaning
by pointing to the stars of the heavens, the sand of the sea shore, and the dust of
the earth. In the same manner, God made use of divers precious types in declaring
His will to the children of Israel through the Prophets. This practice was also
adopted in the New Testament by Christ Himself - the Foundation and Express
Image of the Truth - who set forth His teaching in parables in order that it might
be better understood. So He compares His Divine and Blessed Gospel - the highest
happiness of man - to seed that is sown in a field, amongst which the enemy
scatters evil seed; to a hidden treasure; to a pearl of great price; to a grain of
wheat; to a mustard seed; to leaven, etc. [Cf. Luke viii. Matthew xiii. and xxii
Luke xix. Matthew xx.]
The Kingdom of Heaven He describes under the image of a great Wedding Feast.
The Christian Church, again, He compares to a Vineyard, and to a King calling upon
his servants to render up an account. He also uses the similitude of a noble lord
who entrusted his goods to his servants, of a lost sheep, a prodigal son, and others
of a similar nature. [Cf. Matthew xviii. Luke xvi Matthew xxv. Luke xviii. Mark xii.
Luke xviii. Luke x.]
These types and similitudes were given to us on account of our human infirmity,
which prevents us from understanding and picturing to ourselves the things of
heaven. And since it is God's wont to reveal His mind in parables and figures, we
can but regard it as of a piece with all the other dealings of God, that the Chief
Good, His Son, our Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ, who by His obedience saved all
mankind from eternal death and restored to us the Kingdom of Heaven, should
have expressed His nature in a concrete bodily form. This is the greatest mystery
of Almighty God, and the highest and worthiest object of knowledge.
[Ephesians iii. Collossians i. Isaiah xlv.: "Let the heavens drop down from above,
and let the skies pour down righteousness. Let the earth open and bring forth the
Saviour."]
And although this great Good had been prefigured to us in the Old Testament by
types such as the sacrifice of Isaac, the ladder of Jacob, the betrayal and
wonderful exaltation of Joseph the brazen serpent, Samson, David, and Jonah:
yet, besides all these, Almighty God deigned to give us a fuller revelation and a
corporal, visible, and apprehensible idea of His heavenly treasures and gifts in the
Person of His Son. This earthly and bodily manifestation He plainly foretold in the
Prophet Isaiah (chapter. xxviii.): "Behold, I lay in Zion for a foundation a corner
stone, a tried stone, a sure foundation: he that believeth shall not make haste." To
the same effect the Royal Seer David speaks, though the Holy Spirit, in Psalm
cxviii.: "The Stone which the builders rejected is become the head stone of the
corner. This is the Lord's doing, and it is marvellous in our eyes." This type, the
aforesaid Corner Stone, Christ applies to Himself (Matthew xxi.) when He says:
"Have ye never read in the Scriptures? The Stone that the builders rejected is
become the chief stone of the corner. This is the Lord's doing, and it is marvellous
in our eyes. And whosoever shall fall on this Stone shall be broken; but on
whomsoever it shall fall it shall grind him to powder." And Peter (Acts, iv.) and
Paul in his Epistle to the Romans ix. repeat almost the same words.
This tried, blessed, and heavenly Stone Jesus Christ was longingly expected from
the beginning of the world by the Fathers and Holy Patriarchs; God-enlightened
men prayed that they might be accounted worthy to see the promised Christ in His
bodily and visible form. And if they rightly knew Him by the Holy Spirit, they were
comforted by His presence in their lives, and had an invisible Friend on whom they
could stay themselves, as upon a spiritual fulcrum, in trouble and danger even
unto the end of their life.
But although that heavenly Stone was bestowed by God as a free gift on the whole
human race, the rich as well as the poor (Matthew xi., 6.); yet to this very day
comparatively few have been able to know and apprehend Him. To the majority of
mankind He has always been a hidden secret, and a grievous stumbling block, as
Isaiah foretold in his eighth chapter: "He shall be for a stone of stumbling and a
rock of offence, a gin and a snare, so that many shall stumble and fall, and be
broken, and be snared, and be taken." The same was revealed to the aged Simeon,
when he spake thus to Mary, the Mother of the Corner Stone: "Behold, He shall be
for a fall and rising again of many in Israel, and for a sign that shall be spoken
against." To this St. Paul also bears witness (Romans ix.): "They fell from the Stone
of offence, and the rock of stumbling. He that believes in Him shall not be
confounded." This Stone is precious to them that believe, but to the unbelieving "a
stone of offence and stumbling, seeing that they are broken against the word, and
believe not in Him on whom they are founded (Ecclessiastes xliii.)." In all these
respects the Precious, Blessed, and Heavenly Stone agrees most wonderfully with
our earthly, corporal, and philosophical Stone; and it is, therefore, well worth our
while to compare our Stone with its Heavenly prototype. We shall thus understand
that the earthly philosophical Stone is the true image of the real, spiritual, and
heavenly Stone Jesus Christ.
Thus, then, those who would truly know and prepare the first Matter of the
Philosopher's Stone (the chief and principal mystery of this earth) must have a
deep insight into the nature of things, just as those who would know the Heavenly
Stone (i.e., the indissoluble, triune essence of the true and living God) must have a
profound spiritual insight into the things of heaven: hence we said in our first part,
that the student of our Art must first have a thorough knowledge of Nature and her
properties. If a man would come to know the highest good, he must rightly know,
first God, and then himself (Acts xvii: "For in Him we live," etc.). If anyone learn to
know himself and God (i.e. our duty as men, our origin, the end of our being, and
our affinity to God), he has the highest scholarship, without which it is impossible
to obtain happiness, either in this world, or in the world to come.
If we would find that high and heavenly Stone, we must remember that, as our
earthly Philosophical Stone is to be sought in one thing and two things, which are
met with everywhere, so we must look for Him nowhere but in the eternal Word of
God, and the Holy Scripture (consisting of the Old and New Testaments) - as God
the Father testified at His Transfiguration on Mount Tabor (Mark ix., Luke ix.),
when He said: "This is My Beloved Son: hear ye Him." In the same way Christ, the
essential and eternal Word of God, speaks of Himself: "No one comes to the
Father, but by Me" - according to the Scripture, the infallible testimony of the
Divine Word (Isaiah xxxiv.). In Isaiah viii. we find the words: "to the Law and the
Testimony." And Christ, the aforesaid Corner Stone, bears witness to the necessity
of Scripture, when He says: "Search the Scriptures, for in them ye believe that ye
have eternal life, and it is they that testify of Me." Therefore, David says in Psalm
cxix., long before the coming of Christ: "My delight, O Lord, is in Thy
commandments, for they are my counsellors; Thy word is a lamp unto my feet; I
rejoice in the way of Thy testimonies more than in great riches. Also, I consider
Thy ways, and walk in Thy testimonies" [Genesis xiii. Psalm xlv. Isaiah ix, 49.
Jeremiah xxxii. John x, 14. Romans ix. I. Corinthians v.]
Moreover, when and where the First Matter of this heavenly Stone was founded
("from the beginning of the world"), is expressly set forth in several passages of
Holy Scripture, especially in the fifth chapter of Micah: "Whose goings forth have
been from of old; from everlasting." When the Jews asked the Corner Stone
Himself who He was, He answered: "I that speak to you was from the beginning,"
and again: "Before Abraham was, I am." From these passages it follows that He had
His being, without a beginning, from all eternity, and that He will abide
throughout all eternity.
And although this knowledge is to be found and obtained nowhere but in the Old
and New Testaments, nevertheless he who would gain it must proceed with the
greatest care (II. Timothy, lit), for one false step may render all our subsequent
labour useless. He who would gain a golden understanding of the word of truth,
should have the eyes of his soul opened, and his mind illumined by the inward light
(I. John, v.) which God has kindled in our hearts from the beginning; for he who
strives to obtain this knowledge without the Divine light, may easily mistake Saul
for Paul, and choose a false road instead of the right path. This happens
continually in regard to our earthly Stone. Ten persons may read the same
description of it, and yet only one may read the words aright. So the majority of
mankind daily miss the knowledge of the Heavenly Stone; not because it is not
before their eyes, but because they have not eyes to see it. Therefore Christ says:
(Luke xi.) "The eye is the light of the body, and if the eye be dark the whole body
will be full of darkness." In the seventeenth chapter of the same Gospel He says:
"Behold the kingdom of God is within you." From these words it most clearly
appears that the knowledge of the light in man must come from within, and not
from without.
The external object, as they say, or the letter, is written for the sake of our
infirmity, as a further aid to the implanted light of grace (Matthew xxiv.), as also
the outward spoken word is used as an auxiliary means for the conveyance and
advancement of knowledge. For example, if a white and a black tablet were put
before you, and you were asked to say which was white and which black, you
would not be able to answer the question if you had no previous knowledge of
those colours; your ability to do so, comes, not from looking at the tablets, but
from the knowledge that before was in your mind. The object only stirs up your
perceptive faculty, and calls out the knowledge that before was in you, but does
not of itself afford that knowledge. In the same way, if any one put into your hand
a flint, and asked you to bring outward and visible fire out of it for him, you would
be unable to do so without the steel that belongs to it, with which you would have
to elicit the spark slumbering in the stone. Moreover, you would have to catch and
fan it into flame on a piece of tinder - or else the spark would immediately vanish
again. If you do this, you will have a bright fire, and so long as you keep it up, you
will be able to do with it whatever you like. In the same manner, the heavenly
light slumbers in the human soul, and must be struck out by outward contact,
namely, by the true faith, through reading and hearing, and through the Holy Spirit
whom Christ restored to us, and promised to give us (John xiv.: "No man comes to
the Father but by me"), and to put into our dark, but still glowing hearts, as into a
kind of tinder, where He may be fanned and kindled into a bright flame, working
the will of God in our souls. For He delights to dwell in light unapproachable, and
in the hearts of believers. Although no man ever has, or ever can, see God with his
outward bodily eyes, yet with the inward eyes of the soul He may well be seen and
known. But notwithstanding that inward light casts its bright beams over the whole
world, and into the heart of every man without any difference, the world, by
reason of its innate corruptness, cannot see it rightly, and refuses to acknowledge
it; and on this account so many false and pernicious notions are current concerning
it. But we shall do well to consider that God has, not without a good purpose,
furnished our heads with two eyes and two ears; for He would thereby teach us
that man has a double vision and a double hearing; namely, the outward and the
inward. With the inward he is to judge spiritual things, and the outward is also to
perform its own proper office. The same distinction we find in the spirit and the
letter of Scripture. For this reason I thought fit to explain this matter for the sake
of students of the simple sort, who might otherwise be at a loss to apprehend the
full significance of the triune Stone.
Again, as the substance of the earthly Stone is nothing accounted of in the world,
and rejected by the majority of mankind, so Christ, the eternal Word of the
Father, and the Heavenly Triune Stone, is lightly esteemed in this world, and
scarcely even looked at; nay, we may say that nothing is so profoundly and utterly
despised by mankind, as the Saving Word of God. Hence (Corinthians I, 2) it is
called foolishness by the wise of this world. Nor is it only contemned and regarded
as worthless; it is even proscribed and laid under a ban, like some false heretical
doctrine, and it is grievous for a God-fearing man to listen to the blasphemous
words that are spoken against it. But the believer must be tried by it, and the
world sifted by its appearance. So St. John says (cp. i.): "He came unto His own,
and they received Him not;" and again: "He was in the world, and the world knew
Him not."
Again, as the physical and earthly water-Stone of the Sages has, on account of its
unsearchable excellence, been called by a great variety of names by the multitude
of philosophers, so the Heavenly Light, the one Noumen and Illuminant, whose
riches and glory are past finding out, is designated in Holy Scripture by a large
number of titles. We will go through the most important names of both. The
Philosopher's Stone is called the most ancient, secret or unknown, natural,
incomprehensible, heavenly, blessed, sacred Stone of the Sages. It is described as
being true, more certain than certainty itself, the arcanum of all arcana - the
Divine virtue and efficacy, which is hidden from the foolish, the aim and end of all
things under heaven, the wonderful epilogue or conclusion of all the labours of the
Sages - the perfect essence of all the elements, the indestructible body which no
element can injure, the quintessence; the double and living mercury which has in
itself the heavenly spirit - the cure for all unsound and imperfect metals - the
everlasting light - the panacea for all diseases - the glorious Phoenix - the most
precious of treasures - the chief good of Nature - the universal triune Stone, which
is naturally composed of three things, and, nevertheless, is but one - nay, is
generated and brought forth of one, two, three, four, and five. In the writings of
the Sages we may also find it spoken of as the Catholic Magnesia, or the seed of
the world, and under many other names and titles of a like nature, which we may
best sum up and comprehend in the perfect number of one thousand. And as the
earthly Philosopher's Stone and its substance have a thousand names, so an infinite
variety of titles is even more justly predicated of the Chief Good of the Universe.
For He is God, the Word of God, the Eternal Son, the real, eternal, tried, and
precious corner and foundation Stone which the builders refused and rejected. He
is true, and more ancient than all things seeing that He was before the foundation
of the world, and from everlasting. He is the true, hidden, and unknown God,
supernatural, incomprehensible, heavenly, blessed, and highly praised. He is the
only Saviour, and the God of Gods (Deuteronomy x.). Sure He is, and true, and
cannot lie (Numbers xxiii., Romans iii.). He is the only Potentate who does what
He will, according to His good pleasure. He is secret and eternal, and in Him lie hid
all the treasures and mysteries of knowledge (Romans xvi., Collossians ii.). He is
the only Divine virtue and omnipotence, which is unknown to the foolish, or the
wise of this world. He is the only true essence of all elements, seeing that of Him
all things are and were created (Romans ii., James i.). He is the quintessence, the
essence of all essences, and yet Himself not an essence of anything. He has in
Himself the Heavenly Spirit which quickens all things with life itself (Wisdom vii.,
Isaiah xlii., John xiv.). He is the one perfect Saviour of all imperfect bodies and
men, the true heavenly physician of the soul, the eternal light that lights all men
(Isaiah lx., John i.), the universal Remedy of all diseases, the true spiritual
panacea. He is the glorious Phoenix that quickens and restores with His own blood
His little ones whom the old Serpent, the Devil, had wounded and killed. He is the
greatest treasure, and the best thing in heaven or upon earth, the triune universal
essence, called Jehovah - of one, the Divine essence - of two, God and Man - of
three, namely three Persons - of four, namely three Persons, and one Divine
Substance - of five, namely of three Persons, one Divine, and one Human
Substance. He is also the true Catholic Magnesia, or universal seed of the world, of
Whom, through Whom, and to Whom are all things in heaven and upon earth - the
Alpha and Omega, the beginning and the end, says the Lord that is, and was, and is
to come, the Almighty (Apoc. i.).
But again, as in the case of the philosophical work, it is not enough for anyone to
know its substance and its triune essence, with the quality and property thereof, if
he does not also know where to obtain it, and how to become a partaker of its
benefits - which can only be done, as we said above, by dissolving the substance
into its three parts, decomposing it, and so depriving it of its caliginous shadow
and hirsute essence, subliming its inner hidden heart and soul by means of the
sweet, universal, fiery, marine water (extracted from itself) into a volatile essence
- so we cannot know that glorious triune Essence, called Jehovah, unless the image
of Him is first dissolved and purified in our own souls, the veil of Moses (i.e., our
own desperate sinfulness which prevents us from seeing God as He is) being taken
away, and our inner heart and soul being purified, cleansed, and sublimed by the
Divine illumination of Him that dwells within, namely, Christ, who washes our
hearts like pure water (Isaiah xliv.), and fills them with His sweet and gentle
comfort. So you first behold the wrath, but afterwards the love of God.
Once more: As our Matter, in the philosophical work, after being dissolved into its
three parts or principles, must again be coagulated and reduced into its own
proper salt, and into one essence, which is then called the salt of the Sages: so
God, and His Son, must be known as One, by means of their essential substance,
and must not be regarded as two or three Divinities, possessing more than one
essence. When you have thus known God through His Son, and united them by the
bond of the Holy Spirit, God is no longer invisible, or full of wrath, but you may
feel His love, and, as it were, see Him with your eyes, and handle Him with your
hands, in the person of Jesus Christ, His Son and express image. But even this
knowledge of the Triune God will avail you little, unless you continue to advance
and grow in His grace, for God otherwise will be still terrible, and as it is said of
Him (Deuteronomy vii, 18), "a consuming fire." For as the substance of the Sages,
after all the changes that it has undergone, will do more harm than good as a
medicine applied to the body, without the final preparation, so unless you fully
and perfectly apprehend Christ, the mere knowledge of Him will tend to your
condemnation rather than to the salvation of your soul (I. John, iv.). Therefore if
you wish to become a partaker of Christ, and if you desire to possess and enjoy His
heavenly gifts and treasures, you must advance in the personal knowledge of
Christ, and look upon Him, not merely as a pure and immaterial Spirit, but as the
Saviour who in the fulness of time took upon Himself a human body, and became
the Son of Man, as well as the Son of God.
For as in our philosophical work another most noble and cognate metallic body
must be united to our first substance (if it is to be rendered effectual for the
perfecting of other metals), and joined together with it into one body, so the
Divine Nature of the Son of God had to take upon itself, as it were, another
kindred "metallic" body, namely our human nature, our human flesh and blood
(which, having been created in the image of God, has the greatest affinity with
Him), and to be joined with it into one indissoluble whole, in order that He might
have the power of bringing imperfect men to perfection.
But again, we said that common gold, on account of its imperfection and impurity,
would not combine with our substance, because its manifold defects had rendered
it "dead" and useless for our purpose, and that, for this reason, it must first receive
a bright and pure body (not adulterated or weakened by the presence of bad
internal sulphur). In the same way, the Divine essence of the Son of God could not
be joined to common human nature, which is conceived in sin, defiled with
hereditary uncleanness, and many actual sins and besetting infirmities (though all
these are no integral part of human nature as such), but required a pure, sinless,
and perfect humanity.
For if the earthly Adam, before the Fall (though after all only a created being),
was holy, perfect, and sinless, how much more must the heavenly Adam, to whom
the only begotten Son of God was joined, have a perfect humanity? Therefore the
heavenly, eternal, fundamental Corner Stone, Jesus Christ (like the earthly
Philosophical Stone), is now One, uniting in Himself, after an inscrutable manner,
a dual nature of admirable generation and origin, and the properties both of God
and of man. For according to His Divine Nature, He is true God, of the Substance of
His heavenly and eternal Father, and the Son of God, whose goings out (as the
Scripture says) were from everlasting (Micah v.). According to His human nature,
on the other hand, He was born in the fullness of time as a true and perfect man,
without sin, but with a real body and soul (Matthew xxvi.). Therefore He now
eternally represents the indissoluble and personal union of the Divine and the
human substance, the oneness of the natures of God and man.
It is much to be wished that the eyes of our self-opinionated doctors were opened,
or the nebulous film, or sophistical mask, which obscures their vision, taken away,
that so they might see more clearly. I am particularly alluding to the Aristotelians,
and other blind theological quibblers, who spend their lives in wrangling and
disputing about Divine things in a most unchristian manner, and put forth no end of
manifold distinctions, divisions, and confusions, thus obscuring the Scriptural
doctrine concerning the union of natures and communication of substances in
Christ. If they will not believe God and His Holy Word, they might at least be
enlightened by a study of our chemical Art, and of the union of two waters (viz,
that of mercury and that of the Sun) which our Art so strikingly and palpably
exhibits. But the scholastic wisdom of their Ethnic philosophy is entirely based
right hand of His Father, He now rules, governs, preserves, and quickens all things
with the power of His Word. This marvellous Union and Divine Exaltation angels
and men in heaven, upon earth, and under the earth can scarce think upon without
holy fear, and trembling: awe - Whose power, strength, and purple Tincture (i.e.,
Blood) changes us imperfect men and sinners in body and soul, and is a marvellous
medicine for all our diseases, as we shall see further on.
We have briefly and simply considered the most obvious analogies that serve to
establish the typical connection between Jesus Christ, the heavenly Corner Stone,
and our earthly Philosopher's Stone, and to illustrate its figurative resemblance to
the Incarnation of the Saviour of men. We will now proceed to shew that the
earthly Stone also shadows forth His transmuting, strengthening, healing, and
quickening power towards us sinful, wretched, and imperfect human beings.
For though God created man at the beginning in His own image, and made him
more glorious and perfect than other creatures, and breathed into him a living and
immortal soul, yet by the fall the image of God was defaced, and man was
changed into the very reverse of what God had intended that he should be.
But in order that we might be restored to our former glorious state, God in His
great mercy devised the following remedy: As the perfect earthly Stone, or
Tincture, after its completion extends its quickening efficacy, and the perfecting
virtue of its tincture to other imperfect metals, so Christ, that blessed heavenly
Stone, extends the quickening influence of His purple Tincture to us, purifying us,
and conforming us to the likeness of His perfect and heavenly Body. For, as St.
Paul says: (Romans viii.), He is the first-born among many brethren, as He is also
the first-born before all creatures, through whom all things in heaven and earth
were created, and reconciled to God. If we who are by Nature impure, imperfect,
and mortal, desire to become pure, immortal and perfect, this transmutation can
be effected only through the mediation of the Heavenly Corner Stone Jesus Christ,
who is the only holy, risen, glorified, heavenly King, both God and man in the unity
of one Person.
For as the Philosopher's Stone, which is the Chemical King, has virtue by means of
its tincture and its developed perfection to change other imperfect and base
metals into pure gold, so our heavenly King and fundamental Corner Stone, Jesus
Christ, can alone purify us sinners and imperfect men with His Blessed
ruby-coloured Tincture, that is to say, His Blood, from all our natural filth and
uncleanness, and perfectly heal the malignant disease of our nature; seeing that
there is no salvation but in Him, and that no other name is given under heaven
whereby men can obtain happiness and perfection.
The blind and insensate world has, indeed, through the craft and deceit of the
Devil, tried many other ways and methods of obtaining everlasting salvation, and
has toiled hard to reach the goal; but Christ nevertheless is and remains the only
true Saviour and Mediator, who alone can make us appear just in the sight of God,
and purify us from our spiritual leprosy - just as, upon earth, there is only one
royal, saving, chemical Stone by which all imperfect metals must be brought to
perfection and all bodily diseases healed (especially that fearful, and otherwise
incurable leprosy). All other spiritual remedies - such as those invented and used
by Jews, Turks, heathens, and heretics - may be compared to the devices of false
and sophistical alchemists; for by them men are not purified, but defiled - not
quickened, but enfeebled, and given over to a state of more helpless spiritual
deadness. So the pseudo alchemists, or malchemists, as they may be more
appropriately termed, discover many tinctures and colours by which men are not
only deceived, but, as daily experience teaches, often ruined in fortune, body, and
soul. Again, if we men would be purified and cleansed of our original sin and the
filth of Adam (in whom, through the subtilty of the Cacodaemon, our whole race
was corrupted in the very Protoplast), we can obtain perfection and eternal
happiness only through the regeneration of water and the Spirit, as the royal
chemical substance is regenerated by water and its spirit. In this new and spiritual
regeneration, which is performed in baptism through water and the Spirit, we are
washed and purified with the Blood of Christ, united to His Body, and clothed with
Him as with a garment (Collossians iii., Ephesians v.). For, as the philosophical
Stone becomes joined to other metals by means of its tincture and enters into an
indissoluble union with them, so Christ, our Head, is in constant vital communion
with all His members through the ruby tincture of His Blood, and compacts His
whole Body into a perfect spiritual building which after God is created in
righteousness and true holiness. Now, that regeneration which is wrought in
baptism through the operation of the Holy Spirit is really nothing but an inward
spiritual renewal of fallen man, by which we become God's friends instead of His
enemies, and thus heirs of God and fellow heirs with Christ (I. Corinthians ii.,
Romans xii., Ephesians ii., Hebrews iii.). For to this end Christ died and rose again,
that through this means, namely, through His passion, death, resurrection, and
ascension, He might enter the Holy Place made without hands, and prepare for us
the way to our everlasting Fatherland. Therefore, we, too, as His brothers and
sisters, should follow His passion, and grow like Him in love, humility, and all other
virtues, till we are conformed to His glorified body, and until, having lived and
died with Him, we also reign with Him, and share His everlasting glory.
But this inward quickening and imitation of Christ, our heavenly King, in our daily
lives, is not the outgrowth of our own merit or natural will (for by nature all men
are blind, deaf, and dead, as to spiritual things), but is produced solely through
the effectual working of the Holy Spirit, who dwells in us through the blessed laver
of regeneration. In like manner, the minerals and metals are in themselves gross
and dead, and cannot purify or ameliorate themselves, but are purified, renewed,
dissolved, and perfected through the agency of the spagyric spirit. Now when we
have been incorporated in the Body of our heavenly Ring, and washed and cleansed
of original sin through His purple Tincture, and so rendered capable of bringing
forth the first fruits of the Holy Spirit, we are fed up, like little children, and
nourished with the pure and health-giving milk of grace, until at length we become
living stones, fit for the heavenly building and the highest priesthood, which
consists in offering up spiritual sacrifices such as are acceptable to God the Father,
through Jesus Christ. For even a Christian, though regenerated through water and
the Word, cannot grasp or apprehend all things at once, but must grow gradually,
and daily, in the knowledge of God and of Christ.
For as, in our philosophical experiment, the union of the two essences, namely of
the earthly gold and the heavenly prepared Matter, which have first been reduced
to a kind of dry liquid, or amalgam, in a solutory alembic, does not take place all
at once (seeing that the different parts are added gradually and at stated
intervals), so we must expect the growth of the quickened spirit to be slow and
gradual. For when the spiritual union of a man with Christ in baptism has once
taken place, and he is united once for all with His Body, he must gradually advance
in the Christian faith, and assimilate in his soul one article after another, until he
has obtained perfect knowledge, and is firmly established in all the fulness of
conviction.
Now the Christian faith, like the prepared aqueous substance, consists of twelve
articles, according to the number of the Apostles, and these again fall into three
principal sections, viz. (1) that which treats of our creation, (2) that which deals
with our redemption, and (3) that which describes our sanctification. All these
articles the Christian must, one by one, and little by little, make his own. He
cannot master them all at once; for if too much spiritual nourishment were
administered to him at a time, his soul might begin to loathe its food, and he
might be entirely estranged from the faith. Therefore, the third article, for
instance, should be divided into seven parts, and taught in seven different lessons
(just as the matter was not put into the phial all at once). When a man has made
the whole faith thoroughly his own, he must carefully preserve it pure from all
corruption and falsification.
Moreover, in the chemical process, the Stone cannot bring its influence to bear on
imperfect metals, unless it is first combined with three several parts of highly
refined and purified gold, not because the tincture of the Stone itself is imperfect,
but on account of the grossness of the metals which otherwise could not receive its
subtle influence. The Stone itself is perfect; but the base metals are so feeble and
dead that they cannot apprehend the angelical and spiritual perfection of the
Tincture, except through the more congenial medium of gold, refined and fused
through Antimony. In the same way, our heavenly King, Jesus Christ, has, through
His obedience to His Father's will, once for all delivered us from sin and impurity,
and made us sons and heirs of God; nevertheless, His saving Blood, the true purple
Tincture, cannot be received by us, on account of our inborn infirmity and gross
sinfulness, except through three media appointed by God for this purpose, namely:
(1), His Holy Word, which is better and purer than earthly gold seven times
refined; (2), saving faith, which is a marvellous gift of God, comes through the
Word of God, unites the hearts of men, and is tried in the fire of affliction; (3),
unfeigned love towards God and our neighbour, which is also a gift of God, the
fulfilment of the law, and a perfect imitation of God's nature. If we have and
possess in a proper manner these three things, the Word, faith, and love, Christ
can operate rightly upon us with his heavenly Tincture, and celestial Unction,
make their blessed influence felt throughout our imperfect natures, and thus, by
pervading our entire being, cause us to be partakers of His own heavenly nature.
But Satan, that grim pseudo-alchymist, ever lies in wait to draw those whom Christ
has regenerated, and made sons of God by faith through baptism, and who are
warring the good warfare, and keeping faith and a good conscience, away from the
right path - and in this attempt he and his faithful servants, our sinful flesh, and
the wicked, seductive world, are, alas, very frequently successful (for even the
just man falls seven times a day. Proverbs xxiv.). For as he lay in wait for Christ,
our Lord, Master, and Guide, and soon after His Baptism made a violent assault
upon Him; so to the present day he spreads his crafty nets and pernicious snares in
the Christian Church. Our Lord he first endeavoured to delude into doubting the
Word of God, and questioning His Father's love, by pointing to the want, hunger,
and bodily affliction, that God suffered Him to endure in the wilderness. But if
Christians do not yield to this temptation, Satan attacks them on another point,
and tries to induce them to place a foolhardy confidence (such as is not warranted
by God's word) in their heavenly Father; just as he strove to persuade Christ to
cast Himself down from the pinnacle of the Temple, seeing that God would surely
protect Him. If this device does not succeed, the Evil One is not ashamed to try a
third expedient: he promises us all the riches of this world, and the glory thereof,
if we will forsake God, become idolators, and worship Satan himself - a proposal
which he actually had the hardihood to make to Christ. These Satanic machinations
God, in His inscrutable wisdom, permits, in order that men may thereby be
exercised in faith, hope, patience, and true prayer, and prepared for the agony of
death which the old man will one day have to undergo - that thus they may gain a
final victory over their hereditary foe. This victory they will gain if they are taught
by the grace of God how to encounter the Devil's deceitful and crafty wiles.
For since, as St. Paul says, we wrestle not with flesh and blood, but with
principalities and powers, with the rulers of the darkness of this world, with the
one," says Christ, "will keep my word, this is he that loves me, and I will love him,
and we will come to him and take up our abode with him." Again: "If ye keep my
commandments, ye shall abide in my love." But this our love to God must also find
expression towards our neighbour. For "if any one love not his brother whom he has
seen, how can he love God, whom he has not seen ? And this commandment we
have of Him, that he that loves God love his brother also." The nature of this love
is described by St. Paul (I. Corinthians xiii.) in the following words: "Love suffereth
long, and is kind; love envieth not; love vaunteth not itself, is not puffed up, and
never fails." Hence it appears that there is no true love which does not show itself
in works of kindness towards our fellow men; and hence also it appears that the
good works which are acceptable to God cannot precede faith, but are its
outgrowth and precious fruit; works do not make faith good and acceptable, but it
is faith that gives their real value to works - for we are justified and obtain eternal
life by faith alone. And if a regenerate man bear himself thus lovingly and humbly
in all his life, he will never lack fruit in due season. For such a man is placed by
God in the furnace of affliction, and (like the hermetic compound) is purged with
the fire of suffering until the old Adam is dead, and there arises a new man
created after God in righteousness and true holiness, as St. Paul says (Romans vi.) :
"We are buried with Christ by baptism into death, that like as Christ was raised up
from the dead, even so we also should walk in newness of life." When this has been
accomplished, and a man is no longer under the dominion of sin, then there begins
in him something analogous to the solution of the gold added to the substance of
our chemical process. The old nature is destroyed, dissolved, decomposed, and, in
a longer or shorter period of time, transmuted into something else. Such a man is
so well digested and melted in the fire of affliction that he despairs of his own
strength and looks for help and comfort to the mercy of God alone. In this furnace
of the Cross, a man, like earthly gold, attains to the true black Raven's Head, i.e.,
loses all beauty and reputation in the eyes of the world; and that not only during
forty days and nights, or forty years, but often during his whole life, which is thus
often more full of sorrow and suffering than of comfort and joy. And, through this
spiritual dying, his soul is taken from him, and lifted up on high; while his body is
still upon earth, his spirit and heart are already in his eternal Fatherland; and all
his actions have a heavenly source, and seem no longer to belong to this earth. For
he lives no longer according to the flesh, but according to the Spirit, not in the
unfruitful works of darkness, but in the light and in the day - in works that stand
the test of fire. This separation of body and soul is brought about by a spiritual
dying. For as the dissolution of body and soul is performed in the regenerated gold,
where body and soul are separated from one another, and yet remain close
together in the same phial, the soul daily refreshing the body from above, and
preserving it from final destruction, until a set time: so the decaying and half-dead
bodily part of man is not entirely deserted by its soul in the furnace of the Cross,
but is refreshed by the spirit from above with heavenly dew; and fed and
preserved with Divine nectar. (For our temporal death, which is the wages of sin,
is not a real death, but only a natural and gentle severing of body and soul). The
indissoluble union and conjunction of the Spirit of God, and the soul of the
Christian, are a real and abiding fact. And here again we have an analogy to the
(sevenfold) ascending and descending of the soul in the chemical process. For the
tribulations and temporal sufferings of God's people have now lasted six thousand
years; but during this whole time, men have again and again been refreshed,
comforted, and strengthened by the Spirit of God - and so it is now, and ever will
be, until the great universal Sabbath and rest-day of the seventh millennium. Then
this occasional spiritual refreshing will cease, and everlasting joy will reign, since
God will be all in all.
While the digestion of the dead spiritual body in man goes forward, there may be
seen (as in the chemical process) many variegated colours and signs, i.e., all
manner of sufferings, afflictions, and tribulations, including the ceaseless assaults
of the Devil, the world, and the flesh. But all these signs are of good omen, since
they show that such a man will at length reach the desired goal. For Scripture tells
us that all that are to obtain the eternal beatitude of Christ must be persecuted in
this world, and we must enter into the kingdom of heaven through much
tribulation and anguish. This truth is well expressed in the following words of St.
Augustine: "Marvel not, brother, if after becoming a Christian you are assailed by
many troubles. For Christ is our Head, and, as His members, we must follow and
imitate, not only Him, but His life and sufferings. The life of Christ was closely
beset with all manner of tribulations, poverty, insult, mockery, scorn, sorrow, and
acute bodily suffering; and it is clear that if you would obtain the life of Christ,
you must, like Him, become perfect through suffering. For without these
afflictions and tribulations we cannot come to God. A man who would enter
Paradise must go through fire and water, whether he be Peter, to whom the keys
of heaven were entrusted, or Paul, a chosen vessel of God, or John, to whom all
the secrets of God were revealed. Every brother must enter the kingdom of heaven
through much tribulation."
It should further be observed that the Antimony of the Sages with which the gold
must be refined before being added to the Elixir, or royal chemical substance (or
before undergoing a sudatory bath with ancient grey-headed Saturn) is expressed
by the sign [circle with cross at the top]. In the same way, a ball with a cross upon
it is put into the hands of the Lord of the Holy Roman Empire, whereby it is
indicated that he, too, must experience, and be tried by the tribulations of this
world, before he can be peacefully seated upon his throne. To all this we may find
an analogy in the aforesaid School of the Cross, and the tribulations and
persecutions through which all Christians must pass, and the struggle which they
must wage with grey-headed Saturn, that is to say, the old Adam and Satan, before
they can enter into everlasting joy and rest.
Besides the aforesaid sorrows and afflictions, there are also in this world certain
signs and marvels, and great mundane revolutions, which we must diligently
consider and perpend. We must first hear of wars, and rumours of wars, various
sects, plagues, and famines; for all these things are the true forerunners and
heralds of our redemption. Then must come the general resurrection of the dead,
by which those who obtain the victory through the Blood of the Lamb (for this
second regeneration is begun and rendered possible by their first regeneration in
this life) pass into a new and unending life through the final indissoluble union of
their bodies, souls, and spirits. For by the power and effectual working of Christ,
our almighty heavenly King (to whom we are joined in a supernatural manner by
faith), we shall be endued with pure spiritual health, strength, glory, and
excellence. This marvellous union of body, soul, and spirit, this Divine glorification
and exaltation of the elect, is a, consideration fraught with reverential and
unspeakable awe (like the sight of the final chemical transformation); it is a sight
at which the very angels will stand rapt in inexpressible wonder; and then they will
see us pass into the heavens to reign with Christ, and with them, and the
ministering spirits, in everlasting glory, and joy unspeakable, world without end.
To conclude - as, in our chemico-philosophical process, it was possible and
necessary to correct at once any defect or irregularity, since otherwise the whole
compound would be corrupted and rendered useless; so, in the Christian life, every
fault must at once be carefully corrected, and put away, lest it afford a loophole
for Satan, the world, and the flesh, to creep in again, and to cause in us, so to
speak, a pernicious sublimation, or a premature redness (corresponding to the first
EPILOGUE.
Thus, gentle and well-wishing reader, I have briefly and simply set forth to you the
perfect analogy which exists between our earthly and chemical and the true and
heavenly Stone, Jesus Christ, whereby we may attain unto certain beatitude and
perfection, not only in earthly but also in eternal life. I might have done so more
grandly and copiously; but you must know that I am neither a theologian, nor,
according to the modern fashion, an Aristotelico-theologian, but a simple and
unsophisticated layman. For the knowledge which God has committed to me, I
have obtained, not at any learned academy, but in the universal school of Nature,
and by perusing the open book of God. For this reason I have expressed my
thoughts simply, and not tricked them out in sesquipedalian words, as is the
manner of professional theologians; nor do I pretend to have exhausted the
subject; all that I have done is to throw out some hints for the guidance of those
who wish to investigate it more carefully. In doing my best, I have also
endeavoured to do my duty; for every lover of the truth is bound to praise God by
revealing the knowledge entrusted to him. Besides all this, I desired to profess
publicly my belief in the true Christian faith; since at the present time many
devout and godly Christians are falsely represented and decried by lying slanderers
as heretics. Let not the blasphemies and reckless judgment of the wicked world
trouble the true Christian, against whom they are directed: for the Devil and his
servants have at all times done to the followers of Christ what they did to Christ
Himself Therefore I will say no more on this subject, but I will leave it to be
decided by the Judge of all the world.
As to the earthly Stone itself I must ask the reader to study diligently what has
gone before in our treatise as to this subject. For as in an excellent poem a verse
is sometimes repeated at least once, so on this point we are accustomed to do the
same, because the reader ought not to direct his aims and thoughts to the earthly
Philosophical Stone until he has attained a right knowledge of the Celestial Stone,
and has prepared it, or, at least, has commenced with the utmost zeal the
preparations of both together. For the earthly Stone is a gift from God, descending
by the clemency of the Celestial Stone. I agree with all the Sages that it would be
folly to attempt the study of so profound a mystery without a good previous
knowledge of Nature and her properties. But I also say that it is not merely
difficult, but quite impossible, to prepare the Philosopher's Stone without a true
knowledge of Christ, the heavenly Corner Stone, in whom all Nature lives and
moves, and has its being. This warning should be duly considered; and he who
would not expose himself to the certainty of ignominious failure, should reflect
that the mastery of any art requires persevering exercise, and that, before setting
about this search after the Philosopher's Stone, he must prepare himself by careful
and patient study. If any neglect this warning, his failure will be the result of his
own ignorance and mental immaturity.
But I wonder still more that there are to be found some men, who not only study
this Art, but even try to practice it, and yet do not quite know whether it proceeds
by natural and legitimate magic, or whether it is not after all a necromantic, or
black art, which is exercised by the illegitimate aid of the powers of hell. No, my
good friend. The Devil, wicked angels, and wicked men, have no power but that
which God suffers them to possess - and with our present glorious Art they
positively have nothing whatever to do. It is entirely in the hand of God, who
imparts it to whom He will, and takes it away from whom He will; and He does not
suffer any votaries of pleasure, or evil spirits, to partake of it. He gives it only to
the pure, true, and humble of heart. This excellence is neither known, nor
understood, by the majority of the present generation; and when the sound of it
strikes upon their ears, and they do not comprehend it, they straightway call it
foolishness. On account of this their blindness, that spirit will always be hidden
from their minds, and will at length be entirely taken away from them.
Let me, however, be permitted to impress one thing on the minds of my pious and
devout readers. In so far as a man orders his life, soul, heart, and actions aright in
the sight of God, in so far will he perceive that he is making good progress in the
discovery, preparation, and use of the Stone. This assertion is the result of my own
personal experience during many years, and it embodies my deliberate conviction.
Therefore, the best preparation for this study is, in my judgment, a diligent
amendment of heart and life.
I am aware that I here lay myself open to the objection that it is possible to
enumerate several men who actually possessed this Stone, or Tincture, and with it
transmuted base metals into gold and silver; and who yet were not good men, but
vain, profligate, and without knowledge of God. To this objection, I answer that
from whencesoever these men may have obtained the Tincture, I certainly never
will believe that they prepared it - i.e., the true and right Tincture - themselves.
The tragic end of many of these men, and the headlong destruction brought upon
them by their Tincture, prove but too clearly the truth of what I say. Moreover, all
that call themselves alchemists are not therefore necessarily true possessors of the
Stone. For, as in other branches of knowledge, there are found many different
schools and sects, so all that are in search of this precious Tincture are called
alchemists, without necessarily deserving the name.
In this tract I have spoken of true, natural, and scientific alchemy, which teaches
us to distinguish the evil and impure from the good and pure, and thus, to aid the
weakness, and correct the corruption, of Nature. We help the metals to arrive at
maturity, just as a gardener may assist fruit, which by some accident is prevented
from ripening, or as a seed or grain of corn may easily be multiplied by being sown
in the ground. Of pseudo-alchemy I neither pretend, nor care, to know anything,
because I perceive that the ways of its teachers are crooked, and that they
promise mountains of gold, without being able to redeem the least part of their
pledge; I also see that those who follow them incur great expense, ceaseless toil,
and are often ruined in body and soul. Therefore, if you encounter alchemists of
this description, who speak boastfully of their Art, and offer to teach it you for
money, I warn you to be on your guard against them. For with such men there is
mostly a serpent lurking in the grass (Micah ii.).
I think I may confidently assert that the cost of preparing the Tincture (apart from
your own daily maintenance, and the fuel required) does not exceed three florins.
For the Matter, as has already been said, is for most part, very common, and may
be everywhere obtained in abundance; and the labour is easy and simple. In brief,
the whole design can present no difficulty whatever to those whom God has chosen
for this purpose, i.e., to those who love Him ; but to the wicked it is beset with
insuperable impediments. In conclusion, let me tell you that if God in His gracious
mercy should vouchsafe to reveal to you this open secret, it will then become your
sacred duty to use it well, and to conceal your knowledge from the unworthy, to
put a seal upon your lips, and to preserve unbroken silence about it If you neglect
this well-meant warning, you may bring upon yourself the anger of God, and
persecutions of wicked men, and be justly punished with temporal and eternal
ruin.
"If any one seek riches by means of this sacred Art, let him be devout, and
simple-hearted, silent and wise. He who strives not after these virtues, will
receive the opposite of that which he desires: he will be poor, needy, naked and
wretched."
All this, beloved Reader, I desired to enjoin upon you as a farewell admonition. I
devoutly hope that God has opened your eyes, and that you have completely
apprehended my meaning. To explain the matter more clearly and openly than I
have done, I am forbidden by my vow. I can only ask you once more to peruse this
treatise carefully, and to ask God to enlighten your understanding.
APPENDIX.
If, after obtaining this knowledge, you give way to pride or avarice (under the pretext of economy and prudence), and thus gradually turn away
from God, the secret will most certainly fade out of your mind in a manner which you do not understand. This has actually happened to many who
would not be warned.
RECAPITULATORY LINES.
"If you will follow my teaching, and if you are a devout Christian man, you may take the substance which I have before indicated, and, by following
the directions I have given, you may possess all the riches of the whole world."
To this end - if you are worthy - may God in His mercy vouchsafe you His blessing. This prayer I offer up for you from the bottom of my heart.
PRAYER
Almighty, everlasting God, Father of heavenly light, from Whom proceed all good and perfect gifts: we pray Thee, of Thine infinite mercy, to
reveal to us Thine eternal wisdom, which is evermore about Thy throne, and by which all things were created and made, and are still governed and
preserved: send it down to us from heaven, and from the throne of Thy glory, that it may be with us, and work with us, seeing that it is the
teacher of all heavenly and secret arts, and knows and understands all things. Let it accompany us in all our works, that by Thy Spirit we may
attain a true understanding and certain knowledge of this Blessed Art, and of the marvellous Stone of the Sages, which Thou art wont to reveal
only to Thine elect, and hast concealed from the world. And so further us with Thy wisdom, that we may begin, continue, and complete this work
without any error, and enjoy its fruits for ever with great joy - through the Heavenly and Eternal Foundation and Corner Stone, Jesus Christ, Who
with Thee and the Holy Spirit liveth and reigneth, ever One God, world without end. Amen.
"And the Lord gave unto Israel all the land which He sware to give unto their fathers; and there failed not aught of any good thing which the Lord
had spoken unto the house of Israel; all came to pass" (Joshua xxi, 43-44.)
"Ascribe the Glory unto God Alone!" (Deuteronomy xxxii, 3.)
AMEN.
EPIGRAM.
"It is an easy matter to prepare gold in the furnace out of metals: at times there is found a man to whom the secret is revealed. Why is not every
alchemist rich? The reason is that one thing is wanting which many seek with anxious care. Common gold is not fixed, and, when brought to the
test of fire, quickly disappears and perishes. But he who knows the tired gold, which at all times remains the same, and from which nothing is lost,
he is the possessor of the true Art, and may be called a good and practical Sage and Chemist."
ANOTHER EPIGRAM.
Theology without alchemy is like a noble body without its right hand. This is graphically shewn and exhibited in the picture before us. First look at
the helmet and the two wings, which signify the love of the Art. They bear us onward to Sophia (Wisdom), who is bright like Phoebus. Her body is
naked because she is ardently loved. She is loved because she has at her disposal the riches of the whole world. He that gazes upon her beauteous
form cannot refrain himself from loving her, goddess as she is. Although this love is, as it were, hidden, yet it is constant; and that is indicated by
the mask. Her heart is sincere, her words are modest, righteousness upholds her steps, she is free from malice and guile. Her valiant appearance
shews that she is of an open mind. Yet she seems to be falling too: that is because the base world hates her, and with fierce truculence tries to
cast her down to the ground. But evermore she bravely rises on high though ambition moves her not. She is beloved by God and man. Though
mockery is to her for a garment, as is shewn by the noisy cymbals, yet she cares nothing for it, but cleaves all the more faithfully to wisdom; to it
she lifts her eyes, to it she directs her steps. For she knows that it is the only true salvation, and therefore she occupies herself with it by day and
by night. She is not anxious for worldly praise, nor does she heed the hatred and injustice of men, or care for their opinion too little or too much.
Much suffering and tribulation are inflicted upon her by this wicked world, yet she bears it with a valiant heart and holds it in disdain. For she
possesses the treasure which gives her all that she desires, and avarice dwells not in her thoughts. That in which the world delights, she accounts
as the dirt beneath her feet, since fortune is a wheel, and its revolutions are swift. Therefore she delights to tread the path of thorns, until,
leaving the world, she finds rest in the tomb. Then her righteous soul will soar aloft to heaven, and for a just reward there shall be given unto her
a diadem of stars. After her death, her praise and glory shall wax bright in the world, like unto the glorious splendour of the sun ; nor will it ever
pale, but become more intense as the years advance, and her name shall shine like a bright star for evermore.
Good heavens, how deeply I am often saddened at seeing the human race, which
God created perfect, in His own image, and appointed to be the lords of the earth,
depart so far away from me! I allude more particularly to you, O stolid
philosophaster, who presume to style yourself a practical chemist, a good
philosopher, and yet are entirely destitute of all knowledge of me, of the true
Matter, and of the whole Art which you profess! For, behold, you break vials, and
consume coals, only to soften your brain still more with the vapours. You also
digest alum, salt, orpiment, and atrament; you melt metals, build small and large
furnaces, and use many vessels: nevertheless, I am sick of your folly, and you
suffocate me with your sulphurous smoke. With most intense heat you seek to fix
your quicksilver, which is the vulgar volatile substance, and not that out of which I
make metals; therefore you effect nothing. For you do not follow my guidance, or
strive to imitate my methods, rather mistaking my whole artifice. You would do
better to mind your own business, than to dissolve and distill so many absurd
substances, and then to pass them through alembics, cucurbites, stills, and
pelicans. By this method you will never succeed in congealing quicksilver. For the
revivification you use a reverberatory fire, and make it so hot as to render
everything liquid — thus do you finish your work, and in the end ruin yourself and
others. You will never discover anything unless you first enter my workshop,
where, in the inmost bowels of the earth I ceaselessly forge metals: there you may
find the substance which I use, and discover the method of my work.
Do not suppose that I will reveal my secret to you unless you first find the growing
seed of all metals (resembling that of the animals and vegetables). I preserve in
the bosom of the earth both that which is used for their generation, and that with
which they are nourished up.
Metals Exist, vegetables Live and Grow, and animals Feel, which is more than
merely to grow. I make metals, stones, and the atramental substances out of
certain elements, which I mix and compound in a certain way. These elements you
must seek in the heart of the earth, and nowhere else. Vegetables contain their
own seed, and image; in like manner, animals are propagated, and by the same
means do generate their own likeness. Everything proceeds by the laws laid down
for it. Only you, wicked man, who try to usurp my office, have departed further
from me than any other creature. Metals have no life, or principle of generation
and growth, if they lack their own proper seed. The first is accomplished by the
four elements in nine days; the Moon goes through the twelve heavenly signs in
twenty-nine and a half days.
By the aforesaid laws, winter and summer relieve each other, the elements are
changed, generations take place in the earth — through my working, through the
working of God and the heavens, do all things subsist, the perceptible, the visible,
and the invisible. Thus all things in heaven which are comprehended under the
Moon, do work, and impart their influence to the substance, which, like a woman,
longs to conceive seed. Each star influences its own substance, and according to
their peculiar nature, they produce different things. They work first in heaven
above, then in the earth beneath in the elements, each according to its own
peculiar virtue; and hence arise species and individual things.
You are to know that these manifold influences do not pour themselves fruitlessly
upon the earthly elements. For though their working is invisible, yet it is a most
certain and real thing. The earth is surrounded by heaven, and from it obtains her
best influences and substances. Every sphere is ready to communicate its truth,
and therewith to pervade her centre. Through this motion and heat, there arise
upon earth vapours, which are the first substances. If the vapour is cold and moist,
it sinks down again to the earth, and is there preserved; that which is moist and
warm ascends to the clouds. That which is shut up in the earth I change, after a
long time, into the substance of sulphur, which is the active, and into quicksilver,
which is the passive principle. The metals are another mixture of this first
composition. The whole is obtained from the four elements, which I form into one
mass. This process I repeat so often that you have no excuse for a mistake.
After the putrefaction comes the generation, which is brought about by the
internal incombustible warmth heating the coldness of the quicksilver, which
gladly submits to this heat because it wishes to be united to its sulphur. All these
things, fire, air, and water, I have in one alembic in the earth. There I digest,
dissolve, and sublime them, without any hammer, tongs, file, coals, vapour, fire, ''
bath of S. Mary", or other sophisticated contrivances. For I have my own heavenly
fire which excites the elemental according as the matter desires to put on a
suitable and comely form. Thus I extract my quicksilver from the four elements, or
their substance. This is always accompanied by its sulphur, which is its second self,
and warms it gradually, gently, and pleasantly. Thus the cold becomes warm, and
the dry moist and oily. But the moist is not without its dry substance, nor is the dry
without its moist: one is conserved by the other in its first essence (which is the
elementary spirit of the essence, or the quintessence) from which proceeds the
generation of our child. The fire brings it forth, and nourishes it in the air, but
before that, it is decomposed in virgin earth; then water flows forth (or it flows
forth from the water), which we must seek, since it is my first Matter, and the
source of my mineral. For contrary resists strenuously to contrary, and doth in such
wise fortify itself, lest perchance it be carried away in operating; then does it
suffer transmutation, and is stripped of its form by the concupiscence of matter,
which incessantly attracts a new form.
By my wisdom I govern the first principle of motion. My hands are the eighth
sphere, as my Father ordained; my hammers are the seven planets, with which I
forge beautiful things. The substance out of which I fashion all my works, and all
things under heaven, I obtain from the four elements alone. Chaos, or Hyle, is the
first substance. This is the Mistress that maintains the King, the Queen, and the
whole court. A horseman is always ready to do her bidding, and a virgin performs
her office in the chambers. The more beautiful she is, the more beautiful do I
appear in her. Know also that I have power to give their essence to all essences,
that it is I who preserve them, and mould them into shape. Moreover, observe the
three parts into which God has divided the first substance. Of the first and purest
part He created the Cherubin, Seraphin, Archangels, and all the other angels. Out
of the second, which was not so pure, He created the heavens and all that belongs
to them; of the third, impure part, the elements and their properties. First and
best of these is Fire. Fire admits of no corruption, and contains the purest part of
the quintessence. After Fire, He made the subtle Air, and put into it a part (but
not so large a part) of the quintessence. Then came the visible element of Water,
which has as much of the quintessence as it needs. Last of all comes the Earth. All
these (like all the rest of Nature) He created in a moment of time. The earth is
gross and dark, and though it is fruitful, yet it contains the smallest part of the
quintessence. At first the elements remained as they were in their separate
spheres. So Air is really moist, but is properly tempered by Fire. Water is really
warm, but obtains its moisture from the air. The Earth is really dry, but it is also
cold; its great dryness renders it akin to fire. Fire, however, is the first of
elements which causes life and growth by its heat.
Now all these elements influence and qualify each other, so that each in its turn is
now active, now passive. For instance, Fire works upon air and earth. Earth is the
mother and nurse of all things, and sustains all that is liable to decay under
heaven. Now God has given me power to resolve the four elements into their
quintessence; this is that first substance which in every element is generically
qualified. I resolve them for my own purpose, and thereby bring about all
generation. But no one will be able to resolve me into my first substance, as he
strives to resolve the elements. For I alone can transmute the elements and their
forms, and he who thinks otherwise deceives himself. For you will never be able to
assign to each substance its proper influence, or to find the correct proportions of
the elements which are required by that substance. I alone, I say, can form
created things, and give to them their peculiar properties and substance. By my
heavenly mysteries I produce perfect works, which are justly called miracles, as
may be seen in the Elixir which has such marvelous virtue, and is of my own
forming. No art upon earth can add anything to, or improve upon, my
workmanship. Every sane person must see that nothing can be accomplished
without a perfect knowledge of the heavenly bodies, or apart from the efficacy
which abides in them; without these everything is error and misuse; and yet,
whence is a mere man to obtain this influence, and how is he to apply it to the
substance? How can he mingle the elements in their right proportions? Even if a
man were to spend a long life in the investigation of this secret (says Avicenna, De
Vir. Cord., chap. ii.), he would not get any nearer to its solution. It is entrusted to
my keeping alone, and can never be known to any man. By my virtue and efficacy I
make the imperfect perfect, whether it be a metal or a human body. I mix its
ingredients, and temper the four elements. I reconcile opposites, and calm their
discord.
This is the golden chain which I have linked together of my heavenly virtues and
earthly substances. I accomplish my works with such unerring accuracy that in
them all my power is strewn forth, and with so much skill that the wisest of men
cannot attain to my perfection. Go forth then, and behold my works, you who
think yourself so skilled a workman, and (without any knowledge of me), with your
coal fires and your S. Mary's bath, strive to make gold potable in my alembics —
and know that I cannot bear the sight of your folly. Are you not ashamed, after
considering my works, to attempt to rival them with your malodorous decoctions in
your coloured and painted vials, and thus lose both your time and your money? I
am at a loss to conceive what you can be thinking. Have pity upon yourself, and
consider my teaching. Try to understand rightly what I tell you, for I cannot lie.
Consider how that most glorious metal, gold, has received its beautiful form from
heaven and its precious substance from the earth. The generation of the precious
stones, such as carbuncles, amethysts, and diamonds, takes place in the same
manner. The substance itself is composed of the four elements; its form and
qualities it receives through heavenly influences, although the capacity of being
thus wrought upon slumbers in the element and is only brought out and purified in
the course of time. All this is accomplished by my hands alone. I am the architect,
and no one else knows the secret of life. For, however wise he may think himself,
he does not know how much to take of each element, or where to obtain it, or how
to mingle hostile elements so as to allay their discord, or how to bring the
heavenly influences to bear on these essences: He cannot even make iron, or lead,
or the very basest of metal; how then should he be able to make gold except by
stealing my treasure? The object which he desires can be accomplished by my art
alone — an art which it is impossible for man to know.
And even though we allow gold to be the most precious of metals, yet gold by
itself cannot cure diseases, or heal the imperfections of other metals, or change
them into gold. In the same way glass (which might otherwise be the Philosopher's
Stone) can never become so soft as to be rendered malleable. Gold alone is the
most precious and the most perfect of all the metals. But if you cannot even make
lead, or the minutest grain of any metals, or produce the fruit of any herb, how
hopeless must your search after the art of making gold appear! Again if you say
that you wish to produce some chemical result, even if it do not turn out to be
gold, I answer that you thereby only give a fresh proof of your folly. Can you not
understand that the secret of my innermost working must always remain a sealed
book to you? What Nature does can never be successfully imitated by any created
being. Nay, if I made gold out of seven metals, and you do not understand my
method, how can you ever hope to prepare the substance which itself changes all
metals into the purest gold, and is the most precious treasure that God has given
me? You are foolish and ignorant, if you do not know that this precious thing which
you seek is, to the created mind, the greatest mystery of Nature, and that it is
compounded by heavenly influences — and thus has power to heal and deliver men
from all diseases, and to remove the imperfection of the base metals. If,
therefore, it is in itself so perfect that it has not its like upon earth, it must surely
be the workmanship of the highest Intelligence, since no one else can even make
gold, and certainly not produce a thing which has itself the power of making gold.
Surely, to maintain that you are able to prepare such a thing, is like saying that
you cannot carry ten pounds, but that you are strong enough to carry a hundred
pounds. Put to heart, therefore, the true scope and responsibility of your intent.
I, myself, again, receive all my wisdom, virtue, and power from heaven, and my
Matter, in its simplest form, is the four elements. This is the first principle and the
quintessence of the elements, which I bring forth by reductions, time, and
circulations, by which I transmute the inferior into the more perfect, the cold and
dry into the moist and warm; and thus I preserve stones and metals in their natural
state of moisture. This is brought about by the movements of the celestial bodies,
for by them the elements are ruled; by their controlling influence like is brought to
like. The purer my substance is, the more excellent are the results produced by
the heavenly influence. And do you think that there in your alembic, where you
have your earth and water, I will be induced by your fire and heat, and by your
white and red colour, to bend my neck to your yoke, and to do your will and
pleasure? Do you think that you can move the heavens, and force them to shed
their influence upon your work. Do you think that that is an organic instrument
which gives forth sweet music only when it is touched by the musician's fingers?
You take too much upon yourself, you foolish man. Do you not know that the
revolutions of the heavens are governed by a mighty Mind, which, by its influence,
imparts power to all things?
I beseech you to remember that all great things proceed from me, and, in the last
instance, from God; and not to suppose that the skill of your hands can be as
perfect as the operation of Nature. For it is void and vain, and, ape-like, must
imitate me in all things. Nor must you suppose that your distilling, dissolving, and
condensing of your substance in your vessel, or your eliciting of water out of oil, is
the right way of following me. Far from it, my son. All your mixing and dissolving
of elements never has produced, and never can produce, any good result. Do you
wish to know the reason? Your substance cannot stand the heat of the furnace for
a single half-hour, but must evaporate in smoke, or be consumed by the fire. But
the substance with which work, can stand any degree of heat, without being
injured. My water is dry, and does not moisten what it touches; it does not
evaporate, or become less, neither is its oil consumed. So perfect are my
elements; but yours are worse than useless.
In conclusion, let me tell you that your artificial fire will never impart my heavenly
warmth, nor will your water, oil, and earth supply you with any substitute for my
substance. It is the gift of God, shed upon the elements from heaven, and upon
one more than upon another; but how, is known only to me, and to the Great
Artist who entrusted me with this knowledge. One thing more let me tell you, my
son. If you would imitate me, you must prepare all out of one simple,
self-contained Matter, in one well-closed vessel, and in one alembic. The
substance contains all that is needed for its perfect development, and must be
prepared with a warmth that is always kept at the same gentle temperature. Let
me ask you to consider the birth and development of man, my noblest work. You
cannot make a human body out of any substance whatsoever. Of my method in
forming so subtle a body neither Aristotle nor Plato had the remotest knowledge. I
harden the bones and the teeth, I make the flesh soft, the muscles cold, the brain
moist, the heart, into which God has poured the life, warm, and fill all the veins
with red blood. And in the same way, I make of one quicksilver, and of one active
male sulphur, one maternal vessel, the womb of which is the alembic. It is true
that man aids me with his art, by shedding external heat into the matrix; more
than this, however, he cannot do. He, then, that knows the true Matter, and
prepares it properly in a well-closed vessel, and puts the whole in an alembic, and
keeps up the fire at the proper degree of warmth, may safely leave the rest to me.
Upon the fire all depends, and much, therefore, does it behove you to see thereto.
Consider, therefore, the fire, which they call epesin, pepsin, pepausin, and
optesin, or natural, preternatural, and infranatural fire, which burns not. Without
the true Matter and the proper fire, no one can attain the end of his labour. I give
you the substance; you must provide the mere outward conditions. Take, then, a
vessel, and an alembic of the right kind and of the right size. Be wise, and perform
the experiment in accordance with my laws. Help me, and I will help you. I will
deal with you as you deal with me. To my other sons, who have treated me well,
have obeyed their father and mother, and submitted themselves to my precepts, I
have given a great reward, as John de Mehung, for instance, will tell you. His
testimony is also borne out by Villanova, Raymond, Morienus the Roman, Hermes
(whom they call Father, and who has not his like among the Sages), Geber, and
others who have written about this Art, and know by experience that it is true.
If you, my son, wish to prepare this precious Stone, you need not put yourself to
any great expense. All that you want is leisure, and some place where you can be
without any fear of interruption. Reduce the Matter (which is one) to powder, put
it, together with its water, in a well-closed vessel, and expose it to continuous,
gentle heat, which will then begin to operate, while the moisture favours the
decomposition. The presence of the moisture prevents the dryness of the
quicksilver from retarding its assimilation. Meanwhile, you must diligently observe
what I do, and remember the words of Aristotle (Meteor iii. and iv.), who says:
''Study Nature, and carefully peruse the book concerning Generation and
Corruption." You must also read the book concerning heaven and the world, in
which you will find indicated the beautiful and pure substance. If you neglect this
study, you will fail. On this subject consult Albertus Magnus, De Mineralibus. But if
your eyes are opened by such studies, you will discover the secret of the growth of
minerals, viz., that they are all produced from the elements.
First learn to know me, before you call yourself Master. Follow me, that am the
mother of all things created, which have one essence, and which can neither grow,
nor receive a living soul, without the heavenly and elementary influences. When
you have learned by persevering study to understand the virtues of the heavenly
bodies, their potent operations, and the passive condition of the elements, and its
reason — if you further know the media of transmutation, the cause of generation,
nutrition, and decay, and the essence and substance of the elements — you are
already acquainted with the Art, notwithstanding that a most subtle mind is still
needed for the studying of my operations. But if you do not possess part at least of
this knowledge, you will be fortunate indeed if you succeed in discovering my
secret. It is a secret that is read not by those that are wise in their own conceits,
but by those that humbly and patiently listen to my teaching Therefore, if you
desire to own this treasure, which has been the reward of the truly wise in all
ages, you must do as I bid you. For my treasure has such virtue and potency that
the like of it is to be found neither in heaven nor upon earth. It holds an
intermediate position between Mercury and the Metal which I take for the purpose
of extracting from it by your art and my knowledge that most precious essence. It
is pure and potable gold, and its radical principle is active humidity. Moreover, it
is the universal Medicine described by Solomon (Eccles. xxxviii.); the same also is
taken from the earth, and honoured by the wise. God has assigned it a place
among my mysteries, and reveals it to the Sages, although many who call
themselves learned doctors of Theology and Philosophy, hold it in ignorant
contempt — as Alchemy is also despised by the doctors of Medicine, because they
do not know me, and are ignorant of that which they profess to teach. They must
be insufficiently furnished with brains, or they would not direct their foolish scorn
against the panacea which renders all other medicines unnecessary. Happy is the
man, even though he be sinking under the weight of years, whose days God
prolongs until he has come to the knowledge of this secret! For (as Geber says)
many to whom this gift was imparted late in life, have, nevertheless, been
refreshed and delighted by it in extreme old age.
He that has this secret possesses all good things and great riches. One ounce of it
will ensure to him both wealth and health. It is the only source of strength and
recreation, and far excels the golden tincture. It is the elixir and water of life,
which includes all other things. In my treasure are concealed quicksilver, sulphur,
incombustible oil, white, indestructible, and fusible salt. I tell you, frankly, that
you will never be able to accomplish its preparation without me, just as I can do
nothing without your help. But if you understand my teaching, and cooperate with
me, you can accomplish the whole thing in a short time.
Have done with the charlatans, and their foolish writings; have done with all their
various alembics, and phials; have done with their excrements of horses, and all
the variety of their coal-fires, since all these things are of no use whatever. Do not
perplex yourself with metals, or other things of a like nature: rather change the
elements into a mutable form. For this is the most excellent substance of the
Sages, and is rejected only by the foolish. Its substance is like, but its essence
unlike, that of gold. Transmute the elements and you will have what you seek.
Sublime that which is the lowest, and make that which is the highest, the lowest.
Take quicksilver which is mixed with its active sulphur; put it into a well-closed
vial, and one alembic, plunge one-third of it into the earth, kindle the fire of the
Sages, and watch it well so that there may be no smoke. The rest you may leave to
me. I ask you to do no more, but only bid you follow my unerring guidance.
In which he confesses his errors, asks pardon for them, and returns thanks to
Nature.
Dearest Mother Nature, who, next to the angels, art the most perfect of all God's
creatures, I thank thee for thy kindly instruction. I acknowledge and confess that
thou art the Mother and Empress of the great world, made for the little world of
man's mind. Thou movest the bodies above, and transmutest the elements below.
At the bidding of thy Lord thou dost accomplish both small things and great, and
renewest, by ceaseless decay and generation, the face of the earth and of the
heavens. I confess that nothing can live without a soul, and that all that exists and
is endued with being flows forth from thee by virtue of the power that God has
given to thee. All matter is ruled by thee, and the elements are under thy
governance. From them thou takest the first substance, and from the heavens thou
dost obtain the form. That substance is formless and void until it is modified and
individualized by thee. First thou givest it a substantial, and then an individual
form. In thy great wisdom thou dost cunningly mould all thy works through the
heavenly influences, so that no mortal hand can utterly destroy them. Under thy
hands God has put all things that are necessary to man, and through thee, He has
divided them into four kingdoms, namely, those that have being and essence, like
the metals and stones; those that have essence and growth, like the vegetables;
those that have feeling and sensation, like the beasts, birds, and fishes. These are
the first three classes; in the fourth it pleased God to place only the noblest and
most perfect of His works, namely, man, to whom He also gave a rational and
immortal soul. This soul is obscured by the defilement which found its way into the
body through the senses, and, but for the grace and mercy of God, would have
become involved in its condemnation. Hence the chief perfection of man is not
derived from thee, nor dost thou impart to us our humanity. Nevertheless, the
material part of man is the work of thy hands alone.
And, surely, our bodies are cunningly and wonderfully made, and, in every part of
them, bear witness to the masterly skill of the workman. How marvellous are the
uses of our various members! How wonderful that the soul can move them and set
them to work at will! But, alas! oftener still the body is master of the soul, and
forces it to do many things which pure reason condemns. If we consider the matter
from this point of view, it seems as though thou hadst begun well, and yet thy
work had, after all, turned out an abortion. Wert thou wanting in wisdom, or
knowledge; or couldst thou not do otherwise? Pardon me if I speak too
presumptuously about thy wisdom, I only desire to be rightly and truly informed.
For, indeed, even now thy stern rebuke has made many things clear to me. I have
spent my whole life in attending to thy lessons; and the more closely I have
listened, the more clearly have I understood my mistakes and the depth of thy
wisdom. Now, whether I lie, or stand, or walk, I can think of nothing but thy great
mystery. And yet I am unable to conceive what substance and form I must take for
it. Thou didst sternly rebuke me for not following thy way; but thou knowest that,
if I do not obey thee, it is only because I do not know what thou wouldst have me
do. I shall never be able to attain any satisfactory result in this Art, unless thou
wilt enlighten my blindness. Thou hast rightly said that it is not for man to know
the mystery of thy working: how then can I be guided to this knowledge, unless
thou wilt take me by the hand? Thou sayest that I must follow thee; and I am
willing to do so. But tell me what I must do, and what books I must study for that
purpose. Of the books which I have read, one says, ''Do this," and the other, "No,
do that"; and they are full of unintelligible expressions and of dark parables. At
last I see that I cannot learn anything from them. Therefore I take refuge with
thee, and instantly beseech thee to advise and to tell me how to set about this
difficult task. On my knees I implore thee to show me the way by which I can
penetrate into the lower parts of the earth, and by what subtle process I am to
obtain the perfect mercury of the metals. And yet I doubt whether any man, even
after obtaining this mercury, can really make gold. That is thy work, and not the
work of man; as thy words and my own experience most clearly shew.
We see that the cold and moist mercury needs the assistance of its sulphur, which
is its seed after its kind, or its homogeneous sperm, out of which the metal or
Stone must be produced. But thou sayest only: Take the proper substance, the
proper vessel, the proper mineral, the proper place, and the proper fire; then
form, colour, and life will grow and spring forth from thence. Thou art the
Architect; thou knowest the glorious properties of the Matter. The active principle
can do nothing unless there be a passive principle prepared to receive its
influence. Thou knowest how to mix the warm and the cold, the dry and the moist;
by reconciling hostile elements, thou canst produce new substances and forms. For
I did indeed understand all that thou didst tell me, but am unable to express it so
well as thou. This thou hast firmly impressed on my mind, that the Elixir is
composed by the reconciling and mutual transmutation of the four elements. But
what man is sufficient for such a task? For who knows how earth can have its
essence in common with air, or how it can be changed into moisture which is
contrary to its nature? For humidity will not leave a cold and humid element, not
even under the influence of fire. This, too, is the work of Nature, that it becomes
black, and white, and red. These three visible colours correspond to the three
elements, earth, water, and fire, and are pervaded by the air.
Then, again, thou sayest that the Stone is prepared of one thing, of one substance,
in one vessel, the four (elements) composing one essence in which is one agent
which begins and completes the work; man, thou sayest, need do nothing but add
a little heat, and leave the rest to thy wisdom. For all that is needed is already
contained in the substance, in perfection, beginning, middle, and end, as the
whole man, the whole animal, the whole flower is contained each in its proper
seed. Now, in the human seed the human specific-substance is also included, as
flesh, blood, hair, &c.; and thus every seed contains all the peculiar properties of
its species. In the whole world men spring from human seed, plants from plants,
animals from animals. Now I know that when once the seed is enclosed in the
But at present I earnestly desire to know but one thing: and that is, how can that
substance be obtained, what are its qualities, and what its powers to impart
perfection to imperfect things
I am well aware that gold is the most precious of the metals; but I cannot see that
it has any capacity of becoming more potent than it already is. For whatever man
may do with it, it will never be able to perfect anything but itself. If any one told
me to dissolve it and extract from it its quicksilver, I should regard that as a very
foolish direction; for nothing can be got out of gold but what is in it. These
philosophasters betray their ignorance by saying that they can reduce gold to its
first substance; but thy instruction has made it clear to me that the first substance
cannot be obtained, except by destroying the specific properties of a thing, nor
can any new species be brought forth by such a destruction, unless the species be
first universalized into the genus. Moreover, I make bold to affirm that no man can
first resolve gold into its generic substance, and then restore it again; for when it
has once lost its specific properties, no mere human skill can change it back into
what it was before. Nor can any one really reduce gold to the first form imparted
to it by the elements. For gold is not transmuted either by heat or by cold, and is
so perfect in its kind that fire only renders it purer. It does not admit of any
further development, and therefore no other metal or quicksilver can be obtained
from it.
It is true that plants and animals are constantly producing their like by means of
their seed, and their capacity of organic nutrition. But I do not see how the same
can be said of metals, seeing that at the expiration of any given period they still
retain the same size and weight which they had at the beginning. Through thee
they receive their being out of the elements without any sowing, planting, or
development of any kind. Moreover, I know that no credit is to be attached to the
fanciful notions of the old Sages who would prepare our Stone out of a crude
metallic substance, and do not understand that the form and substance of a thing
are conditioned by its essential nature. Now, I remember a certain juggling
charlatan, who was looked upon as a great philosopher, telling me that the only
true material was common quicksilver, which must be well mingled with gold,
since in such an union the one brought the other to perfection. If I did this,
continued that impostor, I should be able to prepare the Elixir. First, however, the
four elements must be separated from each other, then, after each had been
purified, they must be reunited, the great being combined with the small, and the
subtile with the gross. This, he said, was the right way of making the Stone. But I
know that all this is sheer nonsense, and that such men are only deceiving
themselves and others.
I am also aware that only God can produce anything out of the elements. He alone
knows how to mingle and combine them in their due proportions. For He alone is
the Creator and Author of all good things, and there is nothing in the world that He
has not made. Therefore, let the charlatans cease their vain-glorious talk, and
remember that they can never hope to gather where they cannot sow; let them
make an end of their false calcinations, sublimations, distillations, by which they
extract the spirit in a vaporous form, and of their juggling coagulations and
congelations, by which they pretend, even among the initiated, to be able rightly
to separate the elements of gold and quicksilver. It is certainly true that all things
under heaven are composed of the four elements, and mixed of them according to
the due proportion of their genus and species; but it is not simply the union of the
four elements, but their being combined in a certain way, which constitutes the
substance of the Philosophical Stone.
I also understand that in the red quicksilver and perfect body, which is called the
Sun, the four elements are combined in a peculiar way, and so inseparably
conjoined, that no mere human art can divide them. For all ancient and true Sages
say that fire and air are enclosed in earth and water, and contend so violently with
each other that none but God and Nature can loosen their grappling embrace. This
I can truly affirm and also prove. For we can neither see the fire nor grasp the air;
and if any one says that the several elements can be seen he is an impostor, seeing
that they are inseparably and inextricably conjoined. For, although the Sophists
pretend, and confidently affirm, that they can divide gold and quicksilver into the
four elements, yet for all that they speak not the truth. If two elements, fire and
air, were thus taken away, all the rest must vanish into nothing. They may say that
those two are retained, but they are, nevertheless, densely ignorant as to what
becomes of them; for air and fire cannot be seen or perceived. Again, that extract
which they call fire and air renders humid, which is not the property either of fire
or of air.
Moreover, as thou hast said, even the most learned Doctor cannot know the
proportion of each element in any given substance. For God has entrusted this
knowledge to thee alone. Nor is any Sage wise enough to be able to mingle and put
together the elements so as to produce any natural object. If then he dissolves
anything into its elements, how, I pray thee, is he to put them together again into
any abiding form, since he is ignorant of their proportionate quantity and quality,
and of the method of their composition? Yet it is of no use to separate them, if
they cannot be put together again. To thee, O Nature, we must entrust this task,
since thou knowest the art of preparing the Philosopher's Stone, and of combining
the elements without first separating them. Nevertheless, for the preparation of
the true Elixir, thou needest the aid of a wise and truly learned man. Aristotle
says: "Where the physicist ends, there the physician begins." Nor can we attain to
true alchemy, until we begin to follow Nature, and to be guided by a knowledge of
her principles. Where the study of Alchemy is rightly carried on, it is mightily
advanced by Nature. But, for all that, we must not suppose that every natural
substance must be useful to the alchemist. We must remember that Alchemy has a
threefold aim: First, to quicken and perfect the metal, and so to digest its spirit
that none of it is lost; secondly, so to digest and heat the substance in a small
phial that (without the addition of anything else) the body and spirit are changed
into one. The mingling of the elements is performed, not by the artist, but by
thee. Thirdly, it (alchemy) proves that the process of preparing the Stone does not
include any separation of the four elements (of the quicksilver and the Sun, which
is called red and glorious gold). To believe that such a separation must take place
is a great mistake, and contradicts the fundamental principles of philosophy.
Thus, I have learnt from thee, O Nature, that Alchemy is a true science, and that
the deep red gold, which is called Sun, is the true father of the Stone or Elixir,
from which this great and precious treasure proceeds; which heats, digests, and
cunningly tinges (without the least diminution or corruption) the other principle of
that gold, and thus brings forth so glorious a son. It is worse than useless,
therefore, to meddle with the composition, or to separate the elements, which
Nature has so skillfully combined in the quicksilver, and in the perfect body of the
gold. All we have to do is to imitate Nature, and use the instruments with which
she combines the elements, and which she uses in moulding minerals, and in giving
its form to the quicksilver. If we act otherwise, we destroy thy works, and sever
the golden chain which thou hast forged. Nevertheless, we must, as Aristotle says,
transmute the elements that we may obtain the object of our search.
Thus thou hast wisely led me into thy way, and hast shewn me the utter folly of
my own doings. Unto thee I render the most heartfelt thanks for that thou hast
delivered me from my own ignorance, and from the disgrace and ruin to which all
my endless alembics quicksilvers, aquae fortes, dissolutions, excrements of horses,
and coal fires, must at length have brought me.
In future, I will read thy book more diligently, and obey thee more implicitly. For
this is the surest and safest way that a man can go, because the Art is entirely in
thy hands, although, by reason of its gigantic aim, its progress must necessarily be
slow. Therefore, I will lose no more time, and first begin to think about the
substance, the active principle of which shall yield me most potent quicksilver.
That I will enclose in a clean, air-tight phial, and under it I will place an alembic;
thereupon thou wilt wait upon thine office. From the bottom of my heart I once
more render unto thee the debt of unspeakable gratitude, for that thou hast
deigned to visit me, and to bestow upon me so precious an inheritance. In token of
my gratitude I will now do thy bidding, and let it be my ceaseless aim to attain to
this most glorious Tincture of the Elements, feeling assured that with the help of
the thrice great and good God, I shall succeed.
Beloved friend and brother, under the name of this glorious Art there is to be
found much false teaching which is put forward by pseudo-alchemists, whose
writings are nothing but imposture and deceit, and are yet highly esteemed by
people of the simpler sort. These charlatans induce their dupes to waste much
money and time on that which can profit them nothing; for unless a thing be well
begun, it can never be brought to a good end. Yet most men, who, nowadays, have
devoted themselves to this exalted art of chemistry, are pursuing a wrong course,
and are deceivers or deceived. The deceivers are conscious of their own ignorance,
and try to veil it under an obscure and allegorical style. The less they really know,
the more pompous and the more unintelligible do their speculations become. But
the reader, who is puzzled by their perplexing style, may at least comfort himself
with the assurance that he knows as much about the matter as the authors. That
assurance must serve for a kind of clue to the endless labyrinth of their false
sublimations, calcinations, distillations, solutions, coagulations, putrefactions, and
corruptions. Nevertheless, we may almost every (lay see foolish persons spend
their whole substance on those absurd experiments, being induced to do so by the
aforesaid pseudo-alchemists, who impose on them with a false process, and
fanciful perversions of Nature.
With these useless and unnecessary experiments the true Alchemists will have
nothing to do. They follow the method pursued by Nature in the veins of the earth,
which is very simple, and includes no solutions, putrefactions, coagulations, or
anything of the kind Can Nature, in the heart of the earth, where the metals do
grow and receive increase, have anything corresponding to all those
pseudo-alchemistical instruments alembics, retorts, circulatory and sublimatory
phials, fires, and other materials, such as cobbler's wax, salt, arsenic mercury,
sulphur, and so forth? Can all these things really be necessary for the growth and
increase of the metals? It is surprising that any one not entirely bereft of his senses
can spend many years in the study of alchemy, and yet never get beyond those
foolish and frivolous solutions, coagulations, putrefactions, distillations, while
Nature is so simple and unsophisticated in her methods. Surely every true Artist
must look upon this elaborate tissue of baseless operations as the merest folly, and
can only wonder that the eyes of those silly dupes are not at last opened, that
they may see something besides such absurd sophisms, and read something besides
those stupid and deceitful books. It seems that they are so entangled in their
sophisms that they can never attain to the freedom of true philosophy.
But let me tell you that so long as you love lies, and turn away from rational
philosophy, you will never find the right way. I can speak from bitter experience.
For I, too, toiled for many years in accordance with those sophistic methods, and
endeavoured to reach the coveted goal by sublimation, distillation, calcination,
circulation, and so forth, and to fashion the Stone out of substances such as urine,
salt, atrament, alum, etc. I have tried hard to evolve it out of hairs, wine, eggs,
bones, and all manner of herbs; out of arsenic, mercury, and sulphur, and all the
minerals and metals. I have striven to elicit it by means of aqua fortis and alkali. I
have spent nights and days in dissolving, coagulating, amalgamating, and
precipitating. Yet from all these things I derived neither profit nor joy. I had hoped
much from the quintessence, but it disappointed me like the rest.
from finding that which, by the grace of God, can provide for them so many
precious blessings. In the first place they call it "our mercury," by which they mean
nothing but moisture, which begins to unite itself with the fire, and therefore may
be compared to mercury. Again, they use the expression, "our sulphur," whereby
they mean nothing but the fire itself, which lies hid beneath the water, or
humidity, and is heated by the water to its highest degree. Then, again, they call
it Hyle, or the First Substance, because all things are first generated out of water
and fire. Other names, such as Arsenic, Orpiment, Bismuth, are not used by the
Sages at all, but only by certain ignorant charlatans, of whom we need not take
any further notice. Let us follow the guidance of Nature: she will not lead us
astray.
If you let this be your motto, you will surely be able to call to mind the first
substance, out of which all metallic substances are generated. But before we
consider this question, it will much behove you to understand why the Sun, Moon,
Venus, Mars, Jupiter, and Saturn, are metals, and what is their origin. Besides
finding an answer to this question, you must also bear in mind that all created
things are divided into three kingdoms, viz., the animal, the vegetable, and the
mineral. To the first belong all living things that have flesh and blood; to the
second all herbs, plants, and trees; to the third all metals, stones, and everything
that cannot be burned.
But, though divided into three classes, yet all things, O my brother, may be traced
back to one common Principle, from which they derive their generation, or birth.
By different varieties of heat this first substance is transmuted in various ways,
and assumes different specific forms. Since, then, Nature is so simple, I advise you
once more to have done with all those foolish sublimations, coagulations, and
putrefactions, and the ridiculous old wives' fables which are even now believed by
many, and simply to follow Nature, and her unsophisticated methods: then she will
take you by the hand, and guide you to the true substance. For the only method of
correcting or ameliorating Nature, consists in the natural heating of essences.
Now, this Essence, my friend, is the principal thing, on which depends the whole
matter. This simple truth, the vulgar herd of alchemists seem quite unable to
understand, and thus go on toiling day by day with substances which have nothing
to do with the matter. They might as well sow horn, or wood, or stones, and
expect a golden harvest of corn. The sun and moon cannot be made out of all
substances, but only out of the natural Essence out of which all things are formed,
being afterwards differentiated into divers substances by different varieties of
heat. Thus the special quality of every individual thing is to be referred to the
degree of its coction. If, therefore, we wish to exercise the true Art of Alchemy,
we must imitate the method by which Nature does her work in the bowels of the
earth.
The ancients have named many colours in connexion with this process, such as
black, white, citrine, red, green, and so forth. All this is simply intended to lead
you astray from the right road, and to keep you in ignorance. Those ancient
writers were constantly at the greatest pains to obscure their style with such a
perplexing variety of allegorical expressions as to render it impossible for the
ordinary reader to understand their meaning.
Therefore, I would again and again exhort you not to believe them when they tell
you that you must have or take a black substance, or that the substance turns
black, white, and red in the course of the chemical process. The black colour was
suggested to them by the fact that the substance or essence at first mingles with a
brilliant material fire, by which a liquid is separated from the essence in the form
of a certain black fume. This black fume the ancients called the Black Raven, and
the essence they denominated the Raven's Head. This separation you should
carefully observe. From it the ancients learned that the separation of natural
substances is nothing but a natural defect of the heating process. This, again,
suggested to them the consideration that those essences that had been imperfectly
heated by Nature, might be aided in a natural manner by ordinary fire, and that
thus the essences which are still combustible, and their liquids (which the ancients
invidiously called mercury) being black when they are separated from the essence,
might be perfected by art, and the essences guarded against combustion by their
liquid, and the liquid rendered incapable of being separated from the essence.
This the ancients called "our sulphur." For after this preparation the essence is no
longer vegetable or animal, but by the perfection of its heating it has become a
mineral essence, and is therefore called sulphur; the essence is nothing but an
elementary fire, and its liquid, which is guarded against combustion, is true
elementary air, and, because air is naturally warm and moist, it is called mercury
by those jealous ancients. Air contains in itself the nature of fire, and elementary
fire, again, contains within itself the nature of air: thus, by the union of their
common elements, a true amalgamation of the two can take place. Such are the
material fire and water which we see. These material elements are nothing but an
aid to the essences of the elements by which they can be naturally reduced to the
highest degree (of perfection?). This gradation is the only true Alchemy, and there
is none beside. The pseudo-alchemy of our modern charlatans is mere waste of
money and time.
It would be a great mistake for you to suppose that you can derive any real
knowledge from the writings of the Sages. They show you only the outside, and
conceal the internal Essence. To you they offer the husks, but the finest of the
wheat they keep for themselves. They show you a way which they do not dream of
treading. I advise you, therefore, in future, to give them a wide berth; or you will
only enrich the apothecaries while you plunge yourself and your family into the
deepest poverty; nay, instead of gaining the universal panacea, you will contract
the most dangerous diseases from constantly moving in an atmosphere black with
sulphurous and mercurial smoke, and fetid with the stench of bismuth and all
manner of salts.
It is truly amazing that none of the seekers after this great treasure, though willing
to submit to any amount of labour and hardship for its sake, seem capable of
perceiving the lesson which constant failure is striving to impress upon them.
What, I pray you, have those thousands of persons, who have tried the solutions,
coagulations, putrefactions, amalgamations, and circulations, gained by their
agonising toil? What good result have they produced with their waters, solutions of
metals, blood, hair, eggs, milk, sugar, and all manner of herbs? Let me beseech
you to profit by their heart-breaking experience, and to have done with everything
but true Alchemy, which teaches that the substance is brought to perfection, and
attains the exaltation of elementary fire, by its own light and liquid- by which also
imperfect metals are ameliorated, because their elementary fire was not properly
digested by its liquid. And for the same reason the elementary fire cannot remain,
for the liquid is separated from that elementary fire by the heat of the ordinary
fire, and evaporates in the form of white smoke. The elementary fire, on the other
hand, does not evaporate, but abides with its earth, and must be burned with it,
because its protecting liquid has vanished in white smoke. This is that whiteness of
which the Ancients have said that it comes after the black colour. For this reason,
they are in the habit of saying that you must make it black before you make it
white. We begin our process with blackness, and transmute the black smoke, but
do not take it for our substance, and make it white. The latter would be a foolish
supposition and imposture. If you would avoid such misapprehensions, you must
not attempt the study of this subject until you have a sound knowledge of the
operations of Nature, and more especially of the essential properties of the
metals.
I am afraid, my Brother, that my book will cause you heaviness of heart, instead of
joy, because I sweep away at one fell stroke all those false sophistical notions
which had become so dear to you. Nevertheless, you must once for all relinquish
that idea of yours that you are profoundly versed in the mysteries of this Art, and
leave these childish absurdities to those who derive wealth and profit from them.
Among these persons, Adam de Bodenstein held a very distinguished place; for he
wrote all manner of so-called theosophical books, and boasted of his attainments
in the alchemistic Art, of which he was really quite ignorant. Yet to the present
day many people believe that he (whose expressions are those of a mere
charlatan) had a real knowledge of true alchemy. It is true that his nonsense
cannot for a moment impose on the initiated; but among the blind (as the proverb
says) it is easy to win golden opinions as a good fencer. On this account, and as
Bodenstein is no more among the living, I will dismiss the subject, for nothing but
what is favourable should be spoken of the dead and of the absent. This I will say,
however, that he was a good Sophist and a good physician; but of Alchemy he
knew little or nothing. I should not have said this much if I were not really anxious
to warn the unwary against being dazzled by the splendour of his name, and to
prevent them from being lured on by it to their own ruin.
If, then, you are a lover of the truth, you will bid farewell to these specious
absurdities, and henceforth entrust yourself to the guidance of Nature alone; be
sure that she will lead you onward without faltering to the desired goal, even that
method by which she works towards the essence. Moreover, she will demand of
you neither much labour nor any considerable outlay The whole thing is done by a
simple process of heating, which includes the solution and coagulation of the
bodies, and also the sublimation and putrefaction. But some writers have
substituted for the simple and true essence a certain other essence, with which
they have deceived the whole world, and involved many persons in considerable
losses. Whether their conduct was upright and loving will one day be decided by
the Great Judge. It would be better not to publish such writings, since the false
statements and groundless assertions with which they swarm, plunge so many
credulous persons into grievous losses. For if there were not so many books put
forward by ignorant writers, many thousands of persons who at the present
moment are hopelessly floundering about in a sea of specious book-learning would
have been led by the light of their own unaided intellects to the knowledge of this
precious secret; they are prevented, these many years, from seeing the plain truth
by a vast mass of printed nonsense which commands their reverence, because they
do not understand it. The Ancients did indeed know something about the Art; but
at the present day we can very well dispense with the cumbrous phraseology under
which they (most successfully) attempted to veil their meaning. It can only tend to
the bewilderment of honest enquirers, who are thereby thrown off the true scent,
unless indeed they should come to be instructed by living Masters.
I myself may not speak out as plainly as I would, for I am silenced by the vow
which binds all the masters of the Art, the curse that lights on those who violate
the sacred seal of Nature's secrets, and the malediction of all the philosophers.
Therefore, I must exhort you again and again to trust your own observations rather
than the writings of others, and to let the Book of Nature be the most favoured
volume of your library. Observe her methods, not only in the production of metals,
but in the procreation of the fruits of the earth, and their constant growth and
development, in the winter and summer, in the spring and autumn, by rain and
sunshine. If you had a sound knowledge of Nature's methods in producing the bud
and the flower, and in ripening the green fruit, you would be able to set your hand
to the germs which Nature provides in the bowels of the earth, and to educe from
them (or their substance) that which you so much desire. Forgive me then, my
Brother, for so unceremoniously overthrowing all your old settled and dearly
cherished convictions. My excuse must be that I have done it for your own good, as
you would otherwise never learn the true secret of transmuting metals. You may
believe and trust me, for I can have no conceivable motive for filling the world
with fresh lies of which, God knows, it is already full enough, through the agency
of the aforesaid deceivers and their willing dupes, who after being lured on by
those false books to the loss of all their worldly goods, have not suffered their eyes
to be opened by their losses, and seem unable to find their way out of that
gigantic labyrinth of falsehood. Nay, they have even taken upon themselves to
write books, and to speak as if they were perfect masters of the Art, and had
derived great advantage from it, though in reality they have been brought so low
as to be able to afford nothing but miserable decoctions. They dissolved until their
whole fortune had undergone a process of dissolution; they sublimed until all their
gold and silver had evaporated; they putrefied until their clothes decayed upon
their bodies; and they calcined until all their wood and coal were consumed to
ashes, and they themselves were reduced to wallet and staff.
This is the prize which they have won with all their trouble. Let their ruin be a
warning to you, my Brother. For their alchemy instead of imparting health, is
followed by penury and disease; instead of transmuting copper into gold, it
changes gold into copper and brass. Consider also how many ignorant persons, such
as cobblers, tailors, bankrupt merchants, and tavern keepers, pretend to a
knowledge of this Art, and, after a few years' unsuccessful experimenting in the
laboratory, call themselves great doctors, announce in boastful and sesquipedalian
language their power to cure many diseases, and promise mountains of gold. Those
promises are empty wind, and their medicines rank poison, with which they fill the
churchyards, and for the impudent abuse of which God will one day visit them with
heavy punishment. But I will leave the magistrates and the jailers to deal with
these swindling charlatans. I speak of them only to put you on your guard. If so
many persons write on the subject of Alchemy, who know nothing whatever about
the nature and generation of metals, it becomes all the more necessary for you to
be careful what books you read, and how much you believe.
For I tell you truly that so long as you have no real and fundamental knowledge of
the nature of the metals, you cannot make much progress in the true Art of
Alchemy, or understand the natural transmutation of metals. You must grasp the
meaning of every direction before you can put it into effect. Always mistrust that
which you do not understand (i.e., in studying this art). There are many false
ways, but there can be only one that is true, and indicates a process which does
not require many hands, or much labour. For this reason, beloved friend and
Brother, you must work hard by day and by night to obtain a thorough knowledge
of the metals, and of their essential nature. Then you will be able to understand
the requirements of the art. You will know without being told what is the true
substance and the true method. You will see the utter uselessness of your former
labour, and you will be amazed at your former blindness. Study the nature of
metals and the causes of their generation, for they derive their birth from the
For as by a heating process the infant is developed in the mother's womb out of
the father's seed, and as the chicken is brought forth out of the egg by the natural
incubation of the hen, so the metals, too, are developed in a certain way out of a
certain substance. Yet I do not say, my Brother, that mercury and sulphur are the
first substance of metals. Those juggling deceivers have told you so; but in the
veins of the earth, where the metals grow, are found neither mercury nor sulphur.
Therefore, when they speak of sulphur, you must understand them to allude to
elementary fire, and by mercury you must understand the liquid. In a similar lying
spirit they have called fire (elementary) "our Sun," and the liquid "our Moon," or
the elementary fire soul, and the elementary liquid spirit, because elementary
substances are invisible. The soul is invisible fire, and the spirit invisible moisture:
the outward essential fire and water they have called ' bodies,' because they are
visible and palpable. Nay, they try to make you believe that these are metallic
bodies, and that you must dissolve them. But do not let them deceive you. Be on
your guard against their dishonest tricks, and cunning devices, by which they set
you to experiment with metallic bodies, when they really mean the metallic
essence.
They point out to you various materials and substances, notwithstanding that there
is only one true substance, and one true method. Be sure that their solutions,
coagulations, sublimations, calcinations, and putrefactions, do not represent the
method of Nature in the heart of the earth, where the metals grow. For pious
Nature only heats the elementary fire which is thereby ameliorated and fixed
through its liquid; which latter she also changes, by various degrees of heat, into
all the various objects which compose the three natural kingdoms-and although
now it is differentiated into bodies so different as vegetables, animals, and
minerals, yet they have all originally sprung from one common substance, all have
one root, which the Ancients denominated the first Matter or Hyle. But it is really
nothing but hidden elementary fire, with its liquid, which the Ancients called the
root liquid, radical moisture, or humid radical, because it is the root of all created
things.
This liquid, with its fire, is differentiated into the various kinds of natural bodies,
by the various degrees of heat, or 'coction,' which take place in them. One thing is
more perfectly heated in its elementary fire through its liquid, than another. The
vegetable nature is that in which the coction is least perfect. Therefore its essence
is easily burned, and its liquid easily separated from its elementary fire, by
common fire.
must first give out a black smoke before it gives out a white. Again they say: You
must first make it white before you make it red. To make red is to make perfect,
because gold and silver have been rendered perfect by coction, their essence
being fully united to their liquid, and changed into pure fire.
Do not then suffer yourself to be thrown off your guard by the obscure phraseology
of the Ancients. If you thoroughly study the simple fundamental nature of the
metals, you will know what their enigmatic expressions mean, and will not, like
some moderns, conclude from their writings that you must take a certain
substance and dissolve it until it turns black., then again purify and calcine it till
the blackness disappears and it begins to turn white; and after that, once more
increase the fire and calcine and toil until the substance turns red. Such an
interpretation of the language of the Ancients can only suggest itself to persons
entirely ignorant of the nature of metallic substances; indeed, the Ancients wrote
as they did solely in order to hide their real meaning from all but the close
students of Nature. To this end they were in the constant habit of employing the
terms "mercury " and "sulphur." And although the metallic essence is the true
substance which, by natural coction, must be raised from the lowest to the highest
stage of development, and although the meaning of the Ancients is intelligible
enough to the initiated, yet the ignorant can gather from their language no more
than the fact that the substance must be taken from the metals. But where are
they to obtain it, and how are they to bring it to perfection?
The metallic essence can not be separated from the imperfect metals without
being injured; for if it be separated with fire the liquid must evaporate, and the
essence (with its earth) be consumed. Nor will you be able to separate the essence
of the imperfect metals by means of aqua fortis, arsenic, aqua vita-, or alkali,
without injuring the essence and its liquid by the foreign moisture: for the metallic
nature can bear no foreign substance, and if any foreign moisture combines with
the metallic liquid, it loses its proper quality and is entirely corrupted. The
metallic essence of the perfect metals you cannot obtain in a separate form; for
their liquid and elementary fire are welded together by so perfect a process of
coction, and so closely united with their earth, that neither fire nor water can
avail to separate them, seeing that the fire has no power over them, and no
foreign moisture can combine with, or corrupt, the liquid of perfect metals. All
your labour will be in vain: the coction has done its work so well that you will
never be able to undo it.
Hence, the Ancients said that there was no sulphur in anything but in the metals,
and hence also they called the metallic liquid quicksilver. But names do not alter
facts: the fact is that the elementary fire must be so united to its elementary
liquid by natural coction that they become indivisible. For the liquid protects the
fire against combustion, so that both remain fixed and unchanged in common fire.
This perfected substance the Ancients have well called Elixir, or fire which has
undergone a process of perfect coction: for that which before was crude and raw is
"cooked," or digested by the process of coction. That element which, by its
imperfection, causes base metals to be broken up and disintegrated by fire, has
been digested and perfected by natural heat.
For this reason you must not grudge the labour which the proper performance of
this heating process demands, seeing that it includes purification, sublimation,
dissolution, and all the other chemical processes enumerated by the ancient
alchemists. All these you may safely dismiss from your mind, as they can cause you
nothing but trouble, loss, and waste of time. My purpose in writing this faithful
admonition is to caution you again and again to beware of those pitfalls with which
the contemptuous obscurity of the Ancients has so plentifully beset the path of the
ingenuous enquirer. I also desired to suggest to you the true substance, and the
one true method and have throughout endeavoured to express myself in a style as
free from allegorical obscurity as possible. I have recalled you from your
wanderings in the pathless wilderness, and put you in the right way. Now you must
beseech Almighty God to give you the real philosophical temper, and to open your
eyes to the facts of nature. Thus alone you will be able to reach the coveted goal.
Table Of Paradise;
A True Account Of The Ancient Science Which Adam Learned
From God Himself; Which Noah, Abraham, And Solomon
Held As One Of The Greatest Gifts Of God; Which
Also All Sages, At All Times, Preferred To The
Wealth Of The Whole World, Regarded As
The Chief Treasure Of The Whole
World, And Bequeathed Only To
Good Men;
Namely
"For this they willingly, through their wickedness, are ignorant or, that through the
Word of God the heavens were of old, and the earth standing out of the water, and
in the water."
A most precious book, containing art, the like of which is not to be found upon
earth; shewing the truth concerning the true Philosophy, and the most noble
medicine, and priceless Tincture, together with divers other valuable Arts, and the
instruments required for them.
Now, in the name of God, the Almighty Creator and Preserver of this World, I
venture to shew forth the hidden mysteries of Nature, which God has planted
there, and deigns to reveal to men, that they may see how marvellously things are
created, and how wonderfully all classes of natural objects are brought forth: for a
testimony to all believing Christian men, and for a comfort to all afflicted and
troubled hearts -- seeing that all things created perish and are decomposed only to
be renewed again, to be multiplied, animated, and perfected after their kind. For
nothing that is created, or born, is at rests but daily undergoes increase or
multiplication on the part of Nature, until it becomes that which is created and
ordained to be the treasure of all mankind.
Therefore, beseech God to give you such wisdom and understanding as will enable
you to understand this Art, and to bring it, by His blessing, to a good issue for His
own glory, and the good of your neighbour.
If then you would obtain this knowledge at the hand of God, you must confess
yourself a miserable sinner, and implore His blessing, which alone can enable you
to receive His Gift worthily, and to bear in mind that He has bestowed it upon you
out of pure mercy, and that any pride or presumptuous insolence on your part will
most certainly entail its loss, in addition to His wrath, and eternal condemnation.
You must resolve to begin this blessed and divine work in the name of God, for the
service of all good Christians, and the building up of our faith; to be a good athlete
in the war against unbelievers; to shun the company of wicked men; never to open
your mouth against the righteous; but to bestow your bounty upon the needy in
order that after this life you may receive the crown of eternal joy and beatitude.
For this treasure, which is above all other earthly treasures, is granted to him
alone who approves himself humble, honest, gentle, and faithful, as far as the
weakness of human nature allows, and keeps the laws of God through God's bounty
and blessing, and who is not likely to mistake the true nature of the gift, or to
abuse it against his own eternal welfare. It is the gift of the Holy Spirit, the loving
bounty of the great God, which comes down from the Father of light. He who
masters this Art, must have asked and obtained wisdom of God, since he has not
only gold, silver, and all the riches of this world, but also perfect health, length of
days, and, what is better still, the comfort toe be derived from a reassuring type
of the bitter passion and death of our Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ, His descent
into hell, His glorious and most holy Resurrection on the third day, and His victory
and triumph over sin, death, Devil, and hell -- a victory that must carry joy and
comfort to all that have the breath of life.
Let me now shew you how wonderfully the human and divine natures of Jesus
Christ were united and joined together in one Person. The soul and body of Christ
and His divine nature were so inseparably joined together that they cannot be
severed throughout all eternity. Nevertheless Christ had to die, and His soul had to
be separated from His body, and once more joined to it on the third day, that His
body might be glorified, and rendered as subtle as His soul and spirit. For He had
received His body of the substance of the most Blessed Virgin Mary, and therefore
it had to be perfected by temporary separation from His soul and Spirit.
Nevertheless, His divinity remained united in one essence with the body and soul
of Christ -- it was with the body in the tomb, and with His soul in Paradise.
The body of Christ had to be separated from its soul in order that it might receive
the same power and glory. But now, Christ having been dead, and His soul having
afterwards been reunited to His body, they are henceforth inseparably conjoined
into one subtle essence. His divine omnipotence which He received from His
Father, which governs all things in heaven and earth, and is equally perfect from
all eternity, is now one Person with the Christ Jesus, who suffered, died, rose
again, and ascended into heaven, in endless power, glory, majesty, might, and
honour.
Therefore, O sinful man, render thanks to Almighty God for the grace and fatherly
loving kindness shewn to you; and rest assured that you may obtain the
glorification which was given to Christ. For Christ rose first that he might open up
for you a way unto His heavenly Father. Like Him, you too must be crucified to this
world by many hardships, tribulations, and anxieties. But that you may understand
the glorification of the body, and its renewal to eternal life, you should dilligently
consider God's fatherly love and mercy towards fallen man. Bear in mind that all
things that come down from Him are good and perfect gifts. Take care, therefore,
lest you foully abuse the gifts bestowed upon you freely, without any merit of your
own, to the destruction of your soul; rather let all your actions shew that you love
and fear God, and then every labour to which you set your hand will prosper, and
from beginning to end you will pursue the work successfully and joyously. Commit
your care to God, trust His word, and keep His holy commandments: then God will
be with you in all things, will bless your toil, and in His fatherly love forefend all
loss and harm. Your art will then afford you true comfort, yield you al] you need,
refresh you amid all your hardships, supply you with the means of relieving the
necessities of others, and constantly keep before your eyes a living type of your
own glorious resurrection, and of that of all Christian believers -- whereby we must
exchange this earthly and mortal life for endless joy and the glory of eternal and
incorruptible beatitude.
Let me then tell you, who would be a true lover of this Art, that it was first
delivered by God to Adam in Paradise. For it is a true revelation of many secrets
and mysteries. It shews you the vanity of your body and of your life in this world;
but it also solaces you with the hope of eternal salvation. It suggests to you the
reflection that if God has infused such wonderful virtues into mere inanimate
natural objects, surely we, who are so much better than they, must be reserved
for some high and glorious destiny. I beseech you, therefore, to acquit yourself
wisely in all that you do -- not to be in haste, -- but to reveal this mystery to no
mortal man, unless he be a lover of this Art and of a godly, sincere, and merciful
temper. Such was the practice of the ancient Sages to whom this wisdom was
revealed by the inspiration of the Holy Spirit. You must also confess that this Art is
real, for the sake of those who will not believe that Jesus Christ proceeded from
His Almighty Heavenly Father, and was also born of a pure virgin. Moreover, you
must ask God to enlighten you by the gift of His Holy Spirit, to sharpen your
understanding, to open your eyes, and to grant you a profound insight into that
unfathomable wisdom which lies hid in our Art, and which no Sage has ever been
able to express in his writings. For there are many secrets in Nature which it is
impossible for our unaided human reason to apprehend. If you follow my directions
and suffer yourself to be guided by the grace of God, then the work which you
undertake for the glory of God, and for the good of your neighbour, will have a
joyful issue. Feed the hungry; give drink to the thirsty; clothe the naked; comfort
the afflicted; visit the sick and the prisoners: and you shall have what you desire.
to all the lovers of this Art, in which they can see, as in a mirror, all the
fundamental and essential requirements thereof; whether it is possible or not to
arrive at the true Art, and concerning the same.
I would warn all and sundry, but especially you, my beloved disciples, in clear and
impressive language, to be on your guard against all fantastical teaching, and to
listen to the truthful information which I shall now proceed to give you.
In the first place, you must give a wide berth to the false Alchemy of the vulgar
herd. I have experienced this so much that I am loath to recommend any to
undertake the work, since this Art is so well hidden that no mortal on earth can
discover it unless Sol and Luna meet. If you give diligent heed to my warning you
may attain to a knowledge thereof, but if you do not, you will never approach any
nearer to it. Know also that there is only one thing in the whole world that enters
into the composition of the Stone, and that, therefore, all coagulation, and
admixture, of different ingredients, would shew you to be on a wrong scent
altogether. If you could perform all the different operations of our art, yet all your
dissolving, coagulating, decomposing, distilling, augmenting, albefying, &c., would
be useless, without a true knowledge of our Matter. For our Art is good and
precious, nor can any one become a partaker of it, unless it be revealed to him by
God, or unless he be taught by a skilled Master. It is a treasure such as the whole
world cannot buy. Do not, therefore, my sons, spend your toil until you know what
that is on which you are to operate. For even if you knew the right Matter, your
information would be useless to you without a knowledge of the method of
preparing it. The Stone in its final and effective form is not to be found anywhere
in the whole world, either in the heavens above, or in the earth beneath; nor in
any metal, nor in anything that grows, nor yet even in gold or silver. It must be
prepared, i.e., developed, into its final form; yet for all that, it cannot, strictly
speaking, be made better than God created it, nor can the Tincture be prepared
out of it: the ' Tincture ' must be added to it, and therefore has nothing to do with
our main object, since it is a different thing altogether. If it were in any metal, we
should surely have to look for it in the Sun or Moon; yet the Moon cannot contain
it, or it would long since have become the Sun. Neither is it in mercury, or in any
sulphur, or salt, or in herbs, or anything of that nature, as you shall see hereafter.
Now we will conclude our exhortation, and proceed to describe the Art itself.
Know that our Stone is one, and that it is justly called a Stone. For it is a Stone,
and could bear no name so characteristic, as that of the Stone of the Sages. Yet it
is not any one of our existing stones, but only derives its appellation from its
similarity to them. For our Stone is so prepared as to be composed of the four
elements. On this account it has been called by different names, and assumes
different forms, although it is one thing, and its like is not found upon earth. It is a
Stony, and not a stone in the sense of having the nature of any one stone; it is fire,
yet it has not the appearance, or properties, of fire; it is air, yet neither has it the
appearance, or properties, of air; it is water, but has no resemblance, or affinity,
to the nature of water. It is earth, though it has not the nature, or appearance, of
earth, seeing that it is a thing by itself.
II.
An ancient philosopher says: Our Stone is called the sacred rock, and is divided, or
signified, in four ways. Firstly, into earth; secondly, into its accretion; thirdly, into
fire; and fourthly, into the flame of fire. If any one knows the method of dissolving
it, of extracting its salt, and of perfectly coagulating it, he is initiated in the
mysteries of the Sages. Therefore if the salt turn white, and assume an oily
appearance, then it tinges. There are three stages in our Art. Firstly, the
transmutation of the whole thing into one salt; secondly, the rendering of three
subtle bodies intangible; thirdly, the repetition of the whole solution of the whole
thing. If you understand this, set your hand to the work. For the Matter is only one
thing, and would remain one thing, though a hundred thousand books had been
written about it, because this Art is so great a treasure that the whole world would
not be a sufficient compensation for it. It is described in obscure terms, yet openly
named by all, and known to all. But if all knew its secret, no one would work, and
it would lose its value. On this account it would be impious to describe it in
universally intelligible language. He to whom God will reveal it, may understand
these dark expressions. But because most men do not understand them, they are
inclined to regard our Art as impossible, and the Sages are branded as wicked men
and swindlers. Learned doctors, who thus speak of us, have it before their eyes
every day, but they do not understand it, because they never attend to it And
then, forsooth, they deny the possibility of finding the Stone; nor will any one ever
be able to convince them of the reality of our Art, so long as they blindly follow
their own bent and inclination. In short, they are too wise to discern it, since it
transcends the range of the human intellect, and must be humbly received at the
hand of God.
The philosopher, Morienus, calls our Stone, water: and he had good reasons for the
name. O water of bitter taste, that preservest the elements! O glorious nature,
that overcomest Nature herself! O thou that resemblest Nature, which dissolvest
her tractable nature, that exaltest Nature -- that art crowned with light, and
preservest in thyself the four elements, out of which the quintessence is made!
Thou art for the simple, seeing that thou art most simple in thy operation. Having
conceived by a natural process, thou bringest forth vapour, and art a good mother.
Thou needest no outward help; nature preserves nature, and is not separated from
nature by the operation of nature. The thing is easy to find, the knowledge is easy,
altogether familiar, yet it is as a miracle to many. Thy solution is great glory, and
all thy lovers are named above. Thou art a great arcanum and to the many thou
appearest impossible!
Explanation.
Know, my son, that our Stone is such that it cannot adequately be described in
writing. For it is a stone, and becomes water through evaporation; yet it is no
stone, and it by a chemical process it receives. a watery form it is at first like any
other liquid water, being a thin fluid; yet its nature is not like that of any other
water upon earth. There is only one spring in all the world from which this water
may be obtained. That spring is in Judaea, and is called, the Spring of the Saviour,
or of beatitude. By the grace of God its situation was revealed to the Sages. It
issues in a secret place, and its waters flow over all the world. It is familiar to all,
yet none knows the principle, reason, or way to find the spring, or discover the
way to Judaea. But whoever does not know the right spring will never attain to a
knowledge of our Art. For this reason, that Sage might well exclaim, "O water of a
harsh and bitter taste!" For, in truth, the spring is difficult to find; but he who
knows it may reach it easily, without any expense, labour, or trouble. The water
is, of its own nature, harsh and bitter, so that no one can partake of it; and,
because it is of little use to the majority of markind the Sage doth also exclaim, "O
water, that art lightly esteemed by the vulgar, who do not perceive thy great
virtues, in thee lie, as it were, hid the four elements. Thou hast power to dissolve,
and conserve, and join nature, such as is possessed by no other thing upon earth."
If you would know the properties and appearance of this Stone, know that its
appearance is aqueous, and that the water is first changed into a stone, then the
stone into water, and the water at length into the Medicine. If you know the Stone
without the method of its preparation, your knowledge can be of no more use to
you than if you knew the right method without being acquainted with the true
Matter. Therefore our hearts are filled with gratitude to God for both kinds of
knowledge.
For let me tell you that when you have the red [tincture] you have something that
all the treasures of the world will not buy. For it transmutes all metals into true
gold, and is therefore much better than the preparation of the Sun. As a medicine
it excels all other gold; all diseases may be cured by drinking one drop of the
tincture in a glass of wine; and it has power to work many other marvels which we
cannot here mention at length. If you wish to prepare the tincture for the Moon,
take five half-ounces of the red tincture, and mix it well with five hundred
half-ounces of the Moon, which have been subjected to the action of fire, then
melt it, and the whole will be changed into the Tincture and the Medicine. Of this
take half an ounce, and inject it into five hundred half-ounces of Venus or any
other metal, and it will be transmuted into pure silver. Of the red tincture, which
you have diligently prepared, take one part to a thousand parts of gold, and the
whole will be changed into the red tincture. Of this, again, you may take one part
to a thousand parts of Venus, or any other metal, and it will be changed into pure
gold. For this purpose you need not buy any gold or silver. The first injection you
can make with about a drachm of both; and then you can transmute with the
tincture more and, more.
You should also know that in our Art we distinguish two things -- the body and the
spirit: the former being constant, or fixed, while the other is volatile. These two
must be changed, the one into the other: the body must become water, and the
water body. Then again the body becomes water by its own internal operation, and
the two, i.e., the dry and the liquid, must once more be joined together in an
inseparable union. This conjunction could not take place if the two had not been
obtained from one thing; for an abiding union is possible only between things of
the same nature. Of this kind is the union which takes place in our Art; for the
constituent parts of the Matter are joined together by the operation of nature, and
not by any human hand. The substance is divided into two parts, as we shall
explain further on. For instance, the Eagle is a "water," which being extracted is
then a body dead and lifeless: if it is to be restored to life, the spirit must once
more be joined to it, and that in a unique fashion, as we see that it devours
gradually again the one eagle after the other. Then the body loses all its grossness,
and becomes new and pure; nor can this body and soul ever die, seeing that they
have entered into an eternal union, such as the union of our bodies and souls shall
be at the last day.
The Enigma of the wise (the Stone) is the Salt and Root of the whole Art, and, as it
were, its Key, without which no one is able either to lock or unlock its secret
entrance. No man can understand this Art who does not know the Salt and its
preparation, which takes place in a convenient spot that is both moist and warm;
there the dissolution of its liquid must be accomplished, while its substance
remains unimpaired. These are the words of Geber.
Explanation.
Know that the Salt of which Geber speaks has none of the specific properties of
salt, and yet is called a Salt, and is a Salt. It is black and fetid, and when
chemically prepared, assumes the appearance of blood, and is at length rendered
white, pure, and clear. It is a good and precious Salt which, by its own operation,
is first impure and then pure. It dissolves and coagulates itself, or, as the Sage
says, it locks and unlocks itself. No Salt has this property but the Salt of the Sages.
Its chemical development it may undergo in a moist and convenient place, where
its moisture (as the Sage says) may be dissolved in the Bath of Mary. He means that
it must be warm enough for its water to be distilled, yet not warmer than the
excrement of horses, which is not fresh.
Alexander the Great, King of Macedonia, in his "Philosophy" has the following
words: Know that the Salt is fire and dryness. Fire coagulates, and its nature is
hot, dry, and penetrating, even unto the inmost part. Its property is to become
white even as the Sun and the Moon with the variations in the extremes of fire, to
wit, of the natural fire, while the Sun restores redness and the Moon whiteness,
and brings bodies to their spiritual condition at the same time that it removes
their blackness and bad sulphur. With it bodies are calcined: it is the secret of the
red and white tincture, the foundation and root of all things, and the best of all
created things after the rational soul of man. For no Stone in the whole world has
a greater efficacy, nor can any child of this earth find the Art without this Stone.
Blessed be God in heaven, who hath created this Art in Salt for the transmutation
of all things, seeing that it is the quintessence which is above all things, and in all
things. God Most High has not only from Heaven blessed creatures in this fashion,
but praise, excellence, power, and wisdom are to be recognised as existing in this
Salt. He who can dissolve and coagulate it, is well acquainted with the arcana of
this Art. Our Salt is found in a certain precious Salt, and in all things. On this
account the ancient Sages called it the "common moon," because all men need it.
If you would become rich, prepare this Salt till it is rendered sweet No other salt is
so permanent, or has such power to fix the "soul," and to resist fire. The Salt of the
earth is the soul; it coagulates all things, is in the midst of the earth when the
earth is destroyed; nor is there anything on the earth like its tincture. It is called
Rebis (Two-thing), is a Stone, Salt, one body, and, to the majority of mankind, a
vile and a despised thing. Yet it purifies and restores bodies, represents the Key of
our whole Art, and all things are summed up in it. Only its entering in is so subtle
that few perceive it: yet if it enter a body, it tinges it and brings it to perfection.
What then should you desire of God but this Salt and the ingression thereof?
If a man lived a hundred thousand years, he could never sufficiently marvel at the
wonderful manner in which this noble treasure is obtained from ashes, and again
reduced to ashes. In the ashes is Salt, and the more the ashes are burnt, the more
ashes it affords; notice also, that that proceeds from fire, and returns to fire,
which proceeds from [the] earth. All must confess that in the Salt there are two
salts that kill mercury. This is a most profound saying. For sulphur, and the radical
liquid, are generated in earth of a most subtle nature, and thus is prepared the
Philosopher's Stone, which causes all things, even as the philosophers set forth, to
arise out of one thing, and one nature, without the addition of any foreign
substance. Our Matter is one of the commonest things upon earth, and contains
within itself the four elements. It is, indeed, nothing short of marvellous that so
many seek so ordinary a thing, and yet are unable to find it. We might put down
many other characteristics of this Salt, but I prefer to leave the further
elaboration of this subject to the reader, and to confine myself to a more detailed
account of its fruits, entrance, and life, of the mode of opening the garden, and
catching a glimpse of the glorious roses, of the way in which they multiply, and
bear fruit a thousand-fold; also how you may cause the dead body to reappear,
and to be raised again to immortal life, by the power of which it may be able to
enter imperfect bodies, purify them, and bring them to perfection, and to a state
of immutable permanence.
I now propose to speak of the Stone under three aspects, viz., as the vegetable,
the animal, and the mineral Stone; and among these again, of the one which
contains those four elements that impart life to all. Place this one substance in an
airtight alembic, and treat it according to the precepts of our Art, which we shall
set forth further on. Then the sowing in the field can take place, and you obtain
the Mineral Stone, and the Green Lion that imbibes so much of its own spirit. Then
life returns to its spirit through the alembic, and the dead body lies at the bottom
of the vessel. In the latter there are still two elements which the fire cannot sever
-- for sooner [than that] the ashes are burned in the fire itself, and the Salt
thereby becomes stronger. The earth must be calcined until it turns white; then
the earth is severed of its own accord, and is united to its own earth. For every
thing strives to be joined to its like. Give it the cold and humid element to drink,
and leave it standing eight days, that the two may be well mixed. You must see
yourself what is best to be done after this: for I cannot give you any further
information at present. Sun and Moon must have intercourse, like that of a man
and woman: otherwise the object of our Art cannot be attained. All other teaching
is false and erroneous. Think upon this Salt as the true foundation of our Art; for
its worth outweighs all the treasures of this world. Itself is not developed into the
tincture, but the tincture must be added to it. Nor is the substance of our Art
found in any metal.
Natural things, according to this Sage, are those which have been generated and
produced out of a natural substance by a natural method. Now in its first, or lunar,
stage, our Stone is produced from a coagulated white earth, as the Sage says:
Behold our Sun in our white earth, and that by which the union in our Art is
effected; which is twice transmuted into water, and whose volatile exhalation,
representing that which is most precious in our Substance, is the highest
consolation of the human body. With this water the inward mercury of the metals
must be extracted. Hence it follows that our Stone is obtained from the elements
of two luminaries (gold and silver), being called our quicksilver and incombustible
oil, the soul and light of bodies -- which alone can afford to dead and imperfect
bodies eternal light and life. Therefore I pray and beseech you, my son, to crush
quicksilver from our Substance with intelligence and great activity.
The aforesaid earth, or Matter, you must purify, or calcine, so as to extract its
water and spirit. The latter you must enclose in a phial, and pour common aqua
vita upon it till the substance is covered to the height of three or four fingers; then
subject it to the action of fire for an hour, and diligently distil it by the bath. What
remains you must again calcine, and extract with its water till you find nothing
more in the "earth." The earth keep for the second stage of the process. The water
you have extracted distil over a gentle fire. Then you will find at the bottom of the
distilling vessel a certain beautiful substance resembling a crystal stone, which is
purged of all earthly grossness, and is called "our earth." This substance you must
place in a glass (pumpkin-shaped) distilling vessel, and calcine until it becomes dry
and white, and yet liquid withal. Then you have obtained the treasure of this
world, which has virtue to purify and perfect all earthly things: it enters into all, it
nourishes the fixed salt in all things by means of Mercury or the body.
Know, my sons, that the Stone out of which our Art is elaborated, never touches
the earth after its generation. If it touch the earth, it is of no use for our purpose,
although at its first birth it is generated by the Sun and Moon, and embodies
certain earthy elements. It is generated in the earth, then broken, destroyed, and
mortified. Out of it arises a vapour which is carried with the wind into the sea, and
thence brought back again to the land, where it almost immediately disappears. It
must be caught in the air, before it touches the ground; otherwise it evaporates.
As soon as it is borne from the sea to the land, you must promptly seize it, and
enclose it in your phial, then manipulate it in the manner described. You may
know its coming by the wind, rain, and thunder, which accompany it; therefore it
should not escape you. Though it is born anew every day, yet it existed from the
beginning of the world. But as soon as it falls to the ground, it becomes useless for
the purposes of our Art.
Know also that two waters flow forth from this fountain; the one (which is the
spirit) towards the rising Sun, and the other, the body, towards the setting Sun.
The two are really only one very limpid water, which is so bitter as to be quite
undrinkable. The quantity of this water is so great that it flows over the whole
earth, yet leads to nothing but the knowledge of this Art. The same also is misused
too often by those who desire it. Take also the "fire," and in it you will find the
Stone, and nowhere else in the whole world. It is familiar to all men, both young
and old, is found in the country, in the village, in the town, in all things created by
God; yet it is despised by all. Rich and poor handle it every day. It is cast into the
street by servant maids. Children play with it. Yet no one prizes it, though, next to
the human soul, it is the most beautiful and the most precious thing upon earth,
and has power to pull down kings and princes. Nevertheless, it is esteemed the
vilest and meanest of earthly things. It is cast away and rejected by all. Indeed it
is the Stone which the builders of Solomon disallowed. but if it be prepared in the
right way, it is a pearl without price, and, indeed, the earthly antitype of Christ,
the heavenly Corner Stone. As Christ was despised and rejected in this world by
the people of the Jews, and nevertheless was more precious than. heaven and
earth; so it is with our Stone among earthly things: for the spring where it is found
is called the fount of nature. For even as through Nature all growing things are
generated by the heat of the Sun, so also through Nature is our Stone born after
that it has been generated.
When you have found the water which contains our Stone, you must take nothing
away from it, nor add anything to it: for it must be entirely prepared by means of
that which it contains within itself. Then extract the water in an alembic, and
separate the liquid from the dry. The body will then remain alone on the glass,
while the water runs down into the lower part. Thereupon unite the water once
more to the body in the manner described above, and your task will be
accomplished. Know also that the water in which is our Stone, is composed in well
balanced proportions of the four elements. In the chemical process you will learn
to distinguish earth, oil, and water, or body, spirit, and soul: the earth is at the
bottom of the glass vessel, the oil, or soul, is with the earth, and the water is the
spirit which is distilled from it. In the same way you will come upon two colours,
namely, white and red, representing the Moon and the Sun. The oil is the fire, or
the Sun, the water is air, or the Moon; and Sun and Moon are silver and gold which
must enter into union. But enough, what I have said in this Epistle ought to enable
you to find the Stone, and if herein you fail to discover it, rest assured that it will
never become known to you. Be thou, therefore, a lover of the Art, and
commended unto God the Almighty even unto all eternity. Written in the year 1526
after the birth of our Lord.
Thus do the Sages write concerning the two waters which yet are only one water --
and in this
alone the Stone is to be found. Know also that by so much as the earthly part is
wanting, by also so much does the heavenly part abound more fully. Now this
Stone renders all dry and arid bodies humid, all cold bodies warm, all impure
bodies clear and pure. It contains within itself all healing and transmuting virtue,
breathed into it by the art of the Master and the quickening spirit of fire. Thanks
be unto God therefore in all time.
Concerning the First Matter, or Seed of the Metals, including that of the Husband,
and that of the Spouse.
Metals have their own seed, like all other created things. Generation and
parturition take place in them as in everything else that grows. If this were not the
case, we should never have had any metals. Now, the seed is a metallic Matter
which is liquefied from earth. The seed must be cast into its earth, and there
grow, like that of every other created thing. Therefore, we must prepare the
earth, or our first Matter, and cast into it the seed, whereupon it will bring forth
fruit after its kind. This motion is required for the generation out of one thing,
viz., that first Matter; the body must become [a] spirit, and the spirit body: thence
arises the medicine which is transmuted from one colour to another. Now, that
which is sought in the white produces white, and the red, in like manner, gives
red. The first Matter is one thing, and fashioned into its present shape by the hand
of God, and not of man -- joined together, and transmuted into its [being] essence
by Nature alone. This we take, dissolve, and again conjoin, and wash with its own
water, until it becomes white, and then again red. Thus our earth, in which we
now may easily see our Sun and Moon, is purified. For the Sun is the Father of
metals, and the Moon is their Mother: and if generation is to take place, they must
be brought together as husband and wife. By itself neither can produce anything,
and therefore the red and the white must be brought together. And though a
thousand books have been written about it, yet for all that, the first substance is
not more than one. It is the earth into which we cast our grain, that is to say, our
Sun and Moon, which then bear fruit after their kind. If itself be cast into metals,
it is changed into that which is best, viz., Sun and Moon. This is most true. Thanks
be unto God.
According to the Sages, no body is dissolved without the coagulation of the spirit.
For as soon as the spirit is transmuted into the body, [the Stone] receives its
power. So long as the spirit is volatile, and liable to evaporate, it cannot produce
any effect: when it is fixed, it immediately begins to operate. You must therefore
prepare it as the baker prepares the bread. Take a little of the spirit, and add it to
the body, as the baker adds leaven to the meal, till the whole substance is
leavened. It is the same with our spirit, or leaven. The Substance must be
continuously penetrated with the leaven, until it is wholly leavened. Thus the
spirit purges and spiritualizes the body, till they are both transmuted into one.
Then they transmute all things, into which they are injected, into their own
nature. The two must be united by a gentle and continuous fire, affording the
same degree of warmth as that with which a hen hatches her eggs. It must then be
placed in a St. Mary's Bath, which is neither too warm nor too cold. The humid
must be separated from the dry, and again joined to it. When united, they change
mercury into pure gold and silver Thenceforward you will be safe from the pangs
of poverty. But take heed that you render thanks unto God for His gracious gift
which is hidden from many. He has revealed the secret to you that you may praise
His holy name, and succour your needy neighbour. Therefore, take diligent heed,
lest you hide the talent committed to your care. Rather put it out at interest for
the glory of God, and the good of your neighbour. For every man is bound to help
his fellowman, and to be an instrument in the hand of God for relieving his
necessities. Of this rule Holy Scripture affords an illustration in the example of
Joseph, Habakkuk, Susanna, and others.
For your sakes, beloved students of this Art, and dear Sons, I have committed to
writing this my testament, for the purpose of instructing, admonishing, warning,
and informing you as to the substance, the method, the pitfalls to be avoided, and
the only way of understanding the writings of the Sages. For as Almighty God has
created all things out of the dry and the humid elements, our Art, by divine grace,
may be said to pursue a precisely similar course. If therefore any man know the
It is the same with our Stone, which is daily generated from [the] air by the Sun
and Moon, in the form of a certain vapour, yea, even through the Red Sea; it flows
in Judea in the channel of Nature whither it behoves us to bring it. If we catch it,
we lop off its hands and feet, tear off its head, and try to bring it to the red
[colour]. If we find anything black in it, we throw it away with the entrails and the
filth. When it has been purified, we take its limbs, join them together again,
whereupon our King revives, never to die again, and Is so pure and subtle as to
pervade all hard bodies, and render them even more subtle than itself. Know also
that when God, the Almighty, had set Adam in Paradise, He shewed him these two
things in the following words: ' Behold, Adam, here are two things, one fixed and
permanent, the other volatile: their secret virtue thou must not make known to all
thy sons."
Earth, my brother, is constant, and water volatile, as you may see when anything
is burnt. For then that which is constant remains, while that which is volatile
evaporates. That which remains resembles ashes, and if you pour water on it, it
becomes an alkali, the efficacy of the ashes passing into the water. If you clarify
the lye, put it into an iron vessel, and let the moisture evaporate over a fire, you
will find at the bottom the substance which before was in the lye, that is to say,
the salt of the matter from which the ashes were obtained. This salt might very
well be called the Philosopher's Stone, from being obtained by a process exactly
similar to that which is employed in preparing the reel Stone, though at the same
time it profits nothing in our work. For the substance which contains our Stone is a
lye, not indeed prepared by the hand of man from ashes and water, but joined
together by Nature, according to the creation and ordination of God, commingled
of the four elements, possessed of all that is required for its perfect chemical
development. If you take the substance, which contains our Stone, subject it to a
S. Mary's Bath in an alembic, and distil it, the water will run down into the
antisternium, and the salt, or earth, remain at the bottom, and is so dry as to be
without any water, seeing that you have separated the moist from the dry. Pound
the body small, put it into the S. Mary's Bath, and expose it to heat till it is quite
decomposed. Then give it its water to drink, slowly, and at long intervals, till it is
clarified. For it coagulates, dissolves, and purifies itself. The distilled water is the
spirit which imparts life to its body, and is the alone soul thereof. Water is wind
(air), and wind is life, and the life is [in the] soul. In the chemical process, you
find water and oil -- but the oil always remains with the body, and is, as it were,
burnt blood. Then it is purified with the body by long, continued gentle heat. But
you should be careful not to set about this Art before you understand my
instructions, which at the end of this first part are bequeathed to you in the form
of a Testament. For the Stone is prepared out of nothing in the whole world,
except this substance, which is essentially one. He who is unacquainted therewith
can never attain the Art. It is that one thing which is not dug up from mines or
from the caverns of the earth, like gold, silver, sulphur, salt, &c., but is found in
the form which God originally imparted to it. It is formed and manifested by an
excessive thickening of air; as soon as it leaves its body, it is clearly seen, but it
vanishes without a trace as soon as it touches the earth, and, as ii is never seen
again, it must therefore be caught while it is still in the air -- as I told you once
before. I have called it by various names, but the simplest is perhaps that of
"Hyle," or first principle of all things. It is also denominated the One Stone of the
Philosophers, composed of hostile elements, the Stone of the Sun. the Stone of the
Metals, the runaway slave, the aeriform Stone, the Thirnian Stone, Magnesia, the
corporeal Stone, the Stone of the jewel, the Stone of the free, the golden Stone,
the fountain of earthly things, Xelis, or Silex (flint), Xidar, or Radix (root), Atrop,
or Porta (gate). By these and many other names it is called, yet it is only one. If
you would be a true Alchemist, give a wide berth to all other substances, turn a
deaf ear to all other advisers, and strive to obtain a good knowledge of our Stone,
its preparation, and its virtue.
My Son, esteem this my Testament very highly: for in it I have, out of love and
compassion towards you, given the reins to the warm-hearted impulse which
constrains me to reveal more than I ought to reveal. But I beseech you, by the
Passion of our Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ, not to communicate my Testament to
ignorant, unworthy, or wicked men, lest God's righteous vengeance light upon you,
and hurl you into the yawning gulf of everlasting punishment, from which also may
the same merciful God most mercifully preserve us.
It is by no means a light thing to shew the nature of the aforesaid Hyle. Hyle is the
first Matter, the Salt of the Sages, Azoth, the seed of all metals, which is extracted
from the body of "Magnesia" and the Moon.
Hyle is the first principle of all things -- the Matter that was from the beginning. It
was neither moist, nor dry, nor earth, nor water, nor light, nor darkness, but a
mixture of all these things, and this mixture is HYLE.
It was on account of this original sin that Adam, in spite of his great wisdom and
the many arts that God had taught him, could not accomplish his full thousand
years. But if he had not known the virtues of herbs, and the Medicine, he would
certainly not have lived as long as he did. When, however, at length his Medicine
would no longer avail to sustain life, he sent his son Seth to Paradise to fetch the
tree of life. This he obtained after a spiritual manner. But Seth did seek also and
was given some olives of the Tree of the Oil of Mercy, which he planted on the
grave of his father. From them sprang up the blessed Tree of the Holy Cross, which
through the atoning death of our Redeemer became to us wretched, sinful men, a
most potent tree of life, in gracious fulfilment of the request of our first parent
Adam. On the other hand, the suffering, disease, and imperfection brought not
only upon men, but also upon plants and animals, by the fall of Adam, found a
remedy in that precious gift of Almighty God, which is called the Elixir, and
Tincture, and has power to purge away the imperfections not only of human, but
even of metallic bodies; which excels all other medicines, as the brightness of the
sun shames the moon and the stars. By means of this most noble Medicine many
men, from the death of Adam to the fourth monarchy, procured for themselves
perfect health and great length of days. Hence those who had a good knowledge of
the Medicine, attained to three hundred years, others to four hundred, some to
five hundred, like Adam; others again to nine hundred, like Methusalem and Noah;
and some of their children to a longer period still, like Bacham, Ilrehur, Kalix,
Hermes, Geber, Albanus, Ortulanus, Morienus, Alexander of Macedonia,
Anaxagoras, Pythagoras, and many others who possessed the Medicine of the
Blessed Stone in silence, and neither used it for evil purposes, nor made it known
to the wicked; just as God Himself has in all times hidden this knowledge from the
proud, the impure, and the froward. But cease to wonder that God has put such
excellent virtue into the Stone, and has imparted to it the power of restoring
animal bodies, and of perfecting metals: for I hope to explain to you the whole
matter in the three parts of my Book, which I have entitled GLORY of the WORLD.
If you will accept my teaching, and follow my directions, you will be able to prove
the truth of my assertions by your own happy experience. Now when you have
attained this great result, take care that you do not hide your talent. Use it for the
solace of the suffering, the building of Christian schools and churches, and the
glory of the Holy Trinity. Otherwise God will call you to an eternal account for
your criminal neglect of His gift May God deign to keep us from such a sin, and to
establish us in His Holy Word!
To the Reader.
If it should seem unto you a tedious matter, my friendly reader, to read through
and digest my book, I advise you to cheer yourself on by bearing in mind the great
object you have in view. If you do so you will find the book very pleasant reading,
and a joy indeed. Since God -- praised in all times be his Holy and Venerable
Name! -- in His unspeakable mercy has made known to me the magistery of this
most true and noble Art, I am moved and constrained by brotherly love to shew
you the manner of producing this treasure, in order that you may be able to avoid
the ruinous trouble and expense to which I was put in the course of a long and
fruitless search. I will endeavour to be as clear and outspoken as possible, in order
to vindicate myself from the possible charge of imposture, malice, and avarice. I
am most anxious that the gift which God has committed to my trust shall not rust,
or rot, or be useless in my hands. For this most precious Medicine is so full of
glorious potency as to be most justly styled the Oil of Mercy, for reasons which
your own understanding will suggest to you. It is therefore unnecessary for me to
go into this preliminary question at any great length. I may at once proceed to give
you an account of the Art itself, and to put you on your guard against all seducing
deceivers, -- in short, to open up to you a true, unerring, and joyful road to the
knowledge and possession of the Stone, and to the operations of this Art.
Therefore, I -- who possess the Stone, and communicate to you this Book -- would
faithfully admonish and beseech you to keep this my TABLE of PARADISE and
GLORY of the WORLD, from all proud and unjust oppressors of the poor; from all
presumptuous, shallow, scornful, calumnious, and wicked persons, so as not to put
it into their hands, on pain of God's everlasting punishment. I beseech you to take
this warning to heart; but, on the other hand, to communicate and impart this my
Table to all true, poor, pious, honest, and benevolent persons, who will gratefully
reverence and rightly use the merciful gift of God, and conceal it from the
unworthy. Nevertheless, even if my book should find its way into the hands of
wicked men, God will so smite them with blindness as to prevent them from
apprehending too much of my meaning, and frustrate all their attempts to carry
out my directions. For God knows how to confound the wicked, and bring their
presumption to nought; as we are also told by David in his psalms: "Thine enemies
shalt thou hold in thine hand, and shalt restrain them in the snares of their mind."
I beseech you, therefore, my sons, to give diligent heed to my teaching; then you
will spend this life in health and happiness, and at length inherit everlasting joy. I
pray that God the Father, the Son, and the Holy Ghost, may grant this my petition.
I make known to all ingenuous students of this Art that the Sages are in the habit
of using words which may convey either a true or a false impression; the former to
their own disciples and children, the latter to the ignorant, the foolish, and the
unworthy. Bear in mind that the philosophers themselves never make a false
assertion. The mistake (if any) lies not with them, but with those whose dulness
makes them slow to apprehend the meaning. Hence it comes that, instead of the
waters of the Sages, these inexperienced persons take pyrites salts, metals, and
divers other substances which, though very expensive, are of no use whatever for
our purpose. For no one would dream of buying the true Matter at the
apothecary's; nay, that tradesman daily casts it into the street as worthless
refutes. Yet the matter of our Stone is found in all those things which are used by
ignorant charlatans: for it is our Stone, our Salt, our Mercury, our verdigris,
halonitre, salmiac, Mars, sulphur, &c. It is not dug out with pick-axes from
ordinary mountains, seeing that our Stone is found in our mountains and springs;
our Salt is found in our salt-spring, our metal in our earth, and from the same
place we dig up our mercury and sulphur. But what we mean by our mines and
springs these charlatans cannot understand. For God has blinded their minds and
made gross their senses, and left them to carry on their experiments with all
manner of false substances. Nor do they seem able to perceive their error, or to be
roused from their idle imaginations by persistent failure. Where they should have
distilled with gentle heat they sublime over a fierce fire, and reduce their
substance to ashes, instead of developing its inherent principles by vitalizing
warmth. Again, when they should have dissolved, they coagulated instead, and so
on. By these false methods they could, of course, obtain no good result; but
instead of blaming their own ignorance they lay the fault on their teacher, and
even deny the genuineness of our Art. As a matter of fact, all their mistakes arise
from their misinterpreting the meaning of words which should have put them on
the right scent. For instance, when the Sages speak of calcining, these persons
understand that word to mean "burning," and consequently render their substance
useless by burning it to ashes. When the Sages "dissolve," or transmute into
"water," these shallow persons corrode with aqua fortis. They do not understand
that the dissolution must be effected with something that is contained within our
substance, and not by means of any foreign appliance. These foolish devices bear
the same relation to our Art that a dark hole bears to a transparent crystal. Et is
their own ignorance that prevents them from attaining to a true knowledge; but
they put the blame on our writings, and call us charlatans and impostors. They
argue that if the Stone could be found at all, they must have discovered it long
ago, their eyes being as keen and their minds as acute as they are. "Behold," say
they, "how we have toiled day and night, how many books we have read, how
many years we have spent in our laboratories: surely if there were anything in this
Art, it could not have escaped us." By speaking thus, they only exhibit their own
presumption and folly. They themselves have no eyes, and they make that an
argument for blaspheming our high and holy Art. Therefore, you should first strive
to make yourself acquainted with the secrets of Nature's working, and with the
elementary principles of the world, before you set your hand to this task. After
acquiring this knowledge, carefully peruse this book from beginning to end; you
will then be in a position to judge whether our Art is tree or false. You will also
know what substance you must take, how you must prepare it, and how your eager
search may be brought to a successful issue. Let me enjoin you, therefore, to
preserve strict silence, to let nobody know what you are doing, and to keep a good
heart: then God will grant you the fulfilment of all your wishes.
I now propose to put down a brief statement of the view which I take of this
Since I know the blessed and true Art, with the nature and the matter of the
Stone, I have thought it my duty freely to communicate it to you -- Not in a
lawyer's style, nor in pompous language, but in few and sample words. Whoever
peruses this book carefully, and with an elementary knowledge of natural
relations, cannot miss the secret which I intend to convey. I am afraid that I shall
be overwhelmed with reproaches for speaking out with so much plainness, seeing
that this Art has never, from the beginning of the world, been so clearly explained
as I mean to explain it in this Book. Nevertheless, I am well aware that I am now
declaring a secret which must for ever remain hidden from the wise of this world,
and from those who are established in their own conceits. But I must now proceed
to give you the result of my experience
My beloved sons and disciples, and all ye that are students of this Art; I herewith,
in the fulness of Christian faith and charity. do make known to you that the
Philosopher's Stone grows not only on "our" tree, but is found, as far as its effect
and operation are concerned, in the fruit of all other trees, in all created things,
in animals, and vegetables, in things that grow, and in things that do not grow. For
when it rises, being stirred and distilled by the Sun and the Moon, it imparts their
own peculiar form and properties to all living creatures by a divine grace; it gives
to flowers their special form and colour, whether it be black, red, yellow, green,
or white; in the same way all metals and minerals derive their peculiar qualities
from the operation of this Stone. All things, I say, are endowed with their
characteristic qualities by the operation of this Stone, i.e., the conjunction of the
Sun and Moon. For the Sun is the Father, and the Moon the Mother of this Stone,
and the Stone unites in itself the virtues of both its parents. Such are the peculiar
properties of our Stone, by which it may be known. If you understand the
operation, the form, and the qualities, of this Stone, you will be able to prepare
it; but if you do not, I faithfully counsel you to give up all thought of ever
accomplishing this task.
Observe, furthermore, how the seeds of all things that grow, as, for instance,
grains of wheat or barley, spring forth from the ground, by the operation of the
Stone, and the developing influences of Sun and Moon; how they grow up into the
air, are gradually matured, and bring forth fruit, which again must be sown in its
own proper soil. The field is prepared for the grain, being well ploughed up, and
manured with well rotted dung; for the earth consumes and assimilates the
manure, as the body assimilates its food, and separates the subtle from the gross
Therewith it calls forth the life of the seed, and nourishes it with its own proper
milk, as a mother nourishes her infant, and causes it to increase in size, and to
grow upward. The earth separates, I say, the good from the bad, and imparts it as
nutriment to all growing things; for the destruction of one thing is the generation
of another. It is the same in our Art, where the liquid receives its proper nutriment
from the earth. Hence the earth is the Mother of all things that grow; and it must
be manured, ploughed, harrowed, and well prepared, in order that the corn may
grow, and triumph over the tares, and not be choked by them. A grain of wheat is
raised from the ground through the distillation of the moisture of the Sun and
Moon, if it has been sown in its own proper earth. The Sun and Moon must also
impel it to bring forth fruit, if it is to bring forth fruit at all. For the Sun is the
Father, and the Moon the Mother, of all things that grow.
In the same way, in our soil, and out of our seed, our Stone grows through the
distilling of the Sun and Moon; and as it grows it rises upwards, as it were, into the
air, while its root remains in the ground. That which is above is even as that which
is below; the same law prevails; there is no error or mistake. Again, as herbs grow
upward, put forth glorious flowers and blossoms, and bear fruit, so oar grain
blossoms, matures its fruit, is threshed, sifted, purged of its chaff, and again put
in the earth, which, however, must previously have been well manured, harrowed,
and otherwise prepared. When it has been placed in its natural soil, and watered
with rain and dew, the moisture of heaven, and roused into life by the warmth of
the Sun and Moon, it produces fruit after its own kind. These two sowings are
peculiar characteristics of our Art. For the Sun and Moon are our grain, which we
put into our soil, as soul and spirit -- and such as are the father and the mother
will be the children that they generate. Thus, my sons, you know our Stone, our
earth, our grain, our meal, our ferment, our manure, our verdigris, our Sun and
Moon. You understand our whole magistery, and may joyfully congratulate
yourselves that you have at length risen above the level of those blind charlatans
of whom I spoke. For this, His unspeakable mercy, let us render thanks and praise
to the Creator of all things, through Jesus Christ our Lord. Amen.
My son, I will now proceed to explain to you more in detail the generation of the
metals, and the way in which they receive their growth and development, with
their special form and quality. You will thereby be enabled to understand, even
from the very foundation, with marvellous accuracy and clearness, the principle
that underlies our whole Art. Permit me, therefore, to inform you that all animals,
trees, herbs, stones, metals, and minerals, grow and attain to perfection, without
being necessarily touched by any human hand: for the seed is raised up from the
ground, puts forth flowers, and bears fruit, simply through the agency of natural
influences. As it is with plants, so it is with metals. While they lie in the heart of
the earth, in their natural ore, they grow, and are developed, day by day, through
the influence of the four elements: their fire is the splendour of the Sun and Moon;
the earth conceives in her womb the splendour of the Sun, and by it the seeds of
the metals are well and equally warmed, just like the grain in the fields. Through
this warmth there is produced in the earth a vapour or spirit, which rises upward
and carries with it the most subtle elements. It might well be called a fifth
element: for it is a quintessence, and contains the most volatile parts of all the
elements. This vapour strives to float upward through the summit of the
mountains, but, being covered with great rocks, they prevent it from doing so: for
when it strikes against them, it is compelled to descend again. It is drawn up by
the Sun, it is forced down again by the rocks, and as it falls the vapour is
transmuted into a liquid, i.e., sulphur and mercury. Of each of these a part is left
behind -- but that which is volatile rises and descends again, more and more of it
remaining behind, and becoming fixed after each descent. This "fixed" substance is
the metals, which cleave so firmly to the earth and the stones that they must be
smelted out in a red-hot furnace. The grosser the stones and the earth of the
mountains are, the less pure will the metal be; the more subtle the soil and the
stones are, the more subtle will be the vapour, and the sulphur and mercury
formed by its condensation -- and the purer these latter are, the purer, of course,
will the metals themselves be. When the earth and the stones of the mountain are
gross, the sulphur and mercury must partake of this grossness, and cannot attain to
their proper development. Hence arise the different metals, each after its own
kind. For as each tree of the field has its own peculiar shape, appearance, and
fruit, so each mountain bears its own particular ore, those stones and that earth
being the soil in which the metals grow. The quality of this soil is to a great extent
dependent upon planetary influences. The nearer the mountains lie to the planets,
the more do metals grow in them; for the qualities of metals are determined by
planetary influences. Mountains that are turned towards the sun have subtle stones
and earth, and produce nothing but gold. If they are more conveniently situated
for being influenced by the moon, their metallic substance is turned into silver.
For all metals, when perfectly developed, must ultimately become Moon and Sun,
though some need to be operated on by the Sun and Moon longer than others: for
the Sun is the Father, and the Moon the Mother, of all things that grow. Thus you
see that gold glitters like the Sun, and silver like the Moon. Now, children always
resemble their parents; and all metallic bodies contain within themselves the
properties of the Sun: to change the baser metals into gold and silver, there is
positively nothing wanting but gentle solar warmth. In this respect there exists a
close analogy between animal and vegetable growth. When the Sun retires in the
winter, the flowers droop and die, the trees shed their leaves, and all vegetable
development is temporarily suspended. In the summer again, when the heat of the
Sun is too great, not being sufficiently tempered by the cooling influences of the
Moon, all vegetation is withered and burnt up If there is to be perfect growth, the
Sun and Moon must work together, the one heating and the other cooling. If the
influence of the Moon prevails unduly, it must be corrected by the warmth of the
Sun, the excessive heat of the Sun must be tempered by the coldness of the Moon.
All development is sustained by solar fire. Imperfect metals are what they are,
simply because they have not yet been duly developed by solar influences.
Now, by the special grace of God, it is possible to bring this natural fire to bear on
imperfect metals by means of our Art, and to supply the conditions of metallic
growth without any of the hindrances which in a natural state prevent perfection.
Thus by applying our natural fire, we can do more towards "fixing" imperfect
bodies and metals in a moment, than the Sun in a thousand years. For this reason
our Stone has also power to cure all things that grow, acting on each one according
to its kind. For our Matter represents a perfect and inseparable union of the four
elements, which indeed is the sum of our Art, and is consequently able to
reconcile and heal all discord in all manner of metals and in all things that grow,
and to put to flight all diseases. For disease is discord of the elements, (one unduly
lording it over the rest) in animal as well as in metallic bodies. Now as soon as our
blessed Medicine is applied, the elements are straightway purified, and joined
together in amity; thus metallic bodies are fixed, animal bodies are made whole of
all their diseases, gems and precious stones attain to their own proper perfection.
You should also know that all stones are generated by the Sun and Moon out of the
sulphur and volatile mercury; if they do not become metals, that is entirely due to
their own grossness. In the same way, all plants are generated from sulphur and
mercury, and that by the heat of the Sun and Moon. For the Sun and Moon are the
mercury in our Matter. The Sun is warm and dry, the Moon warm and moist; for in
[the] earth is hid a warm and dry fire, and in that fire dwells warm and moist air --
and from these is generated mercury which is both warm and moist. Hence there
may be distinguished two chief constituent principles, to wit, moist and dry, that
is, earth, wind, and water, unto which mercury is conjoined, and the same is warm
and moist. Mercury and sulphur, in our substance, and in all things, spring from the
moist and dry, the moist and dry being stirred by the warmth of the Sun, and
distilled and sublimed, -- in each thing according to its specific nature. Thus our
Stone is that mercury which is mixed of the dry and the moist. But the common
mercury is useless for our purpose -- for it is volatile, while our mercury is fixed
and constant. Therefore have nothing to do with the common mercury, but take
our mercury which is the principle of growth in all bodies, whether human,
vegetable, or metallic; which imparts to all flowers their fragrance and colour.
This mercury represents an harmonious mixture of the four elements, hot and dry,
Sun and Moon. Ii is generated in the form of a vapour in the fields and on the
mountains, by the warmth of the Sun: that vapour is condensed into a moisture,
from which arise sulphur and mercury, and from them again metals The same
process takes place in our Art, which represents the union of the warm and moist,
by means of warmth. For our substance is generated in the form of a vapour out of
warmth and moisture, and changed into sulphur. In this fire and water, and
nowhere else, is our Stone to be found. For the vapour carries upward with it most
subtle earth, most subtle fire, most subtle water, and most subtle air, and thus
presents a close union of the most subtle elements. This is the first Matter, and
may be divided into water and earth, which two are again joined together by
gentle heat, even as in the woods and mountains mercury is joined with a quick
earth and rare water by means of a temperate warmth, and in the long process of
time is converted into metal. So is it ordained in our Art, and not otherwise does
the process take place. When you, therefore, see that our substance, having been
first generated in the form of a vapour, permits itself to be separated into water
and earth, you may know that the Stone is composed of the four elements. Know
also that the vapour in the mountains is true mercury (which cannot be said of the
ordinary mercury); for wherever there is vapour in the mountains, there is true
mercury, which by ascending and descending, in the manner described above,
becomes fixed, and inseparable from its earth, so that where the one is, there the
other must abide.
Thus I have told you plainly enough how the metals are generated, what mercury
is, and how it is transmuted into metals. I will therefore conclude this part of my
treatise, and tell you in the following section how you may actually perform the
chemical process. You see that it is not so incredible, after all, that all metals
should be transmuted into gold and silver, and all animal bodies delivered from
every kind of disease; and I hope and trust that God will permit you practically to
experience the truth of this assertion.
Now I will tell you how you must produce the Fire and Water, in which is prepared
the Mercury required for thee red and white Tincture.
Take fire, or the quicklime of the Sages, which is the vital fire of all trees, and
therein doth God Himself burn by divine love. In it purify Mercury, and mortify it
for the purposes of our Art; understand, with vulgar Mercury, which you wish to fix
in water or fire. But the Mercury which lies hidden in this water, or fire, is therein
fixed of itself. The Mercury which is in the fire must be decomposed, clarified,
coagulated, and fixed with indelible, living, or Divine fire, of that kind which God
has placed in the Sun; and wherein God Himself burns as with Divine love for the
consolation of all mankind. Without this fire our Art can not be brought to a
successful issue. This is the fire of the Sages which they describe in such obscure
terms, as to have been the indirect cause of beguiling many innocent persons to
their ruin; so even that they have perished in poverty because they knew hot this
fire of the Philosophers. It is the most precious fire that God has created in the
earth, and has a thousand virtues -- nay, it is so precious that men have averred
that the Divine Power itself works effectually in it. It has the purifying virtue of
Purgatory, and everything is rendered better by it. It is not wonderful, therefore,
that a fire should be able to fix and clarify Mercury, and to cleanse it from all
grossness and impurity. The Sages call it the living fire, because God has endowed
it with His own Divine, and vitalising power.
In the writings of the Sages, this fire goes by different names. Some call it "burnt"
wine, others assign to it three names from the analogy of the Three Persons of the
Holy Trinity, God the Father, God the Son, and God the Holy Ghost; Body, Soul,
and Fire, or Spirit.
The Sages further say: The fire is fire, and also water, containing within itself both
cold and heat, moisture, and dryness, nor can anything extinguish it but itself.
Hence others say that it is an inextinguishable fire, which is continually burning,
purifying, and tinging all metals, consuming all their impurities, and combining
Mercury with the Sun in so close an union that they become one and inseparable.
Therefore our great Teachers say that as God the Father, the Son, and the Holy
Ghost, are three Persons, and yet but one God; so this fire unites these three
things, namely, the Body, Spirit, and Soul, or Sun, Mercury, and Soul. The fire
nourishes the Soul which binds together the Body and the Spirit, and thus all three
become one, and remain united for ever. Again, as an ordinary fire, on being
supplied with fuel, may spread and fill the whole world, so this Tincture may be
multiplied, and so this fire may enter into all metals; and one part of it has power
to change two, three, or five hundred parts of other metals into gold.
Again, the Sages call this fire the fire of the Holy Spirit, because as the Divinity of
Christ took upon itself true flesh and blood without forfeiting anything of its Divine
Nature, so the Sun, the Moon, and Mercury, are transmuted into the true Tincture,
which remains unaffected by all outward influences, and endures, and will endure,
for ever. Once more, as God feeds many wicked sinners with his blood, so this
Tincture tinges all gross and impure metals, without being injured by contact with
them. So also, therefore, may it be compared with the sacro-saintly Sacrament of
the Most Holy Eucharist, from which no sinner is excluded, how impure soever he
may have been. You have thus been made acquainted with the all but miraculous
virtue of this fire: remember that no student of this Art can possibly do without it.
For another Sage says: "In this invisible fire you have the whole mystery of this Art,
as the three Persons of the Holy Trinity are truly concluded in one substance." In
this fire the true Art is summed up in three palpable things, which yet are invisible
and incomprehensible, like the Holy Spirit. Without those three things our Art can
never be brought to perfection. One of them is fire; the second, water; the third,
earth; and all those three are invisibly present in one essence, and are the
instrumental cause of all perfection in Nature.
Now will I also describe the operation of those Three Things in our art, and will at
once begin with all Three.
Our wise Teacher Plato says: "Every husbandman who sows good seed, first chooses
a fertile field, ploughs and manures it well, and weeds it of all tares; he also takes
care that his own grain is free from every foreign admixture. When he has
committed the seed to the ground, he needs moisture, or rain, to decompose the
grain, and to raise it to new life. He also requires fire, that is, the warmth of the
Sun, to bring it to maturity." The needs of our Art are of an analogous nature.
First, you must prepare your seed, i.e., cleanse your Matter from all impurity, by a
method which you will find set forth at length in the Dicta of the Sages which I
subjoin to this Treatise. Then you must have good soil in which to sow your
Mercury and Sun; this earth must first be weeded of all foreign elements if it is to
yield a good crop. Hence the Sage enjoins us to "sow the seed in a fruitful field,
which has been prepared with living fire, and it will produce much fruit". What is
I will now truly inform you concerning the Urine of Children, and of the Sages. The
spirit which is extracted from the metals is the urine of children: for it is the seed
and the first principle of metals. Without this seed there is no consummation of
our Art, and no Tincture, either red or white. For the sulphur and mercury of gold
are the red, the sulphur and mercury of silver are the white Tincture: the Mercury
of the Sun and Moon fixes all Mercury in imperfect metals, and imparts excellence
and durability even to common Mercury. Dioscorides has written an elegant
treatise concerning this Urine of Children, which he calls the first Matter of
metals.
Mercury is nothing but water and salt, which have been subjected for a long space
of time to natural heat so as to be united into one. This is Mercury, or dry water,
which is not moist, and does not moisten anything; of course, I do not speak of
crude common mercury, but of the Mercury of the Sages. The Sages call it the fifth
element. It is the vital principle which brings all plants to maturity and perfection.
The other quintessence, which is in the earth, and partly material, contains within
itself its own seed which grows out of its soil. The heavenly quintessence comes to
the aid of the earthly, removes the grossness of its earth, and brings the aforesaid
seed to maturity. For Mercury, and the Celestial Quintessence, drain off all
harmful moisture from the quintessence of the earth. This Mercury is also called
sulphur of the air, sulphur being a hardening of mercury; or we may describe them
as husband and wife, from whom issue many children in the earth. You must not
think that I desire to hide from you my true meaning: nay, I will further endeavour
to illustrate it in the following way. Common sulphur, as you know, coagulates
common mercury; for sulphur is poisonous, and mercury deadly. How then can you
obtain from either of them anything suitable for perfecting the other, seeing that
both require to be assisted by some external agent? On the other hand, I tell you
that if, after the conjunction of our fixed sulphur with our sublimed mercury, you
sprinkle a mere particle of it upon crude mercury, the latter is at once brought to
perfection. Again, you may clearly perceive that the quintessence of the earth has
its operation in the winter when the earth is closed up with frost; while the
Quintessence of the Stars operates in the summer times when it removes all that is
injurious in the inferior quintessence, and thus quickens everything into vigorous
growth. The two quintessences' may also be driven off into water, and there
conserved. An earthly manifestation you may behold in the colours of the rainbow,
when the rays of the Sun shine through the rain. But, indeed, there is not a stone,
an animal, or a plant, that does not contain both quintessences. In short, they
embody the secret of our whole Magistery, and out of them our Stone is prepared.
Hermes, in his Emerald Table, expresses himself as follows: "Our Blessed Stone,
which is of good substance, and has a soul, ascends from earth to heaven, and
again descends from heaven to earth. Its effectual working is in the air; it is joined
to Mercury; hence the Sun is its Father, the Moon its Mother; the wind has borne it
in her womb, the earth is its nursing mother, and at length that which is above is
also that which is below. The whole represents a natural mixture: for it is a Stone
and not a Stone, fixed and volatile, body and soul, husband and wife, King and
Queen." Let what I have said suffice, instead of many other words and parables.
Composition.
Albertus expresses himself thus concerning the conjunction of the Stone: "The
elements are so subtle that no ordinary method of mingling will avail. They must
first be dissolved into water, then mixed, and placed in a warm spot, where they
are united after a time by natural warmth. For the Elixir and the two solutions
must be conjoined in the proportion of three parts of the Elixir and one part of the
crushed body. This must again be coagulated and dissolved, and so also again until
the whole has become one, without any transmutation. All this is accomplished by
the virtue of our mercurial water; for with it the body is dissolved. It is that which
purifies, conjoins, dissolves, and makes red and white." Aristotle says of it as
follows: This water is the earth in which Hermes bids us sow the seed; the Sun or
Moon, as Senior hath it, for extraction of the Divine water of sulphur and mercury,
which is fire, warming and fructifying by the igneous virtue thereof. This is the
Mercury and that is the water which wets not the hand. It is the Mercury which all
Sages have loved and used, and of which they have acknowledged the virtue so
long as they lived.
ii. ABEL, the son of Adam, wrote thus in his Principles: After God had created our
Father, Adam, and set him in Paradise, He subjected to his rule all animals, plants,
minerals, and metals. For man is the mountain of mountains, the Stone of all
stones, the tree of trees, the root of roots, the earth of earths. All these things he
includes within himself, and God has given to him to be the preserver of all things.
iii. SETH, the son of Adam, describes it thus: Know, my children, that in proportion
as the acid is subjected to coction, by means of our Art, and is reduced into ashes,
the more of the substance is extracted, and becomes a white body. If you cook this
well, and free it from all blackness, it is changed into a stone, which is called a
white stone until it is crushed. Dissolve it in water of the mouth, which has been
well tempered, and its whiteness will soon change to redness. The whole process is
performed by means of this sharp acid and the power of God.
iv. ISINDRUS: Our great and precious Matter is air, for air ameliorates the Matter,
whether the air be gross or tenuous, warm or moist. For the grossness of the air
arises from the setting, the approach, and the rising of the Sun. Thus the air may
be hot or cold, or dry and rarefied, and the degrees of this distinguish summer and
winter.
v. ANAXAGORAS says: God and His goodness are the first principle of all things.
Therefore, the mildness of God reigns even beneath the earth, being the substance
of all things, and thus also the substance beneath the earth. For the mildness of
God mirrors itself in creating, and His integrity in the solidity that is beneath the
earth. Now we cannot see His goodness, except in bodily form. -vi. SENIOR, or
PANDOLPHUS, says: I make known to posterity that the thinness, or softness, of air
is in water, and is not severed from the other elements. If the earth had not its
vital juice, no moisture would remain in it.
vii. ARISTEUS delivers himself thus briefly: Know that the earth is round, and not
flat. For if it were perfectly flat, the Sun would shine everywhere at the same
moment
viii. PYTHAGORAS: That which is touched and not seen, also that which is known
but not looked upon, these are only heaven and earth; again, that which is not
known is in the world and is perceived by sight, hearing, smell, taste, or touch.
Sight shews the difference between black and white; hearing, between good and
evil; taste, between sweet and bitter; touch, between subtle and gross; smell,
between fragrant and fetid.
ix. ARISTEUS, in his Second Table, says: Beat the body which I have made known to
you into thin plates; pour thereon our salt water, i.e., water of life, and heat it
with a gentle fire until its blackness disappears, and it becomes first white, and
then red.
x. PARMENIDES: The Sages have written about many waters, stones, and metals,
for the purpose of deceiving you. You that desire a knowledge of our Art,
relinquish Sun, Moon, Saturn, and Venus, for our ore, and our earth, and why so?
Every thing is of the nature of no thing.
xi. LUCAS: Take the living water of the Moon, and coagulate it, according to our
custom. By those last words I mean that it is already coagulated. Take the living
water of the Moon, and put it on our earth, till it becomes white: here, then, is
our magnesia, and the natures of natures rejoice.
xii. ETHEL: Subject our Stone to coction till it becomes as bright as white marble.
Then it is made a great and effectual Stone, sulphur having been added to sulphur,
and preserving its property.
xiii. PYTHAGORAS: We exhibit unto you the regimen concerning these things. The
substance must drink its water, like the fire of the Moon, which you have
prepared. It must continue drinking its own water and moisture till it turns white. .
xiv. PHILETUS Know, ye sons of philosophy, that the substance, the search after
which reduces so many to beggary, is not more than one thing of most effectual
properties. It is looked down upon by the ignorant, but held in great esteem by the
Sages. Oh, how great is the folly, and how great also is the presumptuous
ignorance of the vulgar herd! If you knew the virtue of this substance, kings,
princes, and nobles would envy you. We Sages call it the most sharp acid, and
without this acid nothing can be obtained, neither blackness, whiteness, nor the
Tincture.
xv. METHUSALEM: With air, vapour, and spirit we shall have vulgar mercury
changed into as good a silver as the nature of minerals will allow in the absence of
heat.
xvi; SIXION: Ye sons of philosophy, if you would make our substance red, you must
first make it white. Its three natures are summed up in whiteness and redness.
Take e, therefore, our Saturn, subject it to coction in aqua vita -- until it turns
white, becomes thick, and is coagulated, and then again till it becomes red. Then
it is red lead, and without this lead of the Sages nothing can be effected.
xvii. MUNDINUS: Learn, O imitators of this Art, that the philosophers have written
variously of many gums in their books, but the substance they refer to is nothing
but fixed and living water, out of which alone our noble Stone can be prepared.
Many seek what they call the essential " gum." and cannot find it. I reveal unto you
the knowledge of this gum and the mystery which abides therein. Know that our
gum is better than Sun and Moon. Therefore it is highly esteemed by the Sages,
though it is very cheap; and they say: Take care that you do not waste any of our
"gum." But in their books they do not call it by its common name, and that is the
reason why it is hidden from the many, according to the command which God gave
to Adam.
xviii. DARDANIUS: Know, my sons, that the Sages take a living and indestructible
water. Do not, then, set your hands to this task until you know the power and
efficacy of this water. For nothing can be done in our Art without this
indestructible water. For the Sages have described its power and efficacy as being
that of spiritual blood. Transmute this water into body and spirit, and then, by the
grace of God, you will have the spirit firmly fixed in the body.
xix. PYTHAGORAS, in his Second Book, delivers himself as follows: The Sages have
used different names for the substance, and have told us to make the
indestructible water white and red. They have also apparently indicated various
methods, but they really agree with each other in regard to all essentials, and it is
only their mystic language that causes a semblance of disagreement. Our Stone is a
stone, and not a stone. It has neither the appearance nor the properties of stone,
and yet it is a stone. Many have called it after the place where it is found; others
after its colour.
xx. NEOPHIDES: I bid you take that mystic substance, white magnesia And have a
care that the Stone be pure and bright. Then place it in its aqueous vessel, and
subject it to gentle heat, until it first becomes black, then again white, and then
red. The whole process should be accomplished in forty days. When you have done
this, God shows you the first substance of the Stone, which is an eagle -- stone,
and known to all men.
xxi. THEOPHILUS: Take white Magnesia, i.e., quicksilver, mingled with the Moon.
Pound it till it becomes thin water; subject it to coction for forty days; then the
flower of the Sun will open with great splendour. Close well the mouth of the
phial, and subject it to coction during forty days, when you will obtain a beautiful
water, which you must treat in the same way for another forty days, until it is
thoroughly purged of its blackness, and becomes white and fragrant.
xxii. BAELUS says: I bid you take Mercury, which is the Magnesia of the Moon, and
subject it and its body to coction till it becomes soft, thin, and like flowing water.
Heat it again till all its moisture is coagulated, and it becomes a Stone.
xxiii. BASAN says: Put the yellow Matter into the bath, together with its spouse,
and let not the bath be too hot, lest both be deprived of consciousness. Let a
gentle temperature be kept up till the husband and the wife become one; sprinkle
it with its sweat, and set it in a quiet place. Take care you do not drive off its
virtue by too great heat. Honour then the King and his Queen, and do not burn
them. If you subject them to gentle heat, they will become, first black, then
white, and then red. If you understand this, blessed are ye. But if you do not,
blame not Philosophy, but your own gross ignorance.
xxiv. ARISTOTLE: Know, my disciples, the Sages call our Stone sometimes earth,
and sometimes water. Be directed in the regulation of your fire by the guidance of
Nature. In the liquid there is first water, then a stone, then the earth of
philosophers in which they sow their grain, which springs up, and bears fruit after
its kind.
xxv. AGODIAS: Subject our earth to coction, till it becomes the first substance.
Pound it to an impalpable dust, and again enclose it in its vessel. Sprinkle it with
its own moisture till an union is effected. Then look at it carefully, and if the
water presents the appearance of ) (, continue to pound and heat For, if you
cannot reduce it to water, the water cannot be found. In order to reduce it to
water, you must stir up the body with fire. The water I speak of is not rain water,
but indestructible water which cannot exist without its body, which, in its turn,
cannot exist, or operate, without its own indestructible water.
xxvi. SIRETUS: What is required in our Art is our water and our earth, which must
become black, white, and red, with many intermediate colours which shew
themselves successively. Everything is generated through our living and
indestructible water. True Sages use nothing but this living water which supersedes
all other substances and processes. Coction, calcination, distillation, sublimation,
desiccation, humectation, albefaction, and rubrefaction, are all included in the
natural development of this one substance.
xxvii. MOSINUS: The Sages have described our substance, and the method of its
preparation, under many names, and thus have led many astray who did not
understand our writing. It is composed of red and white sulphur, and of fixed or
indestructible water, called permanent water.
xxviii. PLATO: Let it suffice you to dissolve bodies with this water, lest they be
burned. Let the substance be washed with living water till all its blackness
disappears, and it becomes a white Tincture.
xxix. ORFULUS: First, subject the Matter to gentle coction, of a temperature such
as that with which a hen hatches her eggs, lest the moisture be burnt up, and the
spirit of our earth destroyed. Let the phial be tightly closed that the earth may
crush our substance, and enable its spirit to be extracted. The Sages say that
quicksilver is extracted from the flower of our earth, and the water of our fire
extracted from two things, and transmuted into our acid. But though they speak of
many things, they mean only one thing, namely, that indestructible water which is
our substance, and our acid.
xxx. BATHON: If you know the Matter of our Stone, and the mode of regulating its
coction, and the chromatic changes which it undergoes -- as though it wished to
warn you that its names are as numerous as the colours which it displays -- then
you may perform the putrefaction, or first coction, which turns our Stone quite
black. BY this sign you may know that you have the key to our Art, and you will be
able to transmute it into the mystic white and red. The Sages say that the Stone
dissolves itself, coagulates itself, mortifies itself, and is quickened by its own
inherent power, and that it changes itself to black, white, and red, in Christian
charity and fundamental truth.
xxxi. BLODIUS. Take the Stone which is found everywhere, and is called Rebis
(Two-thing), and grows in two mountains Take it while it is still fresh, with its own
proper blood. Its growth is in its skin, also in its flesh, and its food is in its blood,
its habitation in the air. Take of it as much as you like, and plunge it into the Bath.
xxxii. LEAH, the prophetess, writes briefly thus: Know, Nathan, that the flower of
gold is the Stone; therefore subject it to heat during a certain number of days, till
it assumes the dazzling appearance of white marble.
xxxiii. ALKIUS: You daily behold the mountains which contain the husband and
wife. Hie you therefore to their caves, and dig up their earth, before it perishes.
xxxiv. BONELLUS: All ye lovers of this Art, I say unto you, in faith and love:
Relinquish the multiplicity of your methods and substances, for our substance is
one thing, and is called living and indestructible water. He that is led astray by
many words, will know the persons against whom he should be on his guard.
xxxv. HIERONYMUS: Malignant men have darkened our Art, perverting it with many
words; they have called our earth, and our Sun, or gold, by many misleading
names. Their salting, dissolving, subliming, growing, pounding, reducing to an
acid, and white sulphur, their coction of the fiery vapour, its coagulation, and
transmutation into red sulphur, are nothing but different aspects of one and the
same thing, which, in its first stage, we may describe as incombustible and
indestructible sulphur.
xxxvi. HERMES: Except ye convert the earth of our Matter into fire, our acid will
not ascend.
xxxvii. PYTHAGORAS, in his Fourth Table, says: How wonderful is the agreement of
Sages in the midst of difference! They all say that they have prepared the Stone
out of a substance which by the vulgar is looked upon as the vilest thing on earth.
Indeed, if we were to tell the vulgar herd the ordinary name of our substance,
they would look upon our assertion as a daring falsehood. But if they were
acquainted with its virtue and efficacy, they would not despise that which is, in
reality, the most precious thing in the world. God has concealed this mystery from
the foolish, the ignorant, the wicked, and the scornful, in order that they may not
use it for evil purposes.
xxxviii. HAGIENUS: Our Stone is found in all mountains, all trees, all herbs, and
animals, and with all men. It wears many different colours, contains the four
elements, and has been designated a microcosm. Can you not see, you ignorant
seekers after the Stone, who try, and vainly try, such a multiplicity of substances
and methods, that our Stone is one earth, and one sulphur, and that it grows in
abundance before your very eyes 7 I will tell you where you may find it. The first
spot is on the summit of two mountains; the second, in all mountains; the third,
among the refuse in the street; the fourth, in the trees and metals, the liquid of
which is the Sun and Moon, Mercury, Saturn, and Jupiter. There is but one vessel,
one method, and one consummation.
xxxix. MORIENUS: Know that our Matter is not in greater agreement with human
nature than with anything else, for it is developed by putrefaction and
transmutation. If it were not decomposed, nothing could be generated out of it.
The goal of our Art is not reached until Sun and Moon are conjoined, and become,
as it were, one body.
xl. THE EMERALD TABLE: It is true, without any error, and it is the sum of truth;
that which is above is also that which is below, for the performance of the
wonders of a certain one thing, and as all things arise from one Stone, so also they
were generated from one common Substance, which includes the four elements
created by God. And among other miracles the said Stone is born of the First
Matter. The Sun is its Father, the Moon its Mother, the wind bears it in its womb,
and it is nursed by the earth. Itself is the Father of the whole earth, and the whole
potency thereof. If it be transmuted into earth, then the earth separates from the
fire that which is most subtle from that which is hard, operating gently and with
great artifice. Then the Stone ascends from earth to heaven, and again descends
from heaven to earth, and receives the choicest influences of both heaven and
earth. If you can perform this you have the glory of the world, and are able to put
to flight all diseases, and to transmute all metals. It overcomes Mercury, which is
subtle, and penetrates all hard and solid bodies. Hence it is compared with the
world. Hence I am called Hermes, having the three parts of the whole world of
philosophy.
xli. LEPRINUS says: The Stone must be extracted from a two-fold substance, before
you can obtain the Elixir which is fixed in one essence, and derived from the one
indispensable Matter, which God has created, and without which no one can attain
the Art. Both these parts must be purified before they are joined together afresh.
The body must become different, and so must the volatile spirit. Then you have
the Medicine, which restores health, and imparts perfection to all things. The
fixed and the volatile principle must be joined in an inseparable union, which
defies even the destructive force of fire
xlii. LAMECH: In the Stone of the Philosophers are the first elements, and the final
colours of minerals, or Soul, Spirit, and Body, joined unto one. The Stone which
contains all these things is called Zibeth, and the working of Nature has left it
imperfect
xliii. SOCRATES: Our Mystery is the life of all things, or the water. For water
dissolves the body into spirit, and summons the living spirit from among the dead.
My son, despise not my Practical Injunction. For it gives you, in a brief form,
everything that you really need.
xliv. ALEXANDER: The good need not remain concealed on account of the bad men
that might abuse it. For God rules over all, according to His Divine Will. Observe,
therefore, that the salt of the Stone is derived from mercury, and is that Matter,
most excellent of all things, of which we are in search. The same also contains in
itself all secrets. Mercury is our Stone, which is composed of the dry and the moist
elements, which have been joined together by gentle heat in an inseparable union.
xlv. SENIOR teaches us to make the Salt out of ashes, and then, by various
processes, to change it into the Mercury of the Sages, because our Magistery is
dependent on our water alone, and needs nothing else.
xlvi. ROSARIUS: It is a stone, and not a stone, viz., the eagle -- stone. The
substance has in its womb a stone, and when it is dissolved, the water that was
coagulated in it bursts forth. Thus the Stone is the extracted spirit of our
indestructible body. It contains mercury, or liquid water, in its body, or fixed
earth, which retains its nature. This explanation is sufficiently plain.
xlvii. PAMPHILUS: The Salt of the Gem is that which is in its own bowels; it ascends
with the water to the top of the alembic, and, after separation, is once more
united and made one body with it by means of natural warmth. Or we may, with
King Alexander, liken the union to that of a soul with its body.
xlviii. DEMOCRITUS: Our Substance is the conjunction of the dry and the moist
elements, which are separated by a vapour or heat, and then transmuted into a
liquid like water, in which our Stone is found. For the vapour unites to the most
subtle earth the most subtle air, and contains all the most subtle elements. This
first substance may be separated into water and earth, the latter being
perceptible to the eye. The earth of the vapour is volatile when it ascends, but it
is found fixed when the separation takes place, and when the elements are joined
together again it becomes fixed mercury. For the enjoyment of this, His precious
gift, we Sages ceaselessly praise and bless God's Holy Name.
xlix. SIROS: The body of the Sages, being calcined, is called everlasting water,
which permanently coagulates our Mercury. And if the Body has been purified and
dissolved, the union is so close as to resist all efforts at separation.
l. NOAH, the man of God, writes thus in his Table: My children and brethren, know
that no other stone is found in the world that has more virtue than this Stone. No
mortal man can find the true Art without this Stone. Blessed be the God of Heaven
who has created this property in the Salt, even in the Salt of the Gem!
li. MENALDES: The fire of the Sages may be extracted from all natural things, and
is called the quintessence. It is of earth, water, air, and fire. It has no cause of
corruption or other contrary quality.
lii. HERMES, in his second Table, writes thus: Dissolve the ashes in the second
element, and coagulate this substance into a Stone. Let this be done seven times.
For as Naaman the Syrian was purged of his leprosy by washing himself seven times
in Jordan, so our substance must undergo a seven-fold cleansing, by calcining and
dissolving, and exhibiting a variety of ever deepening colours. In our water are
hidden the four elements, and this earth, which swallows its water, is the dragon
that swallows its tail, i.e., its strength.
liii. NUNDINUS: The fire which includes all our chemical processes, is three-fold:
the fiery element of the air, of water and of the earth. This is all that our
Magistery requires.
liv. ANANIAS: Know, ye Scrutators of Nature, that fire is the soul of everything, and
that God Himself is fire and soul. And the body cannot live without fire. For
without fire the other elements have no efficacy. It is, therefore, a most holy,
awful, and divine fire which abides with God Himself in the Most Holy Trinity, for
which also we give eternal thanks to God.
iv. BONIDUS: In the fountain of Nature our Substance is found, and nowhere else
upon earth; and our Stone is fire, and has been generated in fire, without,
however, being consumed by fire.
lvi. ROSINUS: TWO things are hidden in two things, and indicate our Stone: in earth
is fire, and air in water, yet there are only two outward things, viz., earth and
water. For Mercury is our Stone, consisting as it does both of moist and dry
elements. Mercury is dry and moist in its very nature, and all things have their
growth from the dry and moist elements.
lvii. GEBER: We cannot find anything permanent, or fixed, in fire, but only a
viscous natural moisture which is the root of all metals. For our venerable Stone
nothing is required but mercurial substances, if they have been well purified by
our Art, and are able to resist the fierce heat of fire. This Substance penetrates to
the very roots of metals, overcomes their imperfect nature, and transmutes them,
according to the virtue of the Elixir, or Medicine.
lviii. AROS: Our Medicine consists of two things, and one essence. There is one
Mercury, of a fixed and a volatile substance, composed of body and spirit, cold and
moist, warm and dry.
lix. ARNOLDUS: Let your only care be to regulate the coction of the Mercurial
substance. In proportion as it is itself dignified shall it dignify bodies.
lx. ALPHIDIUS: Transmute the nature, and you will find what you want. For in our
Magistery we obtain first from the gross the subtle, or the spirit; then from the
moist the dry, i.e., earth from water. Thus we transmute the corporeal into the
spiritual, and the spiritual into the corporeal, the lowest into the highest, and the
highest into the lowest
lxi. BERNARDUS: The middle substance is nothing but coagulated mercury; and the
first Matter is nothing but twofold mercury. For our Medicine is composed of two
things, the fixed and the volatile, the corporeal and the spiritual, the cold and the
warm, the moist and the dry. Mercury must be subjected to coction in a vessel
with three divisions, that the dryness of the active fire may be changed into
vaporous moisture of the oil that surrounds the substance. Ordinary fire does not
digest our substance, but its heat converted into dryness is the true fire.
lxii. STEPHANUS: Metals are earthly bodies, and are generated in water. The water
extracts a vapour from the Stone, and out of the moisture of [the] earth, by the
operation of the Sun, God lets gold grow and accumulate. Thus earth and water
are united into a metallic body.
lxiii. GUIDO BONATUS writes briefly concerning the quintessence, as being purer
than all elements. The quintessence contains the four elements, that is, the first
Matter, out of which God has created, and still creates, all things. It is Hyle,
containing in a confused mixture the properties of every creature.
lxv. LONGINUS I describes the process in the following terms: Let your vessel be
tightly closed and exposed to an even warmth. This water is prepared in dry ashes,
and is subjected to coction till the two become one. When one is joined to the
other, the body is brought back to its spirit. Then the fire must be strengthened
till the fixed body retains that which is not fixed by its own heat. With this you can
tinge ten thousand times ten thousand of other substances.
lxvi. HERMES, in his Mysteries, says: Know that our Stone is lightly esteemed by the
thankless multitude; but it is very precious to the Sages. If princes knew how much
gold can be made out of a particle of Sun, and of our Stone, they would never
suffer it to be taken out of their dominions.
"The Sages rejoice when the bodies are" "dissolved; for our stone is prepared with
two" "waters. It drives away all sickness from the" "diseased body, whether it be
human or" "metallic."
lxvii. NERO: Know that our Mercury is dry and moist, and conjoined with the Sun
and Moon. Sun and Moon in nature are cold and moist mercury and hot and dry
sulphur, and both have their natural propagation by being joined in one thing.
I now propose to say something about the meaning of the obscure and allegorical
expressions used by some of the Sages whom I have quoted. Be sure that they all
were true Sages, and really possessed our Stone. It may have been possessed by
more persons since the time of Adam, but the above list includes all of whom I
have heard. I need not here review all their sayings; for the words of the least of
them are sufficient for imparting to you a knowledge of this Art; and my ambition
goes no higher than that. If I have enumerated so large a number of authorities, I
have only done so in order that you might the better understand both the theory
and practice of this Art, and that you might be saved all unnecessary expense. For
this reason I have declared this true philosophy with all the skill that God has given
me. I hope the initiated will overlook any verbal inaccuracy into which I have
fallen, and that they will be induced by my example to abstain from wilfully
misleading anxious enquirers. I may have fallen into some errors of detail, but as
to the gist of my work, I know what I have written, And that it is God's own truth.
When God had created our first parent Adam, and set him in Paradise, He shewed
him two things, namely, earth and water. Earth is fixed and indestructible, water
is volatile and vaporous. These two contain the elements of all created things:
water contains air, and earth fire -- and of these four things the whole of creation
is composed. In earth are enclosed fire, stones, minerals, salt, mercury, and all
manner of metals; in water, and in air, all manner of living and organic
substances, such as beasts, birds, fishes, flesh, blood, bones, wood, trees, flowers,
and leaves. To all these things God imparted their efficacy and virtue, and
subjected them to the mastery and use of Adam. Hence you may see how all these
things are adapted to the human body, and are such as to meet the requirements
of his nature. He may incorporate the virtue of outward substances by assimilating
them in the form of food. In the same way, his mind is suitably constructed for the
purpose of gaining a rational knowledge of the physical world. That this is the
case, you may see from the first chapter of Genesis.
On the sixth day of the first year of the world, that is to say, on the 15th day of
March, God created the first man, Adam, of red earth, in a field near Damascus,
with a beautiful body, and after His own image. When Adam was created, he stood
naked before the Lord, and with outstretched hands rendered thanks to Him,
saying: O Lord, Thy hands have shaped me: now remember, I pray Thee, the work
of Thy hands, which Thou hast clothed with flesh, and strengthened with bones,
and grant me life and loving kindness.
So the Lord endowed Adam with great wisdom, and such marvellous insight that he
immediately, without the help of any teacher -- simply by virtue of his original
righteousness -- had a perfect knowledge of the seven liberal arts, and of all
animals, plants, stones, metals and minerals. Nay, what is more, he had perfect
understanding of the Holy Trinity, and of the coming of Christ in the flesh.
Moreover, Adam was the Lord, King, and Ruler of all other creatures which, at the
Divine bidding, were brought to him by the angel to receive their names. Thus all
creatures acknowledged Adam as their Lord, seeing that it was he to whom the
properties and virtues of all things were to be made known. Now the wisdom, and
knowledge of all things, which Adam had received, enabled him to observe the
properties, the origin, and the end of all things. He noted the division and
destruction, the birth and decay of physical substances. He saw that they derive
their origin from the dry and the moist elements, and that they are again
transmuted into the dry and the moist. Of all these things Adam took notice, and
especially of that which is called the first Matter. For he who knows how all things
are transmuted into their first Matter, has no need to ask any questions. It was
that which existed in the beginning before God created heaven and earth; and out
of it may be made one new thing which did not exist before, a new earth, fire,
water, air, Sun, Moon, Stars, in short, a new world.
As in the beginning all things were created new, so there is a kind of new creation
out of the first substance in our Art. Now although God warned Adam generally not
to reveal this first substance -- viz., the moist and the dry elements -- yet He
permitted him to impart the knowledge to his son Seth. Abel discovered the Art for
himself, by the wisdom which God had given him, and inscribed an account of it on
beechen tablets. He was also the first to discover the art of writing; further, he
foretold the destruction of the world by the Flood, and wrote all these things on
wooden tablets, and hid them in a pillar of stone, which was found, long
afterwards, by the children of Israel Thus you see that our Art was a secret from
the beginning, and a secret it will remain to the end of the world. For this reason
it is necessary carefully to consider all that is said about it, and especially the
words of the Lord to Adam: for they exhibit in a succinct form the secret of the
whole Art.
This saying partly explains itself, and is partly explained by what we said about
God's words to Adam. Yet I will add a few remarks concerning it. Man hath within
him the virtue and efficiency of all things, whence he is called a small world, and
is compared to the large world, because the bones which are beneath his skin, and
support his body, may be likened to the mountains and stones, his flesh to the
earth, his veins to the rivers, and his small veins to the brooks which are
discharged into them. The heart is the sea into which the great and small rivers
flow, his hair resembles the growing herbs -- and so with all other parts of his
body. Again, his inward parts, such as the heart, lungs, and liver, are comparable
to the metals. The hairs have their head in the earth (i.e., the flesh) and their
roots in the air, as the Sages say, that the root of their minerals is in the air, and
their head in the earth. That which ascends by distillation is volatile, and is in the
air; that which remains at the bottom, and is fixed, is the head, which is in the
earth. Therefore, the one must always exist in conjunction with the other if it is to
be effectual. Hence man may be compared to an inverted tree: for he has his
roots, or his hair, in the air, while other trees have their hairs. or their roots, in
the earth.
And of our Stone, too, the Sages have justly said that it has its head in the earth,
and its root in the air. This similitude has a two-fold interpretation. First, with
regard to the place in which our Matter is found; secondly, with regard to the
dissolution and second conjunction of the Stone. For when our Stone rises upward
in the alembic, it has its root in the air; but if it would regain its virtue and
strength, it must once more return to its earth, and then it has its head and
perfect potency in the earth. Hence our Stone, too, is not inaptly denominated a
small world; it is called the mountain of mountains, from which our ore is derived,
since it is evolved from the first substance in a way analogous to that in which the
great world was created. Know that if you bury anything in [the] earth, and it rots,
as food is digested in the human body, and the gross is separated from the subtle,
and that which is fetid from that which is pure, then that which is pure is the first
Matter which has been set free by decay. If you understand this, you know the true
Art. But keep it to yourself, and cast not pearls before swine; for the vulgar regard
our Art with ignorant contempt.
By "acid which is to be subjected to coction, and transmuted into ashes, "the Sage
Seth means distilled water, which we call seed. If this, by diligent coction, is
condensed into a body -- which he calls ashes -- the body loses its blackness by
being washed till it becomes white; for, by constant coction, all blackness and
gross impurity are removed. If it were not for this earth, the spirit would never be
coagulated; for it would have no body into which it could enter -- seeing that it
cannot be coagulated and fixed anywhere but in its own body. On the other hand,
the spirit purifies its body, as Seth says, and makes it white. He says further: "If
you diligently heat it, and free it from its blackness, it is changed into a Stone,
which is called the white coin of the Stone. "That is to say, if it is slowly heated
with a gentle fire, it is by degrees changed into a body which resists fire, and is
named a Stone. It is fixed, and it has a brilliantly white appearance. A coin it is
called, because, as he who has a coin may purchase with it bread or whatever else
he needs, so he who has this Stone may purchase for himself health, wisdom,
longevity, gold, silver, gems, etc. Hence it is justly called the Coin, since it can
buy what all the riches in the world cannot procure. It is struck By the Sages, who,
instead of the image of a prince, impress upon it their own image. Therefore it is
denominated the COIN of the SAGES, because it is their own money, struck in their
own mint
Again, when the Sage says, "Heat the Stone till it breaks [itself], and dissolve it in
the well-tempered water of the Moon," he means that the Stone must be heated by
that which is in itself, until it is changed into water, or dissolved. All this is done
by its own agency; for the body is called Moon, when it has been changed into
water; and the extracted spirit, or distilled water, is called Sun. For the element
of [the] air is concealed in it; but the body must be broken in its own water, or
dissolved by itself. The "well-tempered water of the Moon" is the gentle inward
heat which changes it into water, and yields two waters, viz., the distilled spirit,
and the dissolved body. These two waters are again united by slow and gentle
coction, the distilled spirit becoming coagulated into a body, the dissolved body
becoming a spirit The fixed becomes volatile, and the volatile fixed, by dissolution
and coagulation, and both assume, first a white, and then a red colour. The
change to white and red is produced by the same water, and the white is always
followed by the red, just as the black is followed by the white. When the Sage
says, in conclusion, "that the whole can be accomplished only with the best acid,
through the power of God alone," he means that the one thing from which alone
our Stone can be procured may be compared to the sharpest acid and that, by
means of our Art, this acid is changed into the best of earthly things, which all the
treasures of all kings and princes are not sufficient to buy
Good Heavens! How skilfully the Sages have contrived to conceal this matter. It
would surely have been far better if they had abstained from writing altogether.
For the extreme obscurity of their style has overwhelmed thousands in ruin, and
plunged them into the deepest poverty, especially those who set about this task
without even the slightest knowledge of Nature, or of the requirements of our Art.
What the Sages write is strictly true; but you cannot understand it unless you are
already initiated in the secrets of this Art. Yea, even if you were a Doctor of the
Doctors, and a Light of the World, you would be able to see no meaning in their
words without this knowledge. They have written, but you are none the wiser.
They half wished to communicate the secret to their posterity; but a jealous
feeling prevented them from doing so in plain language. To the uninitiated reader
these words of Isindrus must appear nothing short of nonsense: "Great is the air,
because the air corrects the thing, if it is thin or thick, hot or cold." But the Sage
means that when it ascends with the water, it is hot air, for fire and air bear our
Stone like secret fire concealed therein, and the water which ascends from the
earth, by that ascension becomes air, and thin; and when it descends, it descends
into water which contains fire; thus the earth is purified, seeing that the water
takes [the] fire with it into the earth. For the fire is the Soul, and the Moon the
Spirit. Therefore, the air is great, because it bears with it water and fire, and
imparts them to all things, though thereby (by this loss of water) itself becomes
cold. Then the air becomes thick, when with its fire it is transmuted into the body,
and thus the air corrects the thing by its thickness. For it bears out our Stone as it
carries it in, and purifies it both in its ascent and in its descent. In the same way
air purifies all things that grow (i.e., plants), gives them their food (i.e., water),
and imparts to them its fire, by which they are sustained. Of this you may convince
yourself by ocular demonstration. For the air bears the clouds, and sheds them
upon earth in the form of rain; which rain contains secret fire derived from the
earth, and the rays of the Sun by which it was drawn upward -- and this fire it
gives to all things as food. And although the rays of the Sun and Moon are
immeasurably subtle, swift, and intangible; yet the rays of our Sun and Moon are
much swifter and more subtle than those which are received by the plants in their
growth. For the earth digests the rays of the Sun and Moon, and they sustain in the
most wonderful manner things of vegetable growth; and all the living rays of the
Sun and Moon nourish all created things. For by this digestion they obtain their
life. For this reason the air may be called great, because through the grace of God
it accomplishes great things.
Again, when the Sage says, "If the air becomes thick," i.e., when the Sun turns
aside, or is changed, "there is a thickness, till it rises," he means that if the
distilled water which is taken for the Sun, or fire, approaches its body, and is
changed into it, then the Sun stoops down to the earth. Thereby the air becomes
thick, being joined to the earth, and if the Sun is once more elevated the air
becomes thin; that is to say, when the water is extracted from the earth by means
of the alembic, the fire rises upward, i.e., the Sun is exalted, and the air becomes
thin. Again, when he says, "This also is hot and cold, and thickness, and thinness,
or softness," the Sage means that the Sun is hot, and the Moon cold; for the earth,
when dissolved, is the Moon, and water, in which is fire, is the Sun: these two
must be conjoined in an inseparable union. This union enables them to reduce the
elements of all metallic and animal bodies, into which they are injected, to
perfect purity and health. When the Sage adds that thickness and thinness denote
summer and winter, he means that our Art is mingled of thickness and thinness, or
two elements which must be united by gentle warmth, like that of winter and
summer combined. This temperate warmth, which resembles that of a bath, brings
the Sun and Moon together. Thus I have, by the grace of God, interpreted to you
the parabolic saying of Isindrus.
From the beginning of all things God is. He is likened to light and fire, and He may
be likened to the latter in His essence, because fire is the first principle of all
things that are seen and grow. In the same way, the first principle of our Art is
fire. Heat impels Nature to work, and in its working are manifested Body, Spirit,
and Soul; that is, earth and water. Earth is the Body, oil the Soul, and water the
Spirit; and all this is accomplished through the Divine goodness and lenity, without
which Nature can do nothing; or, as the Sage says: "God's lenity rules all things;
and beneath the thickness of the earth, after creation, are revealed lenity and
integrity." That is to say: If the earth is separated from the water, and itself
dissolved into oil and water, the oil is integrity, and the water lenity; for the
water imparts the soul to the oil and to the body, and [the body] receives nothing
but what is imparted to it by heaven, that is, by the water -- and the water is
revealed under the oil, the oil under the earth. For the fire is subtle, and floats
upward from the earth with subtle waters, and is concealed in the earth. Now oil
and air and earth are purified by their own spirit Therefore the oil is integrity in
the body, and the spirit lenity. And the spirit in the first operation descends to the
body and restores life to the body; although the oil is pure and remains with the
body, yet it cannot succour the body without the help of the spirit; for the body
suffers violence and anguish while it is dissolved and purified. Then, again, the
"thickness of the earth" is transmuted into a thin substance such as water or oil,
and thus the "lenity" is seen in the body. For the body is so mild or soft as to be
changed into water, or oil, although before it was quite dry. Therefore oil is seen
in the earth, which is the fatness or life of the water, i.e., an union of fire, air,
and water. Now give the water to the body to drink, and it will be restored to life.
And though those three elements have ascended from the earth, yet the virtue
remains with the body, as you may see by dissolving it into oil and water. But the
oil cannot operate without the spirit, nor can the spirit bear fruit without the oil
and the body. Therefore they must be united; and all "lenity" and "integrity" are
seen in the body when it is transmuted to white and red.
This Sage asks what that is which is touched, and yet not seen. He means that the
substance which is prepared by our Art is one thing, which is tangible and invisible.
That is to say, it is felt, but not seen, nor is the mode of its operation known. He
who knows it, but knows not its operation, as yet knows nothing as he ought. This
one thing, which alone is profitable for the purposes of our Art, proceeds from a
certain dark place, where it is not seen, nor are its operation or its virtue known
to any but the initiated. A great mystery is also concealed in the Matter itself,
namely, air and fire, or the Sun, the Moon, and the Stars. This is concealed in it,
and yet is invisible, as the Sage says: What is not seen, or known, is only heaven.
That which is felt, and not seen, is earth. Earth, says the Sage, is thickness, or
body, which is found at the bottom of the Matter, has accumulated in the Matter,
and can be felt and known. By the words, "that is between heaven and earth,
which is not known," (ie., in the world), the Sage means that the Matter of our
Stone is found in the small world; not in rocks and mountains, or in the earth, but
between heaven and earth, i.e., in the air. Again, when he says that "in it are
senses, and entirety, as smell, taste, hearing, touch," he would teach us that in
human nature there is entirety of mind and perception; for man can know, feel,
and understand. He would also teach us how our Stone is to be found, namely, by
sight, hearing, smell, taste, and touch. By sight, because the Matter of the Stone is
thick, or thin and clear, and turns black, white, and red. By smell, because, when
its impurity is purged away, it emits a most sweet fragrance. By taste, because it
is first bitter and disagreeable, but afterwards becomes most pleasant By touch,
because that sense enables us to distinguish between the hard and the soft, the
gross and the subtle, between water and earth, and between the different stages
of distillation, putrefaction, dissolution, coagulation, fermentation, and injection,
which the substance goes through. The different processes of the task are
perceived with the senses, and it should be accomplished within forty-six days.
"Take the body which I have shewn you, and beat it into thin leaves," i.e., take the
earth which cleaves to our substance, and, by having become dry, becomes visible
and knowable; for now it is water and earth. The earth is thus shewn and divided
into two parts, earth and water. Let that earth be taken, placed in a phial, and
put in a warm bath, by the warmth of which it is dissolved, through its own
internal coction, into water; this the Sage calls beating into thin leaves. The body
which is thus obtained is variously described as the Philosopher's Stone, or the
Stone of leaves. "Add some of our salt water, and this is the water of life." That
means: After its dissolution into water, it must receive our salt water to drink, for
this water has been previously distilled from it, and is the water of life; for the
soul and spirit of the body are hidden in it, and it is called our sea water; the same
also is its natural name, because it is obtained from the invisible hidden sea of the
Sages, the sea of the smaller world. For our Art is called the smaller world, and
thus it is the water of our sea. If this water is added to the body, and heated and
purified with it, the body is purged by long coction, and its colour changes from
black to a brilliant white, while the water is coagulated, and forms, by indissoluble
union with the body, the imperishable Philosopher's Stone, which you must use to
the glory of God, and the good of your neighbour.
Jealous Sages have named many waters and metals and stones, simply for the
purpose of deceiving you; herein the philosophers would warn us that they have
used secrecy, lest the whole mystery should be manifested before all the world.
Those who follow the letter of their directions are sure to be led astray, and to
miss entirely the true foundation of our Art. The fault, however, lies not with the
Sages so much as with the ignorance of their readers. The Sages name it a stone;
and so it is a stone, which is dug up from our mine. They speak of metals, and
there are such things as metals liquefied from our ore. They speak of water; but
our water we obtain from our own spring. The red and white sulphur they refer to
are obtained from our air. Their salt is obtained from our salt mines. It is our Sun,
our verdigris, halonitre, alkali, orpiment, arsenic, our poison, our medicine, etc.
By whatever name they call it they cannot make it more than one thing. It is
rightly described by all the Sages, but not plainly enough for the uninitiated
enquirer. For such an one knows neither the substance nor its operation. The Sage
says: "Relinquish Sun, Moon, and Venus for our ore," i.e., it is not to be found in
any earthly metals, but only in our ore. Whoever rightly understands the
concluding words of the Sage has received a great blessing at the hand of God.
By the living water of the Moon this Sage means our water, which is twofold. The
distilled water is the Moon; the Sun, or fire, is hidden in it, and is the Father of all
things. Hence it is compared to a man, because the Sun is in the water. It is also
called living water; for the life of the dead body is hidden in the water. It is the
water of the Moon, because the Sun is the Father and the Moon the Mother. Hence,
also, they are regarded as husband and wife. The Body is the Moon, or Mother, and
the distilled water, or male principle, rises upward from the earth; and for that
reason is sometimes called Moon. For it is the water of the Moon, or Body. It has
left the Body, and must enter it again before our Art can be perfected. Hence the
Body, or Moon, has well been designated the female principle, and the water, or
Sun, the male principle, for reasons which have been set forth at length in this
book.
Again, when the Sage says, "Coagulate it after our fashion," those last three words
mean that the body must receive its spirit to drink gradually, and little by little,
until it recovers its life, and health, and strength, which takes place by means of
the same gentle heat which digests food in the stomach, and matures fruit in its
place. For it is our custom to eat, drink, and live in gentle warmth. By this regimen
our body is preserved, and all that is foul and unprofitable is driven out from our
body. According to the same fashion of gentle coction, all that is fetid and black is
gradually purged out of our Stone. For when the Sage says "after our fashion," he
wishes to teach you that the preparation of the Stone bears a strict analogy to the
processes of the human body. That the chemical development of our substance is
internal, and caused by the operation of Nature and of its four elements, the Sage
indicates by the words, "Everything is already coagulated." The substance contains
all that is needed; there is nothing to be added or taken away, seeing that it is
dissolved and again conjoined by its own inherent properties. When the Sage
continues, "I bid you take water of life, which descends from the Moon, and pour it
upon our earth till it turns white," he means that if water and earth are separated
from each other, then the dry body is our earth, and the extracted water is the
water of the Moon, or water of life. This process of adfusion, desiccation,
attrition, coagulation, etc., is repeated till the body turns white; and then takes
place on conglutination, which is indissoluble. "Then," as the Sage says, "we have
our Magnesia, and the Nature of natures rejoices." Its spirit and body become one
thing: they were one thing, and after separation have once more become one
thing; therefore, one nature rejoices in the restoration of the other.
He says: "Heat our Stone until it shines like dazzling marble; then it becomes
great, and a mystic Stone; for sulphur added to sulphur preserves it on account of
its fitness." That is to say: When the moist and the dry have been separated, the
dry which lies at the bottom, and is called our Stone, is as black as a raven. It must
be subjected to the coction of our water (separated from it), until it loses its
blackness, and becomes as white as dazzling marble. Then it is the mystic Stone
which by coction has been transmuted into fixed mercury with the blessing of God.
The Stone is mystic, or secret, because it is found in a secret place, in an
universally despised substance where no one looks for the greatest treasure of the
world. Hence it may well be called The HIDDEN STONE. By the joining of two
sulphurs and their mutual preservation, he means that though, after the separation
of spirit and body, there seem to be two substances, yet, in reality, there is only
one substance; so the body which is below is "sulphur," and the spirit which is
above is also "sulphur." Now, when the spirit returns to the body, one sulphur is
added to another; and they are bound together by a mutual fitness, since the body
cannot be without the spirit, nor the spirit without the body. Hence there are
these two sulphurs in the body, the red and the white, and the white sulphur is in
the black body, while the red is hid beneath it. If the spirit is gradually added to
the body, it is entirely coagulated into the body, sulphur is added to sulphur, and
perfection is attained through the fitness which exists between them. The body
receives nothing but its own spirit; for it has retained its soul, and what has been
extracted from a body can be joined to nothing but that same body. The spirit
delights in nothing so much as in its own soul, and its own body. Hence the Sage
says: "When the spirit has been restored to the body, the sulphur to the sulphur,
and the water to the earth, and all has become white, then the body retains the
spirit, and there can be no further separation."Thus you have the well purged
earth of the Sages, in which we sow our grain, unto infinity, that it may bring forth
much fruit.
You have good cause to wonder at the great variety of ways in which the Sages
have expressed the same thing. Nevertheless, their descriptions apply only to one
Matter, and their sayings refer only to a single substance. For when our Sage says,
"We give you directions concerning these things: We tell you that it is dry water,
like the water of the Moon, which you have prepared, "he means that we Sages
must give directions, according to the best of our ability. If those directions,
rightly understood, do not answer the purpose, you may justly charge us with fraud
and imposture. But if you fail through not taking our meaning, you must blame
your own unspeakable stupidity, which follows the letter, but not the spirit of our
directions. When the Sage further says that it must drink its own water, he would
teach you that after the separation of the dry from the moist, the water extracted
from the body is the right water, and the water of the Moon, prepared by
putrefaction and distillation. This extracted water is regarded as the male
principle, and the earth, or body, as the female principle. The water of the
husband must now be joined in conjugal union to that of the wife; the body must,
at intervals, drink of its own prepared water, and become ever purer, the more it
drinks, till it turns most wonderfully white. Then it is called "our calx," and you
must pour the water of our calx upon the body, until it is coagulated, becoming
tinged, and a most bright quality returns to it, and the body itself is saturated with
its own moisture. If you wish to obtain the red tincture, you should dissolve and
coagulate, and go through the whole process over again. Verily, this is God's own
truth, an accurate, simple, and plain statement of the requirements of our Art.
transmuted into body, and becomes fixed. When bodies become spirits, and spirits
bodies, your work is finished, for then that which rises upward and that which
descends downward become one body. Therefore the Sage says that that which is
above is that which is below, meaning that, after having been separated into two
substances (from being one substance), they are again joined together into one
substance, i.e., an union which can never be dissolved, and possesses such virtue
and efficacy that it can do in one moment what the Sun cannot accomplish in a
thousand years. And this miracle is wrought by a thing which is despised and
rejected by the multitude. Again, the Sage tells us that all things were created,
and are still generated, from one first substance and consist of the same
elementary material; and in this first substance God has appointed the four
elements, which represent a common material into which it might perhaps be
possible to resolve all things. Its development is brought about by the distillation
of the Sun and Moon. For it is operated upon by the natural heat of the Sun Moon,
which stirs up its internal action, and multiplies each thing after its kind,
imparting to the substance a specific form. The soul, or nutritive principle, is the
earth which receives the rays of the Sun and Moon, and therewith feeds her
children as with mother's milk. Thus the Sun is the father, the Moon is the mother,
the earth the nurse -- and in this substance is that which we require. He who can
take it and prepare it is truly to be envied. It is separated by the Sun and Moon in
the form of a vapour, and collected in the place where it is found. When Hermes
adds that "the air bears it in its womb, the earth is its nurse, the whole world its
Father," he means that when the substance of our Stone is dissolved, then the
wind bears it in its womb, i.e., the air bears up the substance in the form of
water, in which is hid fire, the soul of the Stone, and fire is the Father of the
whole world. Thus, the volatile substance rises upward, while that which remains
at the bottom, is the "whole world" (seeing that our Art is compared to a "small
world "). Hence Hermes calls fire the father of the whole world, because it is the
Sun of our Art, and air, Moon, and water ascend from it; the earth is the nurse of
the Stone, i.e., when the earth receives the rays of the Sun and Moon, a new body
is born, like a new foetus in the mother's womb. The earth receives and digests the
light of Sun and Moon, and imparts food to its foetus day by day, till it becomes
great and strong, and puts off its blackness and defilement, and is changed to a
different colour. This, "child,"which is called "our daughter," represents our Stone,
which is born anew of the Sun and Moon, as you may easily see, when the spirit, or
the water that ascended, is gradually transmuted into the body, and the body is
born anew, and grows and increases in size like the foetus in the mother's womb.
Thus the Stone is generated from the first substance, which contains the four
elements; it is brought forth by two things, the body and the spirit; the wind bears
it in its womb, for it carries the Stone upward from earth to heaven, and down
again from heaven to earth. Thus the Stone receives increase from above and from
below, and is born a second time, just as every other foetus is generated in the
maternal womb; as all created things bring forth their young, even so does the air,
or wind, bring forth our Stone. When Hermes adds, "Its power, or virtue, is entire,
when it is transmuted into earth," he means that when the spirit is transmuted into
the body, it receives its full strength and virtue. For as yet the spirit is volatile,
and not fixed, or permanent. If it is to be fixed, we must proceed as the baker
does in baking bread. We must impart only a little of the spirit to the body at a
time, just as the baker only puts a little leaven to his meal, and with it leavens the
whole lump. The spirit, which is our leaven, in like fashion transmutes the whole
body into its own substance. Therefore the body must be leavened again and
again, until the whole lump is thoroughly pervaded with the power of the leaven.
In our Art the body leavens the spirit, and transmutes it into one body, and the
spirit leavens the body, and transmutes it into one spirit And the two, when they
have become one, receive power to leaven all things, into which they are injected,
with their own virtue.
The Sage continues: "If you gently separate the earth from the water, the subtle
from the hard, the Stone ascends from earth to heaven, and again descends from
heaven to earth, and receives its virtue from above and from below. By this
process you obtain the glory and brightness of the whole world. With it you can put
to flight poverty, disease, and weariness; for it overcomes the subtle mercury, and
penetrates all hard and firm bodies." He means that all who would accomplish this
task must separate the moist from the dry, the water from the earth. The water,
or fire, being subtle, ascends, while the body is hard, and remains where it is. The
separation must be accomplished by gentle heat, i.e., in the temperate bath of
the Sages, which acts slowly, and is neither too hot nor too cold. Then the Stone
ascends to heaven, and again descends from heaven to earth. The spirit and body
are first separated, then again joined together by gentle coction, of a temperature
resembling that with which a hen hatches her eggs. Such is the preparation of the
substance, which is worth the whole world, whence it is also called a "little world."
The possession of the Stone will yield you the greatest delight, and unspeakably
precious comfort. It will also set forth to you in a typical form the creation of the
world. It will enable you to cast out all disease from the human body, to drive
away poverty, and to have a good understanding of the secrets of Nature. The
Stone has virtue to transmute mercury into gold and silver, and to penetrate all
hard and firm bodies, such as precious stones and metals. You cannot ask a better
gift of God than this gift, which is greater than all other gifts. Hence Hermes may
justly call himself by the proud title of "Hermes Trismegistus, who holds the three
parts of the whole world of wisdom."
Another Tract,
Corresponding To The First, Which May Be Read With
Great Profit.
Preface.
We may justly wonder that the Sages who have written about this most precious
and secret Art, have thought it necessary to invent so many occult and allegorical
expressions, by means of which our Art is concealed not only from the unworthy
but from earnest and diligent students of the truth. Foolish persons, indeed, who
read their books, and hear of the riches and all the other good things which this
Art affords, experience a pleasant tickling sensation in their ears, and straightway
behold visions of themselves sitting on golden thrones, and commanding all the
treasures of the universe, they fancy that the Art can be learned in the twinkling
of an eye, soon come to regard themselves as great Doctors, and are unable to
conceive the possibility of their making a mistake, or being led astray by the
Sages, much less are they aware that it has always been the custom of the
philosophers to conceal the fundamental facts of this Art and to reveal them to
their own sons and disciples only in sententious allegorical sayings. It is impossible
to read through all that the Sages have ever written on this subject; but it is a still
more hopeless undertaking to gather from their books a full and sufficient
knowledge of our Art, unless, indeed, God opens your understanding, and gives you
a real insight into the natural properties of things, and thereby into the sayings of
those who speak of them. For it is Nature alone that accomplishes the various
processes of our Art, and a right understanding of Nature will furnish you with eyes
wherewith to perceive the secrets thereof. Thus Bason says: "Take care not to add
anything else; for it is the property of our substance to overcome all other things."
And Bondinus tells us that the whole process is accomplished by means of the
water which issues from the Stone. Alphidius declares that the Philosopher's Stone
contains four different natures, and thereby possesses a virtue and efficacy such as
are found in no other stone. Therefore, the question of the Royal Sage Haly,
whether there is another stone upon earth which may be compared with our Stone,
and possesses the same wonderful properties, is answered by Morienus in the
following words: "I am aware of no other stone of equal excellence, potency, and
virtue, for it contains the four elements in a visible form, and is singular of its kind
among all the created things of the world. If, therefore, any person should take
any [other] Stone but the one demanded by this Magistery, his labours must result
in failure." Moreover, the ancient Sage Arros says: "Our Stone is useless for our
purpose, until it be purged of its gross earth." In like manner we are informed by
Morienus that unless the body be purged of its grossness, it cannot be united to its
spirit; but when it has put off its gross nature, the spirit joins itself to it, and
delights in it, because both have been freed from all impurity." The truth of his
words is attested by Ascanius in "The Crowd," who says: "Spirits cannot join
themselves to impure bodies; but when the body has been well purged, and
digested by coction, the spirit becomes united to it, amidst a phenomenal
exhibition of all the colours in the world, and the imperfect body is tinged with the
indestructible colour of the ferment; this ferment is the soul, in and through which
the spirit is joined to the body, and transmuted with the body into the colour of
the ferment, whereupon all three become one thing." Hence it is well, though
somewhat enigmatically said by the Sages, that there takes place a conjugal union
of husband and wife, and that of the two a child is born after their likeness, just as
men generate men, metals metals, and all other things that which is like them.
Hence all that would exercise this Art must know the properties of the most noble
substance thereof, and follow the guidance of Nature. But many enquirers conduct
their operations at haphazard, they grope in the dark, and do not know whether
their art be an imitation of Nature, or not. Yet they undertake to correct, and
intensify, the operation of Nature. Of such persons Arnold says that they approach
our Art as the ass goes up to the crib, not knowing for what it opens its mouth. For
they do not know what they would do, nor are they aware that they must listen to
the teaching of Nature. They seek to do the works of Nature, but they will not
watch the hand of her whom they pretend to imitate. Yet our Art has a true
foundation in natural fact. For Nature prepares the metals in the earth, some
perfect, like gold and silver; others imperfect, like Venus, Mars, Saturn, and
Jupiter, according to the labour and influence of the planets. He, then, who would
accomplish our Magistery, and desires to participate in this most noble Art, must
know the seed from which the metals are naturally generated in the earth, which
seed we remove by Nature, and purify and prepare it by Art, making it so glorious,
and full of wonderful potency, that with it we can impart instant purity and
perfection to the imperfect bodies of men and metals. This seed we must extract
from perfect, pure, and mature bodies, if we would attain the desired end. Now,
in order that you may the more readily attain this knowledge, I have composed the
following Tract concerning the first principle of Nature, and the creation and
generation of man -- which the student of our Magistery should diligently peruse,
consider, and digest. Then he will not so easily miss the right path.
All true Sages and philosophers have earnestly sought to obtain a knowledge of
Almighty God as He is revealed in His marvellous works; this knowledge they
attained, in so far as it can be attained by the human mind, by diligently
considering the origin and first principles of all things. For they were enabled to
realize the omnipotence of the Creator by the contemplation of the secret powers,
and miraculous virtues, which He has infused into natural things. They were led to
consider how they might employ their knowledge for the good of the human race,
and how they might reveal it to others, and they received wisdom to expound the
first principles of natural things, but more especially the birth and death of man,
in something like the following way: In the beginning God created all things out of
a subtle liquid, or impalpable vapour which was neither moist, nor dry, nor cold,
nor hot, nor light, nor dark, but a confused chaos. This subtle vapour God first
changed into water, which He then separated into a hard and a liquid part, or into
earth and water. Out of elementary water He further evolved air, and out of
elementary earth He brought forth fire, that is, elementary fire. And it may still be
seen that the two first elements contain the two last; for daily experience teaches
us that in water there is air, and that in earth there is fire. Out of these God
created the firmament, the Sun, the Moon, and the Stars, and all other natural
objects. At last He created a being in His own image, which He formed out of
moist earth -- i.e., for the most part out of earth (which encloses fire) moistened
with water (containing air). Hence it is said that man was created out of the four
elements, and he is called a "small world." But man lay like one dead upon the
ground, until God breathed into his nostrils the spirit of life, and Adam became a
living soul. In like manner God created all other animals, and all plants and
minerals, out of the four elements. Then God set Adam in the Garden of Eden, in
Paradise, which He had planted with His own hands, and in which flourished all
manner of flowers, fruit, roots, herbs, leaves, and grass. Then Adam's heart was
filled with joy, and he understood the great power of his Creator, and praised and
magnified Him with his lips; at that time he suffered no lack of any thing, having
all that his heart desired, and he was appointed lord of all other creatures.
Therefore, the eternal Creator bade the holy angels bring every other living being
to Adam, that all might acknowledge him as their lord, and that Adam might give
to each one its own name, and distinguish one from the other.
Now when God beheld the animals walking about in Paradise, each with its own
mate (except Adam, for whom no mate was found); when God saw them
approaching him, and yet eager to flee from him, because of the reverence and
awe with which he inspired them -- God said: "It is not good for man to be alone ";
therefore He caused a deep sleep to fall upon Adam, and taking one of his ribs, not
far from his heart, He formed it into a beautiful woman. This woman God brought
unto the man, calling her Eve, and gave her to him for a wife, that he might
protect her, that she might obey him, and that they might be fruitful and multiply.
God had appointed that Adam and Eve should spend a thousand years in Paradise,
and then be translated, body and soul, to the Eternal Life of Heaven; the same
glorious destiny was in reserve for their posterity. For as yet man was pure, good,
and sinless, and not subject or liable to any kind of distemper or sickness. He was
acceptable and perfect in the sight of His Creator, who had made him in His own
image, and given him all the produce of Paradise to eat, except the fruit of the
Tree of Knowledge, from which he was to abstain on pain of eternal punishment,
both bodily and spiritual. But when he gave ear to the seducing words of the Evil
One, and ate the forbidden fruit, he straightway became poor and wretched,
perceived his own nakedness, and concealed himself amongst the trees of the
garden. He had deserved eternal death, and it would have fallen upon him, if the
Son of God, our Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ, had not promised to give
satisfaction for him. Yet in this world God punished Adam with a heavy yoke of
wretchedness, tribulation, poverty, and disease, followed by the bitter agony of
death. He also drove him forth from Paradise, and laid a heavy curse upon the
ground, that thenceforward it should not bring forth fruit of its own accord, but
that it should bear thorns and thistles. Now, when Adam found himself in the midst
of a wild and uncultivated earth, compelled to gain his bread by tilling the field in
the sweat of his brow, and to endure much suffering, care, and anxiety, he began
to think seriously of what he had done to provoke the wrath of God, to experience
deep sorrow for his grievous sin, and to implore God's gracious mercy and
forgiveness. His prayers appeased the paternal heart of God, and induced Him to
ease the grievous yoke laid upon Adam. The central fact of his punishment,
however, remained, and death, though deferred, at length overtook him. But, as I
say, God mitigated the punishment of Adam, and took away from his neck the
grievous yoke of suffering, by shewing him the means of warding off the strokes of
impending calamity. For this purpose the natural properties of things were
revealed to Adam by the inspiration of the Holy Spirit; and he was taught to
prepare medicines out of herbs, stones, and metals, wherewith he might alleviate
his hard lot, ward off disease, and keep his body in good health until the end of his
days, which, however, was known to God alone. For, although from the very
beginning Adam had a clear insight into the working of the natural world, the
greatest of all secrets was still hidden from him, till God one day called him into
Paradise, and set forth to him this marvellous mystery -- the mystery of our Stone
-- in the following words:
"Behold, Adam, here are two things, the one fixed and immutable, the other
volatile and inconstant. The great virtue and potency that slumber in them you
must not reveal to all your sons. For I created them for a special purpose, which I
will now no longer conceal from you." Now, when Adam had learned the mystery
out of God's own mouth, he kept it a strict secret from all his sons, until at length,
towards the close of his life, he obtained leave from God to make the preparation
of the Stone known to his son Seth. Unless Adam had possessed the knowledge of
this great mystery he would not have been able to prolong his life to the age of
300 (let alone 900) years. For he was never for a moment free from an agonizing
sense of his guilt, and of the terrible evils which he had, by his disobedience,
brought upon himself and his posterity, who, through his fault, were one and all
involved in the condemnation of eternal death. If we consider this, it must appear
amazing that Adam could keep alive even so long as a single year after his fall; and
we thereby clearly perceive (from the fact that he attained to so great a length of
days) that the goodness of God must have furnished him with some life-preserving
remedy. If Adam had not possessed our Medicine, or Tincture, he could not have
borne up under so much tribulation, anxiety, wretched ness, grief, sorrow, and
disease. But against all these ills he used our Medicine, which preserved his limbs
and his strength from decay, braced his faculties, comforted his heart, refreshed
his spirit, relieved his anxiety, fortified his mortal body against all manner of
disease, and, in short, guarded him from all evil until the last hour of his life.
At length, however, Adam found that the Remedy had no longer any power to
strengthen him, or to prolong his life. So he began to consider his end, refrained
from applying the Medicine any more, threw himself upon the mercy of God, and
sent his son Seth (to whom he had confided the secret), to she gate of Paradise, to
demand some of the fruit of the Tree of Life. His request was denied him,
whereupon he returned, and carried back to his father the answer of the Angel. It
was heavy news for Adam, who now felt that his end was approaching, and
therefore sent Seth a second time to fetch the oil of mercy. Before he could
return, Adam died; but, at the bidding of God, Seth obtained from the Angel some
olive stones from the Tree of the Oil of Mercy, and planted them on his father's
grave, where they grew into the tree from which the Cross of our Blessed
Redeemer was made. Thus, though in a carnal sense the Oil was denied to Adam,
and brought him no surcease from temporal death; yet, in a spiritual sense, it was
freely given to him and obtained for him and all his offspring eternal life, and free,
gracious, and merciful forgiveness of all their sins, concerning which God promised
that He would remember them no more.
Thus, through the Heavenly Tree of Life, God fulfilled the prayer of our first
parent Adam, and granted his request in a way which he had not looked for; and
he now tastes the joy which is at the right hand of God, and is for ever removed
from the hostile power of hunger, thirst, heat, cold, death, and all the other evils
which flesh is heir to. Let us then diligently strive to realize that the Mystery of
the Redemption is the most precious, the most excellent, and the most awful of
the mysteries revealed by God to man, a mystery which no human thought can
sound, and which no human lips can ever fully utter. But of this Awful Mystery, or
Medicine of the Soul, God has also bestowed upon us an earthly antitype, or
Medicine of the Body, by means of which wretched man may, even in this world,
secure himself against all bodily distempers, put to flight anxiety and care, and
refresh and comfort his heart in the hour of trouble -- namely, the Mystery of the
Sages, or the Medicine of the Philosophers. If, therefore, a man would be perfectly
happy in this world, and in the world to come, he should earnestly and devoutly
strive to become possessed of these two Remedies; and for this purpose, he should
turn to God with his whole heart, and ask for His gracious help, without which
neither can be obtained; and, above all, he should be most eager to receive that
Remedy by which the soul is healed of the mortal disease of sin.
This is the true fountain of the Sages; and there is nothing like it upon earth, but
one eternal thing, by which the mortal body may, in this vale of tears, be fortified
against all accidental disease, shielded from the pangs of poverty, and rendered
sound, healthy, and strong, being protected against all mischances to the very
end; and by which also metallic bodies may. be changed into gold through a
quickening of the process which Nature uses in the heart of the earth. The
preparation and effects of this Stone are not unjustly considered to bear a close
analogy to the creation of the world; therefore, I thought well to give an account
of it from the very beginning.
I will now proceed briefly to expound my view of this Art, which, as all Sages
testify, corresponds most closely to the creation and generation of man. I will
attempt to make my meaning as plain as I dare, for the glory of the Holy Trinity,
and the good of all Christian believers. When God had created the world, and
adorned it with all manner of green things, herbs, roots, leaves, flowers, grass,
and also with animals and minerals, he blessed them, and appointed that
everything should bring forth fruit and seed after its kind. Only Adam (who is our
Matter) was not yet in a position to produce any fruit out of himself. Before he
could propagate his species, it was necessary that a part of him should be taken
away, and again joined to him, i.e., his wife Eve. Hereunto we must understand
that so long as our substance is still gross and undivided, it can produce no fruit It
must first be divided, the subtle from the gross, or the water from the earth. The
water is Eve, or the spirit; the earth Adam, or the body. And as the male is useless
for purposes of generation until it be united to the female, so our earth is dead till
it is quickened by the union with water. This is what that ancient Sage, Hermes,
means when he says that the dead must be raised to life, and the feeble made
strong.
It is necessary, then, to unite body and soul, and to change that which is below
into that which is above, i.e., body into spirit, and spirit into body. By this
expression you are to understand not that the spirit by itself is changed into a
body, or that the body by itself is changed into a spirit, but that both are united,
and that the spirit, or water, dissolves, or resuscitates the body, or earth, while
the body attracts the spirit, or water; and that they are thus joined into one
substance, the earth being softened by the water, and the water hardened by the
earth -- as the boys in the street pour water on dry dust, and knead the whole into
one mass. For this reason the Sages call our process child's play, in which the death
of one is the life of the other, i.e., in which the hardness of the one is softened by
the other, and vice versa, seeing that the two are nothing but body and spirit
originally belonging together. When contemplating this union, the Sage, Hermes,
bursts forth into the following exclamation: "Oh, how strong, victorious, and
length assuming a red colour, may be compared to the forming of the infant's
limbs; it is then that we first see what is to become of it. When you perceive this
final transmutation -- the germ of which lay in the substance all along -- you may
well rejoice; for you have attained the object of your desire.
Thus I have described the union of the man and woman, that is to say, of the body
and spirit, by means of which the child is conceived in the water, and the
whiteness extracted from the black body. Nor do we need anything else, except,
as Morienus says, time and patience. This coagulated water is the "white, flaky
earth," in which the Sage bids us sow our gold and silver that they may bear fruit a
hundred-thousand-fold. This is the "clear spring" of the Count of Trevisa, in which
the King bathes, though not assisted by any of his ministers, who only watch his
clothes until he has dried up the whole spring, when he makes all his ministers
lords and kings such as he was at the time of his entering the bath. But now the
King's dignity is three times as great as it was before; he wears a three-fold diadem
on his head, and is arrayed in garments that shine like carbuncles and amethysts,
and beneath them he wears the tunic of purity, and is bound with the girdle of
righteousness. He is the most glorious King of life, whose power transcends all
human thought At his side is seated his pure and chaste queen, sprung of his own
seed; and of these two are born many royal children. The redness is concealed and
preserved in the whiteness, which must not be extracted, but subjected to gentle
coction until its full crimson glory flames forth This whiteness is thus referred to in
"The Crowd": "If you see that after the blackness there follows a whiteness, be sure
that after the whiteness will come a redness: for the redness slumbers in the
whiteness, and should not be extracted, but gently heated, until the whole turns
red." Let what I have now said suffice you.
Hermes [says]:
You must have a good knowledge of the True Principle of both Natural and
Artificial Substances. For he who knows not the true First Principle will never
attain to the end.
And
Time Is Our Possession.
Unto Him Be All Honour, Praise, And Glory
Chapter I
All temporal things derive their origin, their existence, and their essence from the
earth, according to the succession of time. Their specific properties are
determined by the outward and inward influences of the stars and planets, (such
as the Sun, the Moon, Etc.) and of the four qualities of the elements. From these
combined circumstances arise the peculiar forms, and proper substances, of all
growing, fixed, and generating things, according to the natural order appointed by
the Most High at the beginning of the world. The metals, then, derive their origin
from the earth, and are specifically compounded of the four qualities, or the
properties of the four elements, their peculiar metallic character is stamped upon
them by the influences of the stars and planets. So we are informed by Aristotle in
the fourth book of his Meteor., where he says that quicksilver is the common
substance of all metals. The first thing in Nature, as we said before, is the
substance which represents a particular conglomeration of the four elements
which the Sages call Mercury or quicksilver But this quicksilver is as yet imperfect,
on account of its gross and earthy sulphureous nature, which renders it too easily
combustible, and on account of its superfluous watery elements, which have all
been collected together out of the four elements by the action of the heavenly
planets. This substance is composed of a hot sulphureous earth, and a watery
essence, in such a way that the sages have called it imperfect sulphur.
Now, since Nature is always striving to attain perfection and to reach the goal set
before her by the Creator of all things, she is continually at work upon the
qualities of the four elements of each substance; and so stirs up and rouses the
inward action of the elements by the accidental heat of the Sun, and by natural
warmth that there arises a kind of vapour or steam in the veins of the earth. This
vapour cannot make its way out, but is closed in; in penetrating through fat,
earthy, oily, and impure sulphureous substances it attracts to itself more or less of
these foreign and external impurities. This is the reason that there are seen in it so
great a variety of colours before it attains to purity and its own proper colour.
Those mineral and metallic substances which contain the largest proportion of
efficacious sulphureous and mercurial vapour are the best; and each quality of the
four elements has its own peculiar operation and transmuting influence in such a
conglomeration of various substances -- their action being roused by the sulphur of
the earth and the outward heat of the Sun. Through these agencies the Matter is
often dissolved and coagulated, till that which is pure, or impure, is borne upward;
and this is the work not of a few years, but of a great length of time. Nature has to
purge away the peculiar characteristics of all other metals before she can make
gold; as you may see by the fact that different kinds of metal are found in the
same metallic vein. This fact may be explained in the following manner. When the
sulphureous and mercurial vapours ascend they are mixed, and united by coction,
with the aforesaid substance. If those sulphureous vapours are earthy thick, and
impure, and the heat of the Sun, or their own natural heat, have too sudden and
violent an effect, the substance hardens, with all its sulphureous impurities before
it can be purged of its grossness, and it becomes more like metallic sulphur. If the
quicksilver is hardened, the whole mass takes the form of some metal, according
to the influence of the particular planet with which it is penetrated. For Nature
first combines the four elements into some substance or body, which then receives
its specific properties through the influence of some planet. Such is the origin of
copper, tin, lead, iron, and quicksilver. But it is not essential that I should here
describe at length the specific composition and distinctive properties of each of
the imperfect metals; they are all mingled in various proportions of impure sulphur
and inefficacious quicksilver. Nature, as I said, is ceaselessly at work upon these
imperfect metals purging and separating the pure quicksilver from the impure, and
the pure sulphur from the impure, until all their grossness is removed and they
become what God designed that they should be, viz., gold. But if these vapours
float upward in their original pure condition, with their inward pure and subtle
earth, without becoming mixed with gross, earthy, and sulphureous alloy, and if
they succeed in breaking forth into the open air before they become hardened into
a sulphureous mass, they remain quicksilver and are not changed into any metal.
If, however, this pure quicksilver floats upward in a pure mineral earth, without
any gross alloy, it is hardened into the pure and white sulphur of Nature by being
subjected to a very moderate degree of gentle heat, and at length assumes the
specific form of silver. Like all the other metals it may still be developed into gold
if it remain under the influence of its natural heat. But if the same pure, unalloyed
quicksilver be subjected to a higher degree of natural heat, it is transmuted into
the pure red sulphur of Nature and becomes gold without first passing through the
stage of silver. In this form it remains, because gold is the highest possible stage of
metallic development.
Quicksilver is the mother of all metals, on account of its coldness and moistness;
and if it be once purified and cleansed of all foreign matter it cannot be mixed any
more with grossness of any kind neither can it be changed back into an imperfect
metal. For Nature does not undo her work, and that which has once become
perfectly pure can never become impure again. Sulphur on the other hand is the
father of all metals, on account of its heat and dryness. In the following chapter
we shall refer to this difference, and speak more in detail about quicksilver.
Chapter II
There is, then, in all metals true mercury and good sulphur in the imperfect as
well as in the perfect metals. But in the imperfect metals it is defiled with impure
matter and stands in need of maturing. Hence you see that all metals may be
changed into gold and silver, if the golden and silver properties that are in them
be freed from all alloy and reduced by gentle heat to the form of silver or gold.
Those metals, indeed, which have been torn up by the roots, that is to say, that
have been dug up from their own proper soil in the veins of the earth, can no
longer proceed in that course of development which they pursued in their native
abode; yet, as much as in them lies, they strive to be perfected. Now the Spirit of
Truth, who imparts all true knowledge, has taught the Sages a Medicine or Form,
by which all the impurities of the imperfect metals may be removed, and the
perfect nature, or true mercury, which is in them, transmuted into gold and silver.
Chapter III
But we must now proceed to say a few words about the method of preparing this
Medicine, by which the imperfection is removed from imperfect metals through
the mediation of perfect mercury, and the mode of gold and silver is developed in
them.
I find that the writings of the Sages are all about gold, silver and quicksilver, which
it is said must be reduced to the form which they wore before they became
metals; that is to say, the form which they wore perhaps some thousands of years
ago. But the operation of Nature is progressive, not retrogressive. Hence it is a
great mistake to suppose that the work of Nature can be reversed by dissolution in
aqua fortis or by the amalgamation of gold or silver and quicksilver. For if the
metal be plunged in a solvent, if water be distilled from it, or if quicksilver be
sublimed from it, it still remains the same metal that it was before. The specific
properties of a metal cannot be destroyed so as to obtain the first substance. Yet
Aristotle says that metals cannot be changed unless they are reduced to their
original substance.
Chapter IV
What we have said in the last chapter shows that Alchemical Art cannot be
concerned with the subjecting of gold, silver or quicksilver to chemical processes.
Nevertheless, that which you read in the books of the Sages is most true and we
shall see in the following pages in what sense it is to be understood, that our Art is
in gold, silver and quicksilver. But it is clear that our art can make no use of
quicksilver such as may be obtained from the metals by means of any kind of
artificial process, such as dissolution in aqua fortis, or amalgamation or any other
method of chemical purification.
If then, this is not the right substance or original mercury, it is clear that it is not
to be found in the metals. For even if you melt two, three, or four metals
together, yet not one of them can give the others any aid towards attaining
perfection, seeing that itself stands in need of external aid. And even though you
mix some imperfect metal with gold, the gold will not give up its own perfection
for the purpose of succouring the other for it has nothing to spare which it might
impart to the imperfect metal. And even if the imperfect metal could assume the
virtue and efficacy of the gold, it could only do so at the expense of the gold
itself. In vain, then, shall we seek in metals the Medicine which has power to
liberate the perfect mercury contained in imperfect metals.
Chapter V
Again, we read in the books of the Sages that quicksilver and mercury are the
original substance of all metals. These words are true in a certain sense. But by
many beginners they are supposed to mean ordinary quicksilver. Such an
interpretation, however, makes nonsense of the dictum of the Sages. For ordinary
quicksilver is an imperfect metal and itself derived from the original substance of
all metals. The Sages, indeed, say little about the origin of their mercury but that
is exactly because they use the name of mercury or sulphur, for the first substance
of their perfect metals. If common mercury were not a metal, there would be no
metal corresponding to the celestial influence of the planet Mercury as gold and
silver receive their specific properties from the influence of the Sun and Moon.
Now, as it is one of the metals the other metals cannot be derived from it, much
less can their properties be derived from it or from themselves, although the real
perfect mercury is quite as abundant in mercury as in any other metal. Nor can
common sulphur be the first substance of the metals, for no metal contains so
much impurity as common sulphur; and if it be mixed with any metal, that metal
becomes even more impure than it was before, and is even partially, or wholly,
corroded.
Chapter VI
Again, the Sages affirm that quicksilver, or mercury, is the spirit of the specific
nature of metals, collected out of the four elements by the influence of the
Planets, and the operation of Nature in the earth -- and that from it is developed
either gold, silver, or some other of seven metals, according to the peculiar
effects of the predominant planetary influence.
Hence ignorant alchemists have supposed that all this is true of the common
quicksilver, because it amalgamates with all metals, and is soft and volatile. But
why should its volatile properties prove it to be no metal? According to this
definition, we might deny the metallic character of tin, lead, and other metals,
because they do not remain fixed in a fierce fire -- though one can stand a greater
degree of heat than another. If, again, any substance is to be called the first
substance of metals because of the facility with which it amalgamates with them,
copper would have a better claim to be so regarded, since it enters into a closer
union with gold and silver than mercury, and shares both their fusible and
malleable nature. But that is no final union, for it admits of separation; and
quicksilver may, with the greatest ease, be separated from the metals with which
it has amalgamated. A true union of metals can only take place in the original
substance which is common to all. We do find amalgams of three or even more
metals; but then this union was consummated in the first substance, which is one,
and the whole amalgam would have been developed into gold, if its natural growth
had not been retarded by gross, sulphureous, arsenical, and earthy impurity, which
is found among metals when purified. The metals which we dig up out of the earth
are, as it were, torn up by the roots, and, their growth having come to a standstill,
they can undergo no further development into gold, but must always retain their
present form, unless something is done for them by our Art. Hence we must begin
at the point where Nature had to leave off: we must purge away all impurity, and
the sulphureous alloy, as Nature herself would have done if her operation had not
been accidentally or violently, disturbed. She would have matured the original
substance, and brought it to perfection by gentle heat, and, in a longer or shorter
period of time, she would have transmuted it into gold. In this work Nature is
ceaselessly occupied while the metals are still in the earth; but she takes away
from them nothing save their superfluous water and the impurity which prevents
them from attaining to the nature of gold, as we briefly showed in the second
chapter.
Chapter VII
It is clear, then, that the final union of metals, or their perfection, cannot be
attained by the mingling of any specific metals; that the metallic substance
becomes useless for our purpose, as soon as it assumes a specific form; but that, at
the same time, all metals have a common origin, or Matter, which is one thing,
flowing out by the operation of nature, who ever desires the most perfect form
which her own essence and her condition will admit. And this is the form of gold,
highest and best of all that belong to the metallic mode. If, then the purest form
of this substance which it is possible for Art to prepare with the help of Nature, be
added to the imperfect metals then it overcomes what is impure in these, for it is
not the impure, but the pure matter which is like unto it. But you must not
suppose that this power belongs to common gold; common gold has its own specific
form, which it is unable to impart to other metals. The power of gold is sufficient
only for preserving its own excellence; but our prepared substance is much better
and more honourable than gold, and has power to do that which gold cannot do,
viz, to change the common matter of all metals into gold.
Chapter VIII
From what I have hitherto said, one ignorant of alchemy might suppose that the
teaching of the Sages is altogether false and untrustworthy. Therefore I must now
proceed to tell you how it may truly be affirmed that our Art is concerned with
quicksilver silver, and gold, or with quicksilver and sulphur, and in what sense
mercury is the spirit of the metals. I will first speak about quicksilver, and at once
premise that this word is not here taken to mean that common quicksilver which is
one of the metals, but the first substance of all the metals, and itself no specific
metal at all. For a metal must have derived its distinctive properties through
planetary influences; nor can any one metal be the first substance of all metals.
This quicksilver is neither too hot, nor too cold, nor too moist, nor too dry; but it is
a well-termpered mingling of all four. When perfectly matured quicksilver is
subjected to external heat, operating thereon, it is not burned but escapes in a
volatile essence. Hence it may well be called by the philosophers a spirit, or a
swift, and winged, and indestructible soul.
Chapter IX
Chapter X
The quicksilver of the Sages has no power to transmute imperfect metals, until it
has absorbed the essential qualities of gold and silver; for in itself it is no metal at
all, and if it is to impart the spirit, the colour, and the hardness of gold and silver,
it must first receive them itself. It is with the first substance of metals as it is with
water. If saffron is dissolved in water, the water is coloured with it, and if mixed
with other water, imparts to that water, too, the colour of saffron. Unless the first
substance, or quicksilver, is tinged with silver and gold, and coagulated by their
efficacy, it cannot impart any colour, or coagulate the 'water or) first substance
which is latent in the imperfect metals. For it is essentially a spirit. and volatile.
and if it be added to imperfect metals, it cannot act upon their water, or
undeveloped first-substance, because that is partly fixed by their coagulated
sulphur. But if the first-substance has been fixed by means of gold and silver it has
become a fixed and indestructible water: and, if added to imperfect metals. takes
up into its own nature their first substance, or water, and mingles with it. By this
means all that is combustible and impure m them is driven off by the fire. And
herein is the saying true which was uttered by the Sage Haly: The spirit (i.e.
quicksilver is not coagulated, unless the body 'i.e., gold and silver' be first
dissolved." For then gold and silver become spiritual. flowing, capable of being
assimilated by the common substance of all metals, and of imparting to it their
own metallic strength and potency. And even though this new substance be fusible
in the fire, yet, when it cools again, it still remains what it was, nor is it ever
again converted into a permanent spiritual substance. It is the quicksilver, then
that constitutes the chief strength and efficacy of our Art; and he that has no
quicksilver is without the very seed of gold and silver from which they grow in the
earth.
Epilogue
We have sufficiently explained that quicksilver is the first substance of the metals,
without which no metal can become perfect, either in Nature or in our Art. But we
do not yet know where to look for it, and where to find it. This is the great secret
of the Sages, which they are always so careful to veil under dark words that
scarcely one in many thousands is thought worthy to find the philosophical
Mercury. Many things have been written about it; but I will quote the words of one
philosopher which I consider as the most helpful: In the beginning, he says, God
created the earth plain, simple, rich and very fertile, without stones, sand, rocks,
hills, or valleys, it is the influences of the planets which have now covered it with
stones, rocks, and mountains, and filled it with rare things of various colours, i.e.,
the ores of the seven metals, and by these means the earth has entirely lost its
original form, and that through the following causes:
First, the earth which was created rich, great, deep, wide and broad, was, through
the daily operation of the Sun's rays penetrated to her very centre with a fervent,
bubbling, vaporous heat. For the earth in herself is cold and saturated with the
moisture of water At length the vapours which were formed in this way in the
heart of the earth became so strong and powerful as to seek to force a way out
into the open air, and thus, instead of effecting their object, threw up hills and
hillocks or, as It were, bubbles on the face of the earth. And since in those places
where mountains were formed the heat of the Sun must have been most powerful,
and the earthy moisture rich and most plentiful, it is there that we find the most
precious metals. Where the earth remained plain, this steam did not succeed in
raising up mountains; it escaped, and the earth. being deprived of its moisture,
was hardened into rocks. Where the earth was poor, soft, and thin, it is now
covered with sand and little stones, because it never had much moisture, and,
having been deprived of the little it possessed, has now become sandy and dry,
and incapable of retaining moisture. No earth was changed into rocks that was not
rich, viscous, and well saturated with moisture. For when the heat of the Sun has
sucked up its moisture, the richness of the earth still makes it cohere, although
now it has become hard and dry; and earth that is not yet perfectly hard is even at
the present time undergoing a change into hard stones, through ,the diligent
working of Nature. But the steam and the vapours that do not succeed in escaping,
remain enclosed in the mountains, and are day by day subjected to the maturing
and transmuting influences of the Sun and the planets. Now, if this vaporous
moisture become mixed with a pure, subtle, and earthy substance, it is the
quicksilver of the Sages; if it be reduced to a fiery and earthy hardness, it becomes
the sulphur of the Sages. This enquiry opens up the way of finding our quicksilver,
or first substance of the metals, but though it be found in great quantities in all
mines, it is knows only to very few. It is not silver, or gold, or common quicksilver,
or any metal, or sulphur. The Sage says: It is a vaporous substance out of four
elements, watery and pure, and though it is found with all metals. it is not
matured in those which are imperfect. Hence it must be sought in the ore, in
which we find gold and silver." And when again he says, " If this quicksilver be
hardened, it is the sulphur of the Sages." he means that this can only be done by
means of gold and silver, which it takes into itself, and by which it is sublimed and
coagulated through its own natural gentle coction, under the influence of the Sun's
heat, and in its own proper ore.
O heavenly Father, shew this quicksilver to all whom Thou biddest walk in Thy
paths!
Eximenus says: "Nothing profitable can arise out of the elements without
conjunction and gentle coction." Our ore Lucas calls the white ore, and it goes by
many other names on account of the many colours which it exhibits in the various
stages of the chemical process. But though the jealousy of the Sages has described
it under various names, it is, and remains only one substance. Pythagoras says:
"Many names are given to it; nevertheless, it is nothing else but the one and true
Matter, and this is by reason of the development of its nature. The envious have
described it by the names of all bodies, as, for instance, a coin, lead, copper, etc.,
according to the variety of its colours." So Lucas tells us that we have no need of
many things but only of one thing. Diamedes and Basan say: "Do not add to it any
foreign substance; for the common substance of metals is one thing, and more
excellent than all other things." Hence our whole Art is concerned with water, and
a twin substance that ameliorates the water. Synon tells us that sulphur and our
ore are derived from one thing, and changed into four. Lucas says: "The white ore
is subjected to coction till it generates itself. Thus it becomes united in all its four
elements, and receives a living soul. It is never more than one thing, but as a man
consists of body, soul, and spirit, and yet is no more than one person, so our
substance consists of body, soul, and spirit. The ore receives its strength, spirit,
and growth from the water." The Sages say: "If the ore be often deadened in its
coction, it becomes all the more excellent, and if the body have a soul after the
manner of man."The body does not penetrate the soul, but the soul penetrates the
body, because it is volatile. The soul which is hidden in the four parts of the body,
is called sulphur. These bodies are male and female, and by their mutual operation
our substance becomes water. Aristeus says: "Observe the indestructible water
which issues from it." Take the humidity which it gives off. Hence other Sages say:
"Take water with its twin substances, and let it be dried up by means of the vapour
which is like it, and coagulated in its own water." That water is also called poison;
it is the principle of life, because it is a soul, and extracted from many things. All
bodies that this Tincture enters are quickened; all bodies from which it is
extracted are destroyed. Its potency is spiritual blood, which, if well mixed with
bodies, transmutes them. into spirits, and combines with them into one substance.
The body attracts the spirit, and the spirit tinges the body with a spiritual
substance like blood. For the Sages say that whatever has a spirit has blood. If the
venom penetrate the body, it imparts to it an indestructible colour, and then the
soul cannot be separated from the body any more. If in flying it faces round and
meets its pursuer, then is the flight at an end. The two belong together, and
Nature always tends to assimilate kindred substances. The final colour is
indestructible, because the soul pervades every part of the body, and is
inseparably bound up with it. Though the water is naturally cold, yet we must
beware of too fierce a degree of heat; for if the moisture of the substance be
dried up, our work must come to nought.
That which is called the spirit, is the active, or male principle, and can only be
obtained by the dissolution of the body. Accordingly, we must understand this of
the humidity which results, namely, that which is produced, as long as two spouses
are conjoined after a lawful manner, even unto the white. Would you know when
the body has been rendered liquid by coction ? Hear what Bonellus answers: "When
you see a black substance floating in the water, you may know that the body has
been dissolved."
These two, body and spirit, have a third thing which represents their common
substance, and is, in its turn, called their body. It-is also called a round cloud,
death, blackness, darkness, shadow, ashy lead, or a metallic and subtle ore; or it
is described, after that which is obtained from it, as gold that was hidden in the
body of Magnesia. Hence it is said: "Extract the shadow thereof from the
splendour." This also is the substance of which so many have spoken. Three things
constitute the true ore, viz., body, soul, and spirit. Hence it is compared to an
egg, because in an egg, too, the chicken is developed out of three things. Thus
also Alchemy is produced out of the above-mentioned three things, as many
philosophers do testify in "The Crowd." The male principle, or the water, is also
called the "nature"; for water is a natural agent which dissolves the elements of
bodies, and then again unites them. Concerning this water, it is said by Fictes, that
its nature has the wonderful power of transmuting the body into spirit. Where it is
found alone it overcomes all other things, and is an excellent, harsh, and bitter
acid, which transmutes gold into pure spirit. Without this acid we cannot attain
either the red, or the black, or the white. When it is combined with bodies, then
the body changes into spirit, by a heavenly fire, and immutable, indestructible
tincture. Know also that the union must be brought about by a gentle fire, since
the elements cannot stand a fierce fire, until the union has taken place. When the
gentle heat is applied, the elements devour and consume each other, and yet
again, on the other hand, comfort and strengthen each other, and teach each
other to stand the test of fire. Hence the Sages say: "Invert the elements, and you
will find what you seek." To invert the elements is to make that which is moist,
dry, and that which is volatile, fixed. The husband also enforces conjunction that
he may reproduce his own likeness. Many strive to accomplish this separation and
conjunction; but few succeed in bringing about an union which can stand the test
of fire. The composition which is prepared out of our precious substance is not
even in the slightest degree diminished in volume by fire. Rather, it is nourished by
fire, as a mother nourishes her child. These are the only things that have the
power of making red and white, both inwardly and outwardly. Remember that at
first they can only bear a gentle fire. When you see that a whiteness begins to
appear it must be your next care to extract it from the black substance; then you
should develop the redness which is hidden in it. But the latter object you must
attain, not by extraction, but by gentle coction. Do not marvel that the Sages
describe our ore under many names, and as consisting of body, soul, and spirit.
They are also referred to as brothers, or as husband and wife. But Geber says that
sometimes the whole substance is only called body, or spirit; and unless there be a
dissolution into water, our work cannot be brought to a successful issue. Of course,
we do not mean the water of the clouds, as the foolish say, but a permanent
water, which, however, cannot be permanent without its body. Thus Hermogenes
says that we are to take the hidden spirit, and not to despise it, because it shares
its great power with its brother. For only the union of the two can give us the right
Tincture. The water is also called a most sharp acid with which the body must be
washed; this is what Socrates calls is woman's work, and child's play."The secret of
our Art is the union of man and woman: the husband receives the tinging spirit
from his wife. The union of husband and wife coagulates the female principle; and
if the whole be transmuted into red, we have the treasure of the world, of which
Synon says: "If the water be changed into the body, the body is changed, first into
earth, then into dust and ashes, and you have what you want."
Then the work is over, and the Stone contains within itself the Tincture in the
body of Magnesia. Therefore, the Sages say, in conclusion: "My son, extract from
the splendour its shadow." Accordingly, we need exertion, and exercise is
beneficial to us, seeing that milk is for infants, but that strong men require
stronger food. So also is it in this operation of the Stone.
Now, it is laid down by Geber that our Art must do more for the substance than
Nature has done for it; otherwise we should never obtain the Medicine which has
the power of correcting and perfecting the essences of the seven planets, or
metals. For this purpose the Art of Alchemy has been delivered to us by the Sages;
but the beginner must be on his guard against being misled by their manner of
speaking, and the multiplicity of names which they give to our substance, which
has been suggested to them by its great variety of (successive) colouring, and by
the fact that it is composed of the four elements. The Stone must be saturated
with its water, that it may imbibe it all, and then subjected to the action of fire,
until it turns to a kind of dust, like burnt blood, and becomes indestructible by
fire. This Stone is sought by Kings, but is found only by those to whom it is given of
God. It is publicly sold for money. But if men knew its precious nature, they would
cease to think lightly of it. God, however, has hidden it from the world and he who
would accomplish our work should first lay the right foundation, or his building
must come to nought. Let me tell you, then, that our Stone requires a gentle fire;
and if, after not many days, it die, and lie in the tomb, yet God restores to it its
spirit, and removes its disease and its impurity. When it is burnt to ashes, it must
be well sprinkled and saturated with its blood, until it becomes like burnt blood.
Hermes remarks that both substances rejoice in being united to each other. To the
spiritual substance God gives that which Nature could not give it. For Nature has
nothing so precious as the true Tincture; and if with its bodies it become liquid, it
produces a marvellous effect. For the Tincture changes everything it is mixed with
into its own nature, and makes it white both within and without. By one operation
and way, by one substance, and by one mixing, the whole work is accomplished,
while its purity is also one, and it is perfected in two stages, each consisting of a
dissolution and a coction, with the repetition of these.
It must be your first object to elicit the whiteness of the substance by means of
gentle and continued coction or heat. I know that the Sages describe this simple
process under a great number of misleading names. But this puzzling variety of
nomenclature is only intended to veil the fact that nothing is required but simple
coction. This process of coction, however, you must patiently keep up, and that
with the Divine permission, until the King is crowned, and you receive your great
reward. If you ask whether the substance of our Stone be dear, I tell you that the
poor possess it as well as the rich.
Many have been reduced to beggary because they foolishly despised that which is
highly esteemed by the Sages. If kings and princes knew it, none of us would ever
be able to obtain it. Only one vessel is required for the whole process, which
should be of stone, and should be capable of resisting fire.
A pound of the body of our ore should be taken, and rendered as pure, refined,
and highly rectified, like the virtue of heaven, as the philosophers have it. Then
the vessel should be placed in a reverberatory alembic. This should be set over a
gentle fire, the vessel being kept tightly closed, in order that it may be able to
retain its companion, and permit the same to enkindle the whiteness thereof, as
Lucas says. The vessel containing the ore must be placed over the fire, since there
can be no perfection without heat and intermixture of elements, seeing that it is
produced from blood. When the male and the female principle have been together
for a space of forty nights, there is an emission of moist warm seed; and to the
same God has liberally given much blood to heat it. This seed develops into an
embryo which is supported with a little milk over a moderate fire, and grows
stronger day by day. Its growth must be aided by warmth; but the heat of the fire
should be temper ate, like that of the Sun. This may be effected by placing our
vessel over an empty vessel, and that again upon some glowing coals. The process
of coction should be continued until the alembic is well dried and the substance
begins to assume a liquid aspect; for water alone is sufficient for the coagulation
and fixing of the whole, as we are told by Democritus. This water is described
under various names, such as sulphur, quicksilver, spirit, and also vapour, for it
can scarcely retain its companion. There are in our Art only two substances, and if
I speak of two, then I think of four, all which things require one thing, by which
Nature, conquering all Nature, is extracted. For Nature, on account of its nature,
rejoices in itself, Nature conquers nature, and in itself contains nature. At the
same time one is not opposed to the other, but one comprehends the other,
whereby it excels the other, and the philosophers call this water the purifying
water.
This dissolution first imparts a black appearance to the body. The substance should
then turn white, and finally red. The blackness exhibits an intermediate stage
between fixedness and volatility. So long as there is blackness, the female
principle prevails, till the substance enters into the white stage. This whiteness is
called the first power of our Stone, and the water is referred to as that most
excellent acid. You must be very careful not to destroy the potency of this water.
Avicenna says that natural heat operating in humid bodies, first causes blackness;
then removes the blackness; and finally causes whiteness, as may be seen in calx.
Hence our substance must become first black, and then white, and be reduced to a
kind of powder. Then the soul must be restored to the powder by a powerful fire;
and both [be] subjected to coction until they become first black, then white,
afterwards red, and finally good venom, the whole being accomplished by the
separation of waters. And now, the waters being divided, cook the matter and the
vapour till coagulation takes place, and there is made a white stone. Then are the
waters divided. Another mortification, or exsiccation, follows, and is called clouds,
or smoke. The smoke well coagulated with its feces becomes quick white; roast
then the white ore that it may bring forth itself. When the blackness vanishes, the
spirit is restored; for the spirit does not die, but rather quickens body and soul.
The more perfectly our ore is purged, and subjected to coction, the better it
becomes, till it is at length condensed into a Stone. But it must be dissolved again
and subjected to a powerful fire, until it looks like burnt blood. If this Stone be
added to any substance, it tinges it into gold. The Sages speak of it as a kind of
root. Take, they say, the whole virtue of the Tincture, and concentrate it in the
Root. If a body which has no earthy elements receive this Tincture, it receives
more benefit than less excellent bodies. The Stone overcomes everything to which
it is applied, and tinges foreign bodies with its own colour. The dry fire tinges
bodies, the air strengthens them, the white water washes away their blackness,
and their earth receives the Tincture. Concerning the coction needed for the
development of our substance, the Sages have expressed themselves in a great
variety of ways. Observe Hermes, who says that it must be repeated again and
again, until the red colour at length is obtained. Herein is the stability of the
whole work. Afterwards it assumes many, many colours, not including the red,
which appears at the end. For the white must precede it. Set to work by the
regimen of fire, and triturate. The above mentioned water volatilizes all bodies;
even such as are gross it penetrates until it has assimilated them to its own nature.
Know that unless you operate upon bodies until they are destroyed and their soul is
extracted, with such you will never tinge any body, for nothing tinges which has
not first itself been tinged. If the body be made fluid and burnt, then it bends
itself towards its begetter, becoming a subtle Magnesia, and it turns towards the
earth, which makes it spiritual and vivifies it. Before the final whiteness of the
first stage is attained, the substance turns first of a black, then of an orange, and
then of a reddish colour (which, however, is quite different from the final redness
of the last stage). These colours, however, need not trouble you, since they are
evanescent and merely transitional.
From what I have said you may gather that our substance is found in the gold
which is hidden in Magnesia, and that it is one thing composed of sulphur from
sulphur and mercury from mercury. And as the substance of our Stone is one, so is
the method of its preparation. Therefore, do not listen to those ignorant and
fraudulent alchemists who speak of many different kinds of sublimation and
distillation. Turn a deaf ear to those who say that the substance of our Stone is the
powder of the Basilisk. As to the (length of) time required for the preparation, you
must begin it in the winter, which is moist, and extract the moisture until the
spring, when all things become green, and when our substance, too, should exhibit
a variety of colours. In the summer the substance should be reduced to powder by
means of a powerful fire. The autumn, the season of ripeness, should witness its
maturity, or final redness. About the motions of the stars or planets you need not
trouble yourself. Our substance is a body containing the spirit which makes glass
malleable, and turns crystals into carbuncles. One drop of our Elixir, as large as a
drop of rain, will suffice to tinge and transmute a body a thousand times as large
as itself.
This most noble Remedy was appointed, like all other things, for the use of man,
because he is the most glorious of God's creatures, and the lord of the whole
earth. It was given to him for the purpose of preserving his youth, expelling
disease, preventing suffering, and providing him with all he requires. Our Elixir is
better than all the medicinal preparations of Hippocrates, Avicenna, and others.
From it may be prepared a potable antidote which has power to cure leprosy. As
fire purges and refines metals, so this Remedy restores to the human body its
natural heat, expels from it all health-destroying matter, and fortifies it against
every conceivable form of disease. Its virtue is infinitely greater than that of the
potable gold dust, which is taken as a preventative among the Gentiles.
Great and wonderful is the potency of the gold that slumbers in Magnesia, both for
the purifying of the human system, and for the transmuting of metals. What more
shall I say? All the things that I have here faithfully described I have seen with my
own eyes, and performed with my own hands.
When I was preparing the substance, after discovering the true method, I was so
seriously interfered with by the persons with whom I lived that I was almost on the
point of giving up the whole thing in despair. At length I communicated my
discovery to a friend, who faithfully executed my instructions, and brought the
work to a successful issue. For which Blessed Gift may God be praised, world
without end. Amen.
PREFACE
I am called Lambspring, born of a Noble Family, and this Crest I bear
with Glory and Justice.
Figure I
BE WARNED AND UNDERSTAND TRULY THAT TWO FISHES ARE SWIMMING IN OUR
SEA.
The Sea is the Body, the two Fishes are Soul and Spirit.
Figure II
HERE YOU STRAIGHTWAY BEHOLD A BLACK BEAST IN THE FOREST.
Putrefaction.
Figure III
HEAR WITHOUT TERROR THAT IN THE FOREST ARE HIDDEN A DEER AND AN
UNICORN.
Figure IV
HERE YOU BEHOLD A GREAT MARVEL - TWO LIONS ARE JOINED INTO ONE.
Figure V
A WOLF AND A DOG ARE IN ONE HOUSE, AND ARE AFTERWARDS CHANGED INTO
ONE.
The Body is mortified and rendered white, then joined to Soul and Spirit by being
saturated with them.
Figure VI
THIS SURELY IS A GREAT MIRACLE AND WITHOUT ANY DECEPTION -
THAT IN A VENOMOUS DRAGON THERE SHOULD BE THE GREAT MEDICINE.
Figure VII
WE HEAR TWO BIRDS IN THE FOREST, YET WE MUST UNDERSTAND THEM TO BE
ONLY ONE.
The Mercury having been often sublimed, is at length fixed, and becomes capable
of resisting fire: the sublimation must be repeated until at length the fixation is
attained.
Figure VIII
HERE ARE TWO BIRDS, GREAT AND STRONG - THE BODY AND SPIRIT; ONE DEVOURS
THE OTHER.
Let the Body be placed in horse-dung, or a warm bath, the Spirit having been
extracted from it. The Body has become white by the process, the Spirit red by our
Art. All that exists tends towards perfection, and thus is the Philosopher's Stone
prepared.
Figure IX
THE LORD OF THE FORESTS HAS RECOVERED HIS KINGDOM, AND MOUNTED FROM
THE LOWEST TO THE HIGHEST DEGREE. IF FORTUNE SMILE, YOU MAY FROM A
RHETOR BECOME A CONSUL; IF FORTUNE FROWN, THE CONSUL MAY BECOME A
RHETOR.
Thus you may know that the Tincture has truly attained the first degree.
Figure X
A SALAMANDER LIVES IN THE FIRE, WHICH IMPARTS TO IT A MOST GLORIOUS HUE.
Figure XI
THE FATHER AND THE SON HAVE LINKED THEIR HANDS WITH THOSE OF THE GUIDE:
KNOW THAT THE THREE ARE BODY, SOUL, AND SPIRIT.
Figure XII
ANOTHER MOUNTAIN OF INDIA LIES IN THE VESSEL, WHICH THE SPIRIT AND THE
SOUL - THAT IS, THE SON AND THE GUIDE - HAVE CLIMBED.
Figure XIII
HERE THE FATHER DEVOURS THE SON; THE SOUL AND SPIRIT FLOW FORTH FROM
THE BODY.
Figure XIV
HERE THE FATHER SWEATS PROFUSELY, WHILE OIL AND THE TRUE TINCTURE OF
THE SAGES FLOW FORTH FROM HIM.
Figure XV
HERE FATHER AND SON ARE JOINED IN ONE SO TO REMAIN FOR EVER.
The Preface
of
Basilius Valentinus, the Benedictine
Concerning
The Great Stone of the
Ancient Sages.
When I had emptied to the dregs the cup of human suffering, I was led to consider
the wretchedness of this world, and the fearful consequences of our first parents'
disobedience. Then I saw that there was no hope of repentance for mankind, that
they were getting worse day by day, and that for their impenitence God's
everlasting punishment was hanging over them; and I made haste to withdraw
myself from the evil world, to bid farewell to it, and to devote myself to the
service of God.
When I had spent some years at the monastery, I found that after I had performed
my work and my daily devotions I still had some time on my hands. This I did not
wish to pass in idleness, lest my evil thoughts should lead me into new sins; and so
I determined to use it for the study and investigation of those natural secrets by
which God has shadowed out eternal things. So I read a great many books in our
monastery written in olden times by philosophers who had pursued the same study,
and was thereby stimulated to a more ardent desire of knowing that which they
also knew. Though I did not make much progress at first, yet at last God granted
my earnest prayer, and opened my eyes that I might see what others had seen
before me.
In the convent there was a brother, who was afflicted with a severe disease of the
kidneys, and to whom none of the many physicians he had consulted had been able
to give even momentary relief. So he had committed himself to the hand of God,
and despaired of all human aid.
As I loved him, I gathered all manner of herbs, extracted their salts, and distilled
various medicines. But none of them seemed to do him the slightest good, and
after six years I found that I had tried every possible vegetable substance, without
any beneficial effect.
At last I determined to devote myself to the study of the powers and virtues which
God has laid into metals and minerals and the more I searched the more I found.
One discovery led to another, and, after God had permitted unto me many
experiments, I understood clearly the nature and properties, and the secret
Among the mineral substances I found one which exhibited many colours, and
proved to be of the greatest efficacy in art. The spiritual essence of this substance
I extracted, and therewith restored our sick brother, in a few days, to perfect
health. For the strength of this spirit was so great as to quicken the prostrate spirit
of my diseased brother, who, from that day to the day of his death, remembered
me in his hourly prayers. And his prayers, together with my own diligence, so
prevailed with God, that there was revealed to me that great secret which God
ever conceals from those who are wise in their own conceits.
Thus have I been wishing to reveal to you in this treatise, as far as may be lawful
to me, the Stone of the Ancients, that you, too, might possess the knowledge of
this highest of earthly treasures for your health and comfort in this valley of
sorrow. I write about it, not for my own good, but for that of posterity, and though
my words be few and simple, that which they import is of immeasurable
magnitude. Ponder them well, that you also may find the Rock which is the
foundation Stone of truth, the temporal blessing, and the eternal reward.
The Tract
of
Basilius Valentinus, the Benedictine,
Concerning the Great Stone of the Ancient Sages.
In the preface, gentle Reader, and zealous Student of this Art, I promised to
communicate to you a knowledge of our Corner Stone, or Rock, of the process by
which it is prepared, and of the substance from which it was already derived by
those ancient Sages, to whom the secret of our Art was first revealed by God for
the health and happiness of earthly life.
Let me assure you that I fully intend to fulfil my promise, and to be as plain with
you as the rules of our Art permit, not misleading you by sophistical deceptions,
but opening up to you the spring of all blessings even unto the fountain head. I
propose to set forth what I have to say in a few simple, straightforward words, for
I am no adept in the art of multiplying words; nor do I think that exuberance of
language tends to clearness; on the contrary, I am convinced that it is many words
that darken council. Let me tell you, then, that although many are engaged in the
search after this Stone, it is nevertheless found but by very few. For God never
intended that it should become generally known. It is rather to be regarded as a
gift which He reserves for those favoured few, who love the truth, and hate
falsehood, who study our Art earnestly by day and by night, and whose hearts are
set upon God with an unfeigned affection.
Hence, if you would prepare our great and ancient Stone, I testify unto you in all
truth that you must give diligent heed to my teaching, and before all things
implore the gracious blessing of the Creator of all things. You must also truly
repent you of all your sins, confessing the same, and firmly resolve to lead a good
and holy life. It is also necessary that you should determine to shew your gratitude
to God for His unspeakable Gift, by succouring the poor and the distressed, and by
opening your hand and your heart to the needy. Then God will bless your labour,
and reward your search with success, and yourself with a seat in Heaven as the
fruit of your faith.
Do not despise the truthful writings of those who possessed the Stone before us.
For, after the enlightening grace of God, it is from them that I received my
knowledge. Let your study of them be increased and repeated often, lest you lose
the thread of insight, and the lamp of understanding be extinguished.
Give yourself wholly to study, and be not flighty or doubleminded. Let your mind
be like a firm Rock, in which all the various sayings of the Sages are reduced to the
unity of their common meaning. For a man who is easily influenced in different
directions is not likely to find the right path.
As our most ancient Stone is not derived from combustible things, you should cease
to seek it in substances which cannot stand the test of fire. For this reason it is
absurd to suppose that we can make any use of vegetable substances, though the
Stone, too, is endowed 'with a principle of growth.
Know also that animals only multiply after their kind, and within their own
species. Hence our Stone can only be prepared out of its own seed, from which it
was taken in the beginning; and hence also you will perceive that the soul of an
animal must not be the subject of this investigation. Animals are a class by
themselves; nor can anything ever be obtained from them that is not animal in its
nature. But our Stone, as it has been bequeathed to me by the Ancients, is derived
from two things, and one thing, in which is concealed a third thing. This is the
purest truth, and a most faithful saying. For male and female have from of old
been regarded as one body, not from any external or visible consideration, but on
account of the ardour of that mutual love which naturally draws them together
into one; and as the male and female seed jointly represent the principle of
propagation, so also the sperm of the matter out of which our Stone is made can
be sown and increased. There are in our substance two supplementary kinds of
seed, from which our Stone may be prepared and multiplied.
If you are a true lover of our Art, you will carefully weigh and ponder these words,
lest, with other sophisticators, you fall into the dangerous pit prepared by the
common enemy of man. But whence are you to obtain this seed? This question you
may most easily answer by asking yourself another question. What do you want to
develop from this seed, and what use do you wish to make of it? There can be no
doubt, then that it must be the root, or first substance, of metals, from which all
metals derive their origin. It is, therefore, necessary that we should now proceed
to speak of the generation of the metals.
In the beginning, when the Spirit of God moved upon the face of the waters, and
as yet all was involved in darkness, Almighty and Eternal God, Whose beginning
and wisdom are from everlasting, by His inscrutable counsel created heaven and
earth, and all that in them is, both visible and invisible, out of nothing. How the
act of creation was accomplished I will not attempt to explain. This is a matter
which is set forth to us in Holy Scripture, and must be apprehended by faith.
To each creature God gave its own seed, wherewith to propagate its kind, that in
this way there might always be an increase of men and animals, plants and metals.
Man was not to be able to produce new seed: he was only permitted to educe new
forms of life out of that which already existed. The creating of seed God reserved
to Himself For if man could create seed he would be equal to the Creator.
Know that our seed is produced in the following way. A celestial influence
descends from above, by the decree and ordinance of God, and mingles with the
astral proper ties. When this union has taken place, the two bring forth a third
namely, an earth-like substance, which is the principle of our seed, of its first
source, so that it can shew an ancestry, and from which three the elements, such
as water, air, and earth, take their origin. These elements work underground in
the form of fire, and there produce what Hermes, and all who have preceded me,
call the three first principles, viz., the internal soul, the impalpable spirit, and
visible bodies, beyond which we can find no earlier beginning of our Magistery.
In the course of time these three unite, and are changed through the action of fire
into a palpable substance, viz., quicksilver, sulphur, and salt. If these three
substances be mixed, they are hardened and coagulated into a perfect body, which
represents the seed chosen and appointed by the Creator. This is a most important
and certain truth. If the metallic soul, the metallic spirit, and the metallic form of
body be present, there will also be metallic quicksilver, metallic sulphur, and
metallic salt, which together make up the perfect metallic body.
If you cannot perceive what you ought to understand herein, you should not devote
yourself to the study of philosophy.
Moreover, I tell you in few words, that you cannot obtain a metallic body except
by perfectly joining these three principles into one. Know, also, that all animals
are, like man, composed of flesh and blood, and also possess a vitalizing spirit, but
are destitute of the rational soul which the Creator gave to man alone. Therefore,
when animals die, they perish for ever. But when man yields up his mortal life into
the hands of his Creator, his soul does not die. It returns, and is united to the
glorified body, in which, after the Resurrection, soul and spirit dwell together
once more in eternal glory, never to be separated again throughout all eternity.
Hence the rational soul of man makes him an abiding creature, and, though his
body may seem to die, yet we know that he will live for ever. For to him death is
only a process of purification, by means of which he is freed from his sins, and
translated to another and better place. But there is no resurrection for the brute
beasts, because they have no rational soul, for which alone our Lord and Saviour
shed His blood.
For though a body may be vitalized by a spirit, yet it need not, therefore, be fixed,
unless, indeed, it possess a rational soul, that strong bond between body and
spirit, which represents their union, and resists all efforts to separate them.
Where there is no soul, there is no hope of redemption. Nothing can be perfect or
lasting without a soul. This is a profound and most important truth, which I feel in
conscience bound to make known to my readers. Now, the spirits of metals have
this property of fixedness in a greater or less degree; they are more or less volatile
in proportion to the mutual fitness of their bodies and souls. A metal that has the
three conditions of fixedness is not affected by fire or overcome by any other
outward agent. But there is only one metal that fulfils these conditions, namely,
gold. Silver also contains fixed mercury, and is not so quickly volatilised as the
imperfect metals, but stands the trial of fire, and yields no food to voracious
Saturn.
Amatory Venus is clothed with abundant colour, and her whole body is one pure
tincture, not unlike the red colour which is found in the most precious of metals.
But though her spirit is of good quality, her body is leprous, and affords no
permanent substratum to the fixed tincture. Hence the soul has to share the fate
of the imperfect body, and when the body dies the soul has to leave it. For its
dwelling has been destroyed by fire, and it is without a house wherein to abide.
Fixed salt has imparted to warlike Mars a hard, firm, and durable body, which is
evidence of the generosity of his soul; nor can fire be said to have much power
over it. And if its strength be united to the beauty of Venus, I do not say but that a
precious and harmonious result may be obtained. For the phlegmatic or humid
quality of the Moon may be heated with the ardent blood of Venus, and the
blackness of Venus removed with the strong salt of Mars.
You need not look for our metallic seed among the elements. It need not be sought
so far back. If you can only rectify the Mercury, Sulphur, and Salt (understand,
those of the Sages) until the metallic spirit and body are inseparably joined
together by means of the metallic soul, you thereby firmly rivet the chain of love,
and prepare the palace for the coronation.
These things represent a liquid key, comparable to the celestial influence, and a
dry water joined to the terrestrial substance: all which are one thing, derived from
three, and two, and one. If you understand this, you have already attained our
Magistery. Then you must join the husband and wife together that each may feed
upon the other's flesh and blood, and that so they may propagate their species a
thousandfold.
Though I would fain reveal this matter to you more plainly and openly, I am
prohibited from doing so by the law of God, and by the fear of His wrath, and of
eternal lest the gift of the Most High should be abused.
If, however, you do not understand the theoretical part of my work, perhaps the
practical part will serve to enlighten you more fully. I will therefore proceed to
shew how, by the help of God, I was enabled to prepare the Stone of the Ancients,
and, for your further instruction, I will add twelve keys, in which I give a figurative
account of our Art.
Take a quantity of the best and finest gold, and separate it into its component
parts by those media which Nature vouchsafes to those who are lovers of Art, as an
anatomist dissects the human body. Thus change your gold back into what it was
before it became gold; and thou shalt find the seed, the beginning, the middle,
and the end-that from which our gold and its female principle are derived, viz.,
the pure and subtle spirit, the spotless soul, and the astral salt and balsam. When
these three are united, we may call them the mercurial liquid: a water which was
examined by Mercury, found by him to be pure and spotless, and therefore
espoused by him as his wife. Of the two was born an incombustible oil; for Mercury
became so proud that he hardly knew himself. He put forth eagle feathers, and
devoured the slippery tail, of the Dragon, and challenged Mars to battle.
Then Mars summoned his horsemen, and bade them enclose Mercury in prison
under the ward of Vulcan, until he should be liberated by one of the female sex.
When this became known, the other Planets assembled and held a deliberation on
the question, what would be the best and wisest course to adopt. When they were
met together, Saturn first came forward, and delivered himself as follows:
" I, Saturn, the greatest of the planets in the firmament, declare here before you
all, that I am the meanest and most unprofitable of all that are here present, that
my body is weak, corruptible, and of a swarthy hue, but that, nevertheless, it is I
that try you all. For having nothing that is fixed about me, I carry away with me all
that is of a kindred nature. My wretchedness is entirely caused by that fickle and
inconstant Mercury, by his careless and neglectful conduct. Therefore, I pray you,
let us be avenged on him, shut him up in prison, and keep him there till he dies
and is decomposed, nay, until not a drop of his blood is to be seen."
Then yellow Jupiter stepped forward, bent his knees, inclined his sceptre, and
with great authority bade them carry out the demand of Saturn. He added that he
would punish everyone who did not aid the execution of this sentence.
Then Mars presented himself, with sword drawn -- a sword that shone with many
colours, and gave out a beautiful and unwonted splendour. This sword he gave to
the warder Vulcan, and bade him slay Mercury, and burn him, together with his
bones, to ashes. This Vulcan consented to do.
While he was executing his office, there appeared a beautiful lady in a long, silver
robe, intertissued with many waters, who was immediately recognised as the
Moon, the wife of the Sun. She fell on her knees, and with outspread hands, and
flowing tears, besought them to liberate her husband -- the Sun -- from the prison
in which, through the crafty wiles of Mercury, he was being detained by the
Planets. But Vulcan refused to listen to her request; nor was he softened by the
moving prayers of Lady Venus, who appeared in a crimson robe, intertissued with
threads of green, and charmed all by the beauty of her countenance and the
fragrance of the flowers which she bore in her hand. She interceded with Vulcan,
the Judge, in the Chaldee tongue, and reminded him that a woman was to effect
the deliverance of the prisoner. But even to her pleading he turned a deaf ear.
While they were still speaking the heaven was opened, and there came forth a
mighty animal, with many thousands of young ones, which drove the warder before
it, and opening its mouth wide, swallowed Venus, its fair helper, at the same time
exclaiming with a loud voice: " I am born of woman, woman has propagated my
seed, and therewith filled the earth Her soul is devoted to mine, and therefore I
must be nourished with her blood." When the animal had said these words with a
loud voice, it hastened into a certain chamber, and shut the door behind it;
whither its voracious brood followed, drinking of the aforesaid incombustible oil,
which they digested with the greatest ease, and thereby became even more
numerous than they had been before. This they continued to do until they filled
the whole world.
Then the learned men of that country were gathered together, and strove to
discover the true interpretation of all they had seen. But they were unable to
agree until there came forward a man of venerable age, with snowy locks and
silvery beard, and arrayed in a flowing purple robe On his head he wore a crown
set with brilliant carbuncles. His loins were girded with the girdle of life. His feet
were bare, and his words penetrated to the depth of the human soul. He mounted
the tribune, and bade the assembly listen to him in silence, since he was sent from
above to explain to them the significance of what they had seen.
"Awake, O man, and behold the light, lest the darkness deceive thee! The Gods
revealed to me this matter in a profound sleep. Happy is the man who knows the
great works of the Divine power. Blessed is he whose eyes are opened to behold
light where before they saw darkness.
"Two Stars are given by the Gods to man to lead him to great wisdom. Gaze
steadily upon them, follow their lights, and you will find in them the secret of
knowledge.
"The bird Phoenix, from the south, plucks out the heart of the mighty beast from
the east. Give the animal from the east wings, that it may be on an equality with
the bird from the south. For the animal from the east must be deprived of its lion's
skin, and lose its wings. Then it must plunge in the salt water of the vast ocean,
and emerge thence in renovated beauty. Plunge thy volatile spirits in a deep spring
whose waters never fail, that they may become like their mother, who is hidden
therein, and born of three.
"Hungary is my native land, the sky and the stars are my habitation, the earth is
my spouse. Though I must die and be buried, yet Vulcan causes me to be born
anew. Therefore, Hungary is my native land, and my mother encloses the whole
world."
When all that were present had received these his sayings, he thus continued:
"Cause that which is above to be below; that which is visible, to be invisible; and
that which is palpable, to become impalpable. Again, let that which is below
become that which is above; let the invisible become visible, and the impalpable,
palpable. Here you see the perfection of our Art, without any defect, or
diminution. But that in which death and life, destruction and resurrection dwell, is
a round sphere, with which the goddess of fortune drives her chariot, and imparts
the gift of wisdom to men of God. Its proper name here upon earth, and for the
human understanding, is 'All-in-All.'
"Let him who would know what this 'All-in-All' is, give the earth great wings, and
make it fly upward through the air to the heavenly regions. Then singe its wings
with fierce heat, and make it fall into the Red Sea, and there be drowned. Then
dry up the water with fire and air till the earth reappears, and you will have
'All-in-All.'
"If you cannot find it in this way, look around upon the things that are in the
world. Then you will find the ' All-in-All,' which is the attracting force of all metals
and minerals derived from salt and sulphur, and twice born of Mercury. More I may
not say about ' All-in-All,' since all is comprehended in all.
"My friends, blessed are ye if, by listening to the words of the wise, ye can find this
great Stone, which has power to cure leprous and imperfect metallic bodies and to
regenerate them; to preserve men in health, and procure for them a long life -- as
it has hitherto kept the vital fire burning within me so long that I am weary of life,
and yearn to die.
"For His wisdom and mercy, and for the gracious Gift which He has bestowed upon
me so long ago, I am bound to render God thanks, now and evermore. Amen."
When the old man had thus spoken, he vanished from their sight.
But all who had heard him went each man to his house, and meditated on his
FIRST KEY
Let my friend know that no impure or spotted things are useful for our purpose.
For there is nothing in their leprous nature capable of advancing the interests of
our Art There is much more likelihood of that which is in itself good being spoiled
by that which is impure. Everything that is obtained from the mines has its value,
unless, indeed, it is adulterated. Adulteration, however, spoils its goodness and its
efficacy.
As the physician purges and cleanses the inward parts of the body, and removes all
unhealthy matter by means of his medicines, so our metallic substances must be
purified and refined of all foreign matter, in order to ensure the success of our
task. Therefore, our Masters require a pure, immaculate body, that is untainted
with any foreign admixture, which admixture is the leprosy of our metals.
Let the diadem of the King be of pure gold, and let the Queen that is united to him
in wedlock be chaste and immaculate.
If you would operate by means of our bodies, take a fierce grey wolf, which,
though on account of its name it be subject to the sway of warlike Mars, is by birth
the offspring of ancient Saturn, and is found in the valleys and mountains of the
world, where he roams about savage with hunger. Cast to him the body of the
King, and when he has devoured it, burn him entirely to ashes in a great fire. By
this process the King will be liberated; and when it has been performed thrice the
Lion has overcome the wolf, and will find nothing more to devour in him. Thus our
Body has been rendered fit for the first stage of our work.
Know that this is the only right and legitimate way of purifying our substance: for
the Lion purifies himself with the blood of the wolf, and the tincture of its blood
agrees most wonderfully with the tincture of the Lion, seeing that the two liquids
are closely akin to each other. When the Lion's hunger is appeased, his spirit
becomes more powerful than before, and his eyes glitter like the Sun. His internal
essence is now of inestimable value for the removing of all defects, and the
healing of all diseases. He is pursued by the ten lepers, who desire to drink his
blood; and all that are tormented with any kind of sickness are refreshed with this
blood.
For whoever drinks of this golden fountain, experiences a renovation of his whole
nature, a vanishing of all unhealthy matter, a fresh supply of blood, a
strengthening of the heart and of all the vitals, and a permanent bracing of every
limb. For it opens all the pores, and through them bears away all that prevents the
perfect health of the body, but allows all that is beneficial to remain therein
unmolested.
But let my friend be scrupulously careful to preserve the fountain of life limpid
and clear. If any strange water be mixed with it, it is spoiled, and becomes
positively injurious. If it still retain any of the solvent which has been used for its
dissolution, you must carefully purge it off. For no corrosive can be of the least use
for the prevention of internal diseases.
When a tree is found to bear sour and unwholesome fruit, its branches must be cut
off, and scions of better trees grafted upon it. The new branches thereupon
become organically united to the trunk; but though nourished with its sap, they
thence forward produce good and pleasant fruit.
The King travels through six regions in the heavenly firmament, and in the seventh
he fixes his abode. There the royal palace is adorned with golden tapestry. If you
understand my meaning, this Key will open the first lock, and push back the first
bolt; but if you do not, no spectacles or natural eyesight will enable you to
understand what follows. But Lucius Papirius has instructed me not to say any
more about this Key.
SECOND KEY
In the houses of the great are found various kinds of drink, of which scarcely two
are exactly like each other in odour, colour, or taste. For they are prepared in a
great variety of different ways. Nevertheless they are all drunk, and each is
designed for its own special use. When the Sun gives out his rays, and sheds them
abroad upon the clouds, it is commonly said that he is attracting water, and if he
do it frequently, and thereby cause rain, it is called a fruitful year.
The daily ebb and flow of the sea, which are caused by the sympathetic influence
of heavenly bodies, impart great wealth and blessing to the earth. For whenever
the water comes rolling back, it brings a blessing with it.
In the same way our bridal pair, Apollo and Diana, are arrayed in splendid attire,
and their heads and bodies are washed with various kinds of water, some strong,
some weak, but not one of them exactly like another, and each designed for its
own special purpose. Know that when the moisture of the earth ascends in the
form of a vapour, it is condensed in the upper regions, and precipitated to the
earth by its own weight. Thus the earth regains the moisture of which it had been
deprived, and receives strength to put forth buds and herbs. In the same way you
must repeatedly distil the water which you have extracted from the earth, and
then again restore it to your earth, as the water in the Strait of Euripus frequently
leaves the shore, and then covers it again until it arrives at a certain limit.
When thus the palace has been constructed by the hands of many craftsmen, and
the sea of glass has absolved its course, and filled the palace with good things, it is
ready for the King to enter, and take his seat upon the throne. But you should
notice that the King and his spouse must be quite naked when they are joined
together. They must be stripped of all their glorious apparel, and must lie down
together in the same state of nakedness in which they were born, that their seed
may not be spoiled by being mixed with any foreign matter.
Let me tell you, in conclusion, that the bath in which the bridegroom is placed,
must consist of two hostile kinds of matter, that purge and rectify each other by
means of a continued struggle. For it is not good for the Eagle to build her nest on
the summit of the Alps, because her young ones are thus in great danger of being
frozen to death by the intense cold that prevails there.
But if you add to the Eagle the icy Dragon that has long had its habitation upon the
rocks, and has crawled forth from the caverns of the earth, and place both over
the fire, it will elicit from the icy Dragon a fiery spirit, which, by means of its
great heat, will consume the wings of the Eagle, and prepare a perspiring bath of
so extraordinary a degree of heat that the snow will melt upon the summit of the
mountains, and become a water, with which the invigorating mineral bath may be
prepared, and fortune, health, life, and strength restored to the King.
THIRD KEY
By means of water fire may be extinguished, and utterly quenched. If much water
be poured upon a little fire, the fire is overcome, and compelled to yield up the
victory to the water. In the same way our fiery sulphur must be overcome by
means of our prepared water. But, after the water has vanished, the fiery life of
our sulphurous vapour must triumph, and again obtain the victory. But no such
triumph can take place unless the King imparts great strength and potency to his
water and tinges it with his own colour, that thereby he may be consumed and
become invisible, and then again recover his visible form, with a diminution of his
simple essence, and a development of his perfection.
A painter can set yellow upon white, and red or crimson upon yellow; for, though
all these colours are present, yet the latter prevails on account of its greater
intensity. When you have accomplished the same thing in our Art, you have before
your eyes the light of wisdom, which shines in the darkness, although it does not
burn. For our sulphur does not burn, but nevertheless its brilliancy is seen far and
near. Nor does it colour anything until it has been prepared, and dyed with its own
colour, which it then imparts to all weak and imperfect metals. This sulphur,
however, cannot impart this colour until it have first by persevering labour been
prevailed upon to abjure its original colour. For the weaker does not overcome the
stronger, but has to yield the victory to it. The gist of the whole matter lies in the
fact that the small and weak cannot aid that which is itself small and weak, and a
combustible substance cannot shield another substance from combustion. That
which is to protect another substance against combustion must itself be safe from
danger. The latter must be stronger than the former, that is to say, it must itself
be essentially incombustible. He, then, who would prepare the incombustible
sulphur of the Sages, must look for our sulphur in a substance in which it is
incombustible -- which can only be after its body has been absorbed by the salt
sea, and again rejected by it. Then it must be so exalted as to shine more brightly
than all the stars of heaven, and in its essence it must have an abundance of
blood, like the Pelican, which wounds its own breast, and, without any diminution
of its strength, nourishes and rears up many young ones with its blood. This
Tincture is the Rose of our Masters, of purple hue, called also the red blood of the
Dragon, or the purple cloak many times folded with which the Queen of Salvation
is covered, and by which all metals are regenerated in colour.
Carefully preserve this splendid mantle, together with the astral salt which is
joined to this sulphur, and screens it from harm. Add to it a sufficient quantity of
the volatility of the bird; then the Cock will swallow the Fox, and, having been
drowned in the water, and quickened by the fire, will in its turn be swallowed by
the Fox.
FOURTH KEY
All flesh that is derived from the earth, must be decomposed and again reduced to
earth; then the earthy salt produces a new generation by celestial resuscitation.
For where there was not first earth, there can be no resurrection in our Magistery.
For in earth is the balm of Nature, and the salt of the Sages.
At the end of the world, the world shall be judged by fire, and all those things that
God has made of nothing shall by fire be reduced to ashes, from which ashes the
Phoenix is to produce her young. For in the ashes slumbers a true and genuine
tartaric substance, which, being dissolved, will enable us to open the strongest
bolt of the royal chamber.
After the conflagration, there shall be formed a new heaven and a new earth, and
the new man will be more noble in his glorified state than he was before.
When the sand and ashes have been well matured and ripened with fire, the
glass-blower makes out of it glass, which remains hard and firm in the fire, and in
colour resembles a crystal stone. To the uninitiated this is a great mystery, but not
to the master whom long experience has familiarized with the process.
Out of stones the master also prepares lime by burning which is very useful for our
work- But before they are prepared with fire, they are mere stones. The stone
must be matured and rendered fervent with fire, and then it becomes so potent
that few things are to be compared to the fiery spirit of lime.
By burning anything to ashes you may gain its salt. If in this dissolution the sulphur
and mercury be kept apart, and restored to its salt, you may once more obtain
that form which was destroyed by the process of combustion. This assertion the
wise of this world denounce as the greatest folly, and count as a rebellion, saying
that such a transformation would amount to a new creation, and that God has
denied such creative power to sinful man. But the folly is all on their side. For they
do not understand that our Artist does not claim to create anything, but only to
evolve new things from the seed made ready to his hand by the Creator.
If you do not possess the ashes, you will be unable to obtain our salt; and without
our salt you will not be able to impart to our substance a bodily form; for the
coagulation of all things is produced by salt alone.
As salt is the great preserving principle that protects all things from decay, so the
Salt of our Magistery preserves metal from decomposition and utter annihilation. If
their Balm were to perish, and the Spirit to leave the body, the body would be
quite dead, and no longer available for any good purpose. The metallic spirit
would have departed, and would have left its habitation empty, bare, and lifeless.
Observe also, thou who art a lover of this Art, that the salt that is gained from
ashes has great potency, and possesses many concealed virtues. Nevertheless, the
salt is unprofitable, until its inward substance has been extracted. For the spirit
alone gives strength and life. The body by itself profits nothing. If you know how to
find this spirit, you have the Salt of the Sages, and the incombustible oil,
concerning which many things have been written before my time.
FIFTH KEY
The quickening power of the earth produces all things that grow forth from it, and
he who says that the earth has no life makes a statement which is flatly
contradicted by the most ordinary facts. For what is dead cannot produce life and
growth, seeing that it is devoid of the quickening spirit. This spirit is the life and
soul that dwell in the earth, and are nourished by heavenly and sidereal
influences. For all herbs, trees, and roots, and all metals and minerals, receive
their growth and nutriment from the spirit of the earth, which is the spirit of life.
This spirit is itself fed by the stars, and is thereby rendered capable of imparting
nutriment to all things that grow, and of nursing them as a mother does her child
while it is yet in the womb. The minerals are hidden in the womb of the earth, and
nourished by her with the spirit which she receives from above.
Thus the power of growth that I speak of is imparted not by the earth, but by the
life-giving spirit that is in it. If the earth were deserted by this spirit, it would be
dead, and no longer able to afford nourishment to anything. For its sulphur or
richness would lack the quickening spirit without which there can be neither life
nor growth.
Two contrary spirits can scarcely dwell together, nor do they easily combine. For
when a thunderbolt blazes amidst a tempest of rain, the two spirits, out of which
it is formed, fly from one another with a great shock and noise, and circle in the
air, so that no one can know or say whither they go, unless the same has been
ascertained by experience as to the mode in which these spirits manifest.
Know then, gentle Reader, that life is the only true spirit, and that that which the
ignorant herd look upon as dead may be brought back to permanent, visible, and
spiritual life, if but the spirit be restored to the body -- the spirit which is
supported by heavenly nutriment, and derived from heavenly, elementary, and
earthly substances, which are also called formless matter. Moreover, as iron has its
magnet which draws it with the invisible bonds of love, so our gold has its magnet,
viz., the first Matter of the great Stone. If you understand these my words, you are
richer and more blessed than the whole world.
Let me conclude this chapter with one more remark. When a man looks into a
mirror, he sees therein reflected an image of himself. If, however, he try to touch
it, he will find that it is not palpable, and that he has laid his hand upon the mirror
only. In the same way, the spirit which must be evolved from this Matter is visible,
but not palpable. This spirit is the root of the life of our bodies, and the Mercury
of the Philosophers, from which is prepared the liquid water of our Art - the water
which must once more receive a material form, and be rectified by means of
certain purifying agents into the most perfect Medicine. For we begin with a firm
and palpable body, which subsequently becomes a volatile spirit, and a golden
water, without any conversion, from which our Sages derive their principle of life.
Ultimately we obtain the indestructible medicine of human and metallic bodies,
which is fitter to be known to angels than to men, except such as seek it at God's
hands in heartfelt prayer, and give genuine proofs of their gratitude by service
rendered to Him, and to their needy neighbour.
Hereunto I may add, in conclusion, that one work is developed from another. First,
our Matter should be carefully purified, then dissolved, destroyed, decomposed,
and reduced to dust and ashes. Thereupon prepare from it a volatile spirit, which
is white as snow, and another volatile spirit, which is red as blood. These two
spirits contain a third, and are yet but one spirit. Now these are the three spirits
which preserve and multiply life. Therefore unite them, give them the meat and
drink that Nature requires, and keep them in a warm chamber until the perfect
birth takes place. Then you will see and experience the virtue of the gift bestowed
upon you by God and Nature. Know, also, that hitherto my lips have not revealed
this secret to any one, and that God has endowed natural substances with greater
powers than most men are ready to believe. Upon my mouth God has set a seal,
that there might be scope for others after me to write about the wonderful things
of Nature, which by the foolish are looked upon as unnatural. For they do not
understand that all things are ultimately traceable to supernatural causes, but
nevertheless are, in this present state of the world, subject to natural conditions.
SIXTH KEY
The male without the female is looked upon as only half a body, nor can the
female without the male be regarded as more complete For neither can bring forth
fruit so long as it remains alone. But if the two be conjugally united, there is a
perfect body, and their seed is placed in a condition in which it can yield increase.
If too much seed be cast into the field, the plants impede each other's growth, and
there can be no ripe fruit. But if, on the other hand, too little be sown, weeds
spring up and choke it.
If a merchant would keep a clear conscience, let him give just measure to his
neighbour. If his measure and weight be not short, he will receive praise from the
poor.
In too much water you may easily be drowned; too little water, on the other hand,
soon evaporates in the heat of the sun.
If, then, you would attain the longed-for goal, observe just measure in mixing the
liquid substance of the Sages, lest that which is too much overpower that which is
too little, and the generation be hindered. For too much rain spoils the fruit, and
too much drought stunts its growth. Therefore, when Neptune has prepared his
bath, measure out carefully the exact quantity of permanent water needed, and
let there be neither too little nor too much.
The twofold fiery male must be fed with a snowy swan, and then they must
mutually slay each other and restore each other to life; and the air of the
imprisoned fiery male will occupy three of the four quarters of the world, and
make up three parts of the imprisoned fiery male, that the death-song of the
swans may be distinctly heard; then the swan roasted will become food for the
King, and the fiery King will be seized with great love towards the Queen, and will
take his fill of delight in embracing her, until they both vanish and coalesce into
one body.
It is commonly said that two can overpower one, especially if they have sufficient
room for putting forth their strength. Know also that there must come a twofold
wind, and a single wind, and that they must furiously blow from the east and from
the south. lf, when they cease to rage, the air has become water, you may be
confident that the spiritual will also be transmuted into a bodily form, and that
our number shall prevail through the four seasons in the fourth part of the sky
(after the seven planets have exercised power), and that its course will be
perfected by the test of fire in the lowest chamber of our palace, when the two
shall overpower and consume the third.
For this part of our Magistery skill is needed, in order to divide and compound the
substances aright, so that the art may result in riches, and the balance may not be
falsified by unequal weights. The sky we speak of is the sky of our Art, and there
must be justly proportioned parts of our air and earth, our true water and our
palpable fire.
SEVENTH KEY
Natural heat preserves the life of man. If his body lose its natural heat his life has
come to an end.
Earth without water can produce nothing, nor can water quicken anything into
growth without earth; and as earth and water are mutually indispensable in the
production of fruit, so fire cannot operate without air, or air without fire. For fire
has no life without air; and without fire air possesses neither heat nor dryness.
When its fruit is about to be matured, the vine stands in greater need of the Sun's
warmth than in the spring; and if the Sun shine brightly in the autumn, the grapes
will be better than if they had not felt his autumnal warmth.
In the winter the multitude suppose everything to be dead, because the earth is
bound in the chains of frost, so that nothing is allowed to sprout forth. But as soon
as the spring comes, and the cold is vanquished by the power of the Sun,
everything is restored to life, the trees and herbs put forth buds, leaves, and
blossoms, the hibernating animals creep forth from their hiding places, the plants
give out a sweet fragrance, and are adorned with a great variety of many coloured
flowers; and the summer carries on the work of the spring, by changing its flowers
into fruit.
Thus, year by year, the operations of the universe are performed, until at length it
shall be destroyed by its Creator, and all the dwellers upon earth shall be restored
by resurrection to a glorified life. Then the operations of earthly nature shall
cease, and the heavenly and eternal dispensation shall take its place.
When the Sun in the winter pursues his course far away from us, he cannot melt
the deep snow. But in the summer he approaches nearer to us, the quality of the
air becomes more fiery, and the snow melts and is transmuted by warmth into
water. For that which is weak is always compelled to yield to that which is strong.
The same moderate course must be adopted in the fiery regimen of our Magistery.
For it is all important that the liquid should not be dried up too quickly, and that
the earth of the Sages should not be melted and dissolved too soon, otherwise your
fishes would be changed into scorpions. If you would perform our task rightly, take
the spiritual water, in which the spirit was from the beginning, and preserve it in a
closely shut chamber. For the heavenly city is about to be besieged by earthly
foes. You must, therefore, strongly fortify it with three impassable and
well-guarded walls, and let the one entrance be well protected. Then light the
lamp of wisdom and seek with it the gross thing that was lost, shewing only such
light as is needed. For you must know that the worms and reptiles dwell in the
cold and humid earth, while man has his proper habitation upon the face of the
earth; the bodies of angels, on the other hand, not being alloyed with sin or
impurity, are injured by no extreme either of heat or cold. When man shall have
been glorified, his body will become like the angelic body in this respect. If we
carefully cultivate the life of our souls, we shall be sons and heirs of God, and shall
be able to do that which now seems impossible. But this can be effected only by
the drying up of all water, and the purging of heaven and earth and all men with
fire
EIGHTH KEY
The farmer's wife knows that she cannot hope to obtain chickens except through
the decomposition of the egg. If bread is placed in honeys and suffered to decay,
ants are generated; worms are bred in the putrefying bodies of men, horses, and
other animals; maggots are also developed by the decay of nuts, apples, and
pears.
The same thing may be observed in regard to vegetable life. Nettles and other
weeds spring up where no such seed has ever been sown. This occurs only by
putrefaction. The reason is that the soil in such places is so disposed, and, as it
were, impregnated, that it produces these fruits, which is a result of the
properties of sidereal influence; consequently the seed is spiritually produced in
the earth, and putrefies in the earth, and by the operation of the elements
generates corporeal matter according to the species of Nature. Thus the stars and
the elements may generate new spiritual, and, ultimately, new vegetable seed, by
means of putrefaction. But man cannot create new seed; for it is not in his power
to order the operation of the elements and the essential influences of the stars. By
natural conditions, however, new plants are generated simply through
putrefaction. This fact is not noticed by the farmer, simply because it is a thing
that he has always been used to, and for which he is unable to find an explanation.
But you who should know more than the vulgar herd, must search into the causes
of things, and endeavor to understand how the process of generation and
resuscitation is accomplished by means of decomposition, and how all life is
produced out of decay.
Each element is in its turn decomposed and regenerated by that which is contained
in it. For you should know that every element contains the three others. In air, for
instance, there is fire, water, and earth. This assertion may appear incredible, but
it is nevertheless true. In like manner, fire includes air, water, and earth, since
otherwise it could generate nothing. Water contains fire, air, and earth; for if it
did not, there could be no growth. At the same time, each element is distinct,
though each contains the others. All this is: found by distillation in the separation
of the elements.
In order to rationally prove this to you, who are investigating the separation of
Nature. and purpose to understand the division of the elements, lest you should
think my words inventions, and not true, I tell you that if you distil earth, you will
find that, first of all, there is an escape of air, which, in its turn, always contains
fire, as they are both of a spiritual essence, and exercise an irresistible mutual
attraction. In the next place, there issues water from the earth, and the earth, in
which is the precious salt, remains by itself at the bottom of the vessel.
When water is distilled, air and fire issue from it, and the water and material
earth remain at the bottom. Again, when the invisible part of elementary fire is
extracted, you get water and earth by themselves. Nor can any of the three other
elements exist without air. It is air that gives to earth its power of production, to
fire its power of burning, to water its power of generating fruit. Again, air can
consume nothing, nor dry up any moisture, without that natural heat which must
be imparted to it by fire. For everything that is hot and dry contains fire. From
these considerations we conclude that no element can exist without the others,
and that in the generation of all things there is a mingling of the four elements. He
who states the contrary in no wise understands the secrets of Nature, nor has he
investigated the properties of the elements. For if anything is to be generated by
putrefaction, the process must be as follows: The earth is first decomposed by the
moisture which it contains; for without moisture, or water, there can be no true
decay; thereupon the decomposed substance is kindled and quickened by the
natural heat of fire: for without natural heat no generation can take place. Again,
if that which has received the spark of life, is to be stirred up to motion and
growth, it must be acted upon by air. For without air, the quickened substance
would be choked and stifled in the germ. Hence it manifestly appears that no one
element can work effectually without the aid of the others, and that all must
contribute towards the generation of anything. Thus their quickening cooperation
takes the form of putrefaction, without which there can be neither generation,
life, nor growth. That there can be no perfect generation or resuscitation without
the co-operation of the four elements, you may see from the fact that when Adam
had been formed by the Creator out of earth, there was no life in him, until God
breathed into him a living spirit. Then the earth was quickened into motion. In the
earth was the salt that is, the Body; the air that was breathed into it was mercury
or the Spirit, and this air imparted to him a genuine and temperate heat, which
was sulphur, or fire. Then Adam moved and by his power of motion, shewed that
there had been infused into him a life-giving spirit. For as there is no fire without
air so neither is there any air without fire. Water was incorporated with the earth
Thus living man is an harmonious mixture of the four elements; and Adam was
generated out of earth, water, air, and fire, out of soul, spirit, and body, out of
mercury, sulphur, and salt.
In the same way, Eve, our common mother, was created; for her body was built up
and formed out of Adam's body - a fact which I wish you particularly to notice.
The putrefaction of metallic seed must, like that of animal and vegetable seed,
take place through the co-operation of the four elements. I have already explained
that the elements themselves are not the seed. But it ought by this time to be
clear to you that the metallic seed which was produced by the combined operation
of heavenly, sidereal, and elementary essences, and reduced into bodily form,
must, in due course, be corrupted and putrefied by means of the elements.
Observe that this seed contains a living volatile spirit. For when it is distilled,
there issues from it first a spirit, and then that which is less volatile. But when by
continued gentle heat, it is reduced to an acid, the spirit is not so volatile as it
was before. For in the distillation of the acid the water issues first, and then the
spirit. And though the substance remains the same, its properties have become
very different. It is no longer wine, but has been transmuted by the putrefaction of
gentle heat into an acid. That which is extracted with wine or its spirit, has widely
different properties and powers from that which is extracted with an acid. For if
the crystal of antimony be extracted with wine or the spirit of wine, it causes
vomiting and diarrhoea, because it is a poison, and its poisonous quality is not
destroyed by the wine. But if it be extracted with a good distilled acid, it furnishes
a beautiful extract of a rich colour. If the acid be removed by means of the St.
Mary's Bath, and the residuum of yellow powder washed away, you obtain a sweet
powder which causes no diarrhoea, but is justly regarded as a marvellously
beneficial medicine.
This excellent powder is dissolved in a moist place into a liquid which is profitably
employed as a painless agent in surgery.
Let me sum up in few words what I have to say. The substance is of heavenly birth,
its life is preserved by the stars, and nourished by the four elements; then it must
perish, and be putrefied; again, by the influence of the stars, which works through
the elements, it is restored to life, and becomes once more a heavenly thing that
has its habitation in the highest region of the firmament. Then you will find that
the heavenly has assumed an earthly body, and that the earthly body has been
reduced to a heavenly substance.
NINTH KEY
Saturn, who is called the greatest of the planets, is the least useful in our
Magistery. Nevertheless, it is the chief Key of the whole Art, howbeit set in the
lowest and meanest place. Although by its swift flight it has risen to the loftiest
height, far above all other luminaries, its feathers must be clipped, and itself
brought down to the lowest place, from whence it may once more be raised by
putrefaction, and the quickening caused by putrefaction, by which the black is
changed to white, and the white to red, until the glorious colour of the triumphant
King has been attained. Therefore, I say that though Saturn may seem the vilest
thing in the world, yet it has such power and effficacy that if its precious essence,
which is excessively cold, be reduced to a metallic body by being deprived of its
volatility, it becomes as corporeal as, but far more fixed than, Saturn itself. This
transmutation is begun, continued, and completed with Mercury, sulphur, and salt.
This will seem unintelligible to many, and it certainly does make an extraordinary
demand upon the mental faculties; but that must be so because the substance is
within the reach of everyone, and there is no other way of keeping up the divinely
ordained difference between rich and poor.
In the preparation of Saturn there appears a great variety of different colours; and
you must expect to observe successively black, grey, white, yellow, red, and all
the different intermediate shades. In the same way, the Matter of all the Sages
passes through the several varieties of colour, and may be said to change its
appearance as often as a new gate of entrance is opened to the fire.
The King shares his royal dignity with noble Venus, and appears in splendid state,
surrounded by all the dignitaries of his court. Before him is borne a beautiful
crimson banner, in which there is an embroidered representation of Charity in
green garments. Saturn is the prefect of the royal household, and in front of him
Astronomy bears a black standard, with a representation of Faith in yellow and red
garments.
Jupiter is the Grand Marshal, and is preceded by a banner of grey colour, borne by
Rhetoric, and adorned with a variegated representation of Hope.
Mars is at the head of military affairs, and executes his office with a certain fiery
ardour. Geometry carries before him a crimson banner, on which you may behold
Courage in a crimson cloak. Mercury holds the office of Chancellor; Arithmetic is
his standard bearer, and his standard is of many colours; on it may be observed the
figure of Temperance in a many coloured robe.
Before the Moon, Dialectic bears a shining silver banner, with the figure of
Prudence wrought into it in sky-blue, and because the husband of the Moon is
dead, he has transferred to her his task of resisting the domination of Queen
Venus. For among all these there is enmity, and they are all striving to supplant
each other. Indeed, the tendency of events is to give the highest place to the most
excellent and the most deserving. For the present state of things is passing away,
and a new world is about to be created, and one Planet is devouring another
spiritually, until only the strongest survive.
Let me tell you allegorically that you must put into the heavenly Balance the Ram,
Bull, Cancer, Scorpion, and Goat. In the other scale of the Balance you must place
the Twins, the Archer, the Water-bearer, and the Virgin. Then let the Lion jump
into the Virgin's lap, which will cause the other scale to kick the beam. Thereupon,
let the signs of the Zodiac enter into opposition to the Pleiads, and when all the
colours of the world have shewn themselves, let there be a conjunction and union
between the greatest and the smallest, and the smallest and the greatest.
TENTH KEY
In our Stone, as composed by me and by those who have long preceded me, are
contained all elements, all mineral and metallic forms, and all the qualities and
properties of the whole world. In it we find most powerful natural heat, by which
the icy body of Saturn is gently transmuted into the best gold. It contains also a
high degree of cold, which tempers the fervent heat of Venus, and coagulates the
mercury, which is thereby also changed into the finest gold. All these properties
slumber in the substance of our Stone, and are developed, perfected, and matured
by the gentle coction of natural fire, until they have attained their highest
perfection. If the fruit of a tree be plucked before it is ripe, it is unfit for use; and
if the potter fail to harden his vessels in the fire, they cannot be employed for any
good purpose.
In the same way you must exercise considerable patience in preparing our Elixir, if
it is to become all that you wish it to become. No fruit can grow from a flower that
has been plucked before the time. He who is in too great a hurry, can bring
nothing to perfection, but is almost sure to spoil that which he has in hand.
Remember, then, that if our Stone be not sufficiently matured, it will not be able
to bring anything to maturity.
pervades human and metallic bodies, and is the universal and immaculate
Medicine, since it drives out that which is bad, and preserves that which is good,
and is the unfailing corrective of all imperfect or diseased substances. This
Tincture Is of a colour intermediate between red and purple, with something of a
granite hue, and its specific weight is very considerable.
Whoever gains possession of this Stone, should let his whole life he an expression
of his gratitude towards God in practical kindness towards his suffering brethren,
that after obtaining God's greatest earthly gift, he may hereafter inherit eternal
life. Praise be unto God everlastingly for this His inestimable gift.
ELEVENTH KEY
The eleventh Key to the Knowledge of the augmentation of our Stone, I will put
before you in the form of a parable.
There lived in the East a gilded knight, named Orpheus, who was possessed of
immense wealth, and had everything that heart can wish. He had taken to wife his
own sister, Euridice, who did not, however, bear him any children. This he
regarded as the punishment of his sin in having wedded his own sister, and was
instant in prayer to God both by day and by night, that the curse might be taken
from him.
One night, when he was buried in a deep sleep, there came to him a certain
winged messenger, named Phoebus, who touched his feet, which were very hot,
and said: " Thou noble knight, since thou hast wandered through many cities and
kingdoms, and suffered many things at sea, in battle, and in the lists, the heavenly
Father has bidden me make known to thee the following means of obtaining thy
prayer: Take blood from thy right side, and from the left side of thy spouse. For
this blood is the heart's blood of your parents, and though it may seem to be of
two kinds, vet, in reality, it is only one. Mix the two kinds of blood, and keep the
mixture tightly enclosed in the globe of the seven wise Masters There that which is
generated will be nourished with its own flesh and blood, and will complete its
course of development when the Moon has changed for the eighth time If thou
repeat this process again and again, thou shalt see children's children, and the
offspring of thy body shall fill the world."
When Phoebus had thus spoken, he winged his flight heavenward. In the morning
the knight arose and did the bidding of the celestial messenger, and God gave to
him and to his wife many children, who inherited their father's glory, wealth, and
knightly honours from generation to generation.
If you are wise, my son, you will find the interpretation of my parable. If you do
not understand it, ascribe the blame not to me, but to your own ignorance. I may
not express myself more explicitly; indeed, I have revealed the matter in a more
plain and straightforward manner than any of my predecessors. 1 have concealed
nothing; and if you will but remove the veil of ignorance from your eyes, you will
behold that which many have sought and few found.
TWELFTH KEY
If an athlete know not the use of his sword, he might as well be without it; and if
another warrior that is skilled in the use of that weapon come against him, the
first is like to fare badly. For he that has knowledge and experience on his side,
must carry off the victory.
In the same way, he that possesses this tincture, by the grace of Almighty God,
and is unacquainted with its uses, might as well not have it at all. Therefore this
twelfth and last Key must serve to open up to you the uses of this Stone. In dealing
with this part of the Subject I will drop my parabolic and figurative style, and
plainly set forth all that is to be known. When the Medicine and Stone of all the
Sages has been perfectly prepared out of the true virgin's milk, take one part of it
to three parts of the best gold purged and refined with antimony, the gold being
previously beaten into plates of the greatest possible thinness. Put the whole into
a smelting pot and subject it to the action of a gentle fire for twelve hours, then
let it be melted for three days and three nights more.
For without the ferment of gold no one can compose the Stone or develop the
tinging virtue. For the same is very subtle and penetrating if it be fermented and
joined with a ferment like unto itself: then the prepared tincture has the power of
entering into other bodies, and operating therein. Take then one part of the
prepared ferment for the tinging of a thousand parts of molten metal, and then
you will learn in all faith and truth that it shall be changed into the only good and
fixed gold. For one body takes possession of the other; even if it be unlike to it,
nevertheless, through the strength and potency added to it, it is compelled to be
assimilated to the same, since like derives origin from like.
Whoever uses this as a medium shall find whither the vestibules of the palace lead,
and there is nothing comparable to the subtlety thereof. He shall possess all in all,
performing all things whatsoever which are possible under the sun.
O principle of the prime principle, consider the end! O end of the final end,
consider the beginning! And be this medium commended unto your faithful care,
wherein also God the Father, Son, and Holy Ghost, shall give unto you whatsoever
you need both in soul and body.
But, notwithstanding that my conscience doth bear me witness in the sight of the
Most High, before whom all concealed matters are laid bare, that I have written no
falsehood, but have so exposed the truth that understanding men can require no
further light (that which is laid down in the theoretical part being borne out and
confirmed by the practice of the Twelve Keys), yet have I been impelled by various
considerations to demonstrate by a shorter way what I have written in the said
treatise, and thus cast further light thereon, whereby also the lover of the desired
wisdom may obtain an increased illumination for the fulfilment of his desire There
are many who will consider that I am speaking too openly, and will hold me
answerable for the wickedness that they think will follow, but let them rest
assured that it will be sufficiently difficult, notwithstanding, for any thick-headed
persons to find what they seek herein. At the same time the matter shall be made
clear to the elect. Hearken then, thou follower of truth, to these my words, and so
shalt thou find the true way !
Behold, I write nothing more than I am willing to hold by after my death and
resurrection! Do thou faithfully and simply lay to heart this shorter way, as
hereinafter exhibited, for my words are grounded in simplicity, and my teaching is
not confused by a labyrinth of language.
I have already indicated that all things are constituted of three essences - namely,
mercury, sulphur, and salt - and herein I have taught what is true. But know that
the Stone is composed out of one, two, three, four, and five. Out of five - that is,
the quintessence of its own substance. Out of four, by which we must understand
the four elements. Out of three, and these are the three principles of all things.
Out of two, for the mercurial substance is twofold. Out of one, and this is the first
essence of everything which emanated from the primal fiat of creation.
But many may by all these discourses be rendered doubtful in mind as to what they
must start with, and as to the consequent theory. So I will, in the first place, speak
very briefly concerning Mercury, secondly concerning Sulphur, thirdly concerning
Salt; for these are the essence of the Matter of our Stone.
In the first place, you must know that no ordinary quicksilver is useful, but our
quicksilver is produced from the best metal by the spagyric art, pure, subtle,
clear, and glistening, like a spring, pellucid even as crystal, free from all dross.
Hence make water or combustible oil. For Mercury was in the beginning water, and
herein all the Sages agree with my dictum and teaching In this oil of Mercury
dissolve its own Mercury, from which the water in question was made, and
precipitate the Mercury with its own oil. Then we have a twofold mercurial
substance; but you must know that gold must first be dissolved in a certain water,
as explained in my second Key, after the purification described in the first Key,
and must be reduced into a subtle calx, as is mentioned in the fourth Key. Next,
this calx must be sublimated by the spirit of salt, again precipitated, and by
reverberation reduced into a subtle powder. Then its own sulphur can more easily
enter into its substance, and have great friendship with the same, for they have a
wondrous love towards each other. Thus you have two substances in one, and it is
called Mercury of the Sages, but is yet a single substance, which is the first
ferment.
In the same way, the vegetable salt of wine fixes and volatilizes according to the
manner of its preparation. Its use is one of the arcana of Nature, and a miracle of
the philosopher's art. When a man drinks wine, there may be gained from his urine
a clear salt, which is volatile, and renders other fixed substances volatile, causing
them to rise with it in the alembic. But the same does not fix. If a man drank
nothing but wine, yet for all that the salt obtained from his urine would have a
different property from that gained out of the lees of wine. For it has undergone a
chemical change in the human body, having become transmuted from a vegetable
into an animal salt -- just as horses that feed on oats, straw, etc., change those
vegetable substances into flesh and fat, while the bee prepares honey out of the
precious juices of flowers and herbs.
The great change which takes place in these and other substances is due to
putrefaction, which separates and transmutes the constituent elements.
The common spirit of salt, which is extracted according to the direction given in
my last declaration, if there be added to it a small quantity of the "spirit of the
dragon," dissolves, volatilizes, and raises together with itself in the alembic, gold
and silver; just as the "eagle," together with the spirit of the dragon (which is
found in stony places), before the spirit is separated from its body, is much more
powerful in producing fixation than volatility.
This I also say, that if the spirit of common salt be joined to the spirit of wine, and
distilled together with it, it becomes sweet, and loses its acidity. This prepared
spirit does not dissolve gold bodily, but if it be poured on prepared calx of gold, it
extracts the essence of its colour and redness. If this be rightly done, it reduces
the white and pure moon to the colour of that body from which it was itself
extracted. The old body may also receive back its former colour through the love
of alluring Venus, from whose blood it, in the first instance, derived its origin.
But observe, likewise, that the spirit of salt also destroys the moon, and reduces it
to a spiritual essence, according to my teaching, out of which the " potable moon "
may be prepared. This spirit of the moon belongs to the spirit of the sun, as the
female answers to the male, by the copulation or conjunction of the spirit of
mercury or its oil.
The spirit lies hid in mercury, the colour you must seek in sulphur, and their
coagulation in salt; then you have three things which together are capable of once
more generating a perfect thing. The spirit is fermented in the gold with its own
proper oil; the sulphur is found in abundance in the property of precious Venus.
This kindles the fixed blood which is sprung from it, the spirit of the salt of the
Sages imparts strength and firmness, though the spirit of tartar and the spirit of
urine together with true vinegar, have great virtue. For the spirit of vinegar is
cold, and the spirit of lime is intensely hot, and thus the two spirits are found to
be of opposite natures. I do not here speak according to the customary manner of
the Sages. But I must not say too openly how the inner gates are to be unlocked.
In bidding farewell, let me impart to you a faithful word. Seek your material in a
metallic substance. Thence prepare mercury. This ferment with the mercury of its
own proper sulphur, and coagulate them with salt. Distil them together; mix all
according to weight. Then you will obtain one thing, consisting of elements sprung
from one thing. Coagulate and fix it by means of continuous warmth. Thereupon
augment and ferment it a third time, according to the teaching of my two last
Keys, and you will find the object and goal of your desire. The uses of the Tincture
are set forth plainly in my twelfth Key.
Thanks be to God.
As a parting kindness to you, I am constrained to add that the spirit may also be
extracted from black Saturn and benevolent Jupiter. When it has been reduced to
a sweet oil, we have a means of robbing the common liquid quicksilver of its
vivacity, or rendering it firm and solid, as is also set forth in my book.
Postscript
When you have thus obtained the material, the regimen of the fire is the only
thing on which you need bestow much attention. This is the sum and the goal of
our search. For our fire is a common fire, and our furnace a common furnace. And
though some of my predecessors have left it in writing that our fire is not common
fire, I may tell you that it was only one of their devices for hiding the mysteries of
our Art. For the material is common, and its treatment consists chiefly in the
proper adjustment of the heat to which it is exposed.
The fire of a spirit lamp is useless for our purpose. Nor is there any profit in
"horse-dung," nor in the other kinds of heat in the providing of which so much
expense is incurred.
Neither do we want many kinds of furnaces. Only our threefold furnace affords
facilities for properly regulating the heat of the fire. Therefore do not let any
babbling sophist induce you to set up a great variety of expensive furnaces. Our
furnace is cheap, our fire is cheap, and our material is cheap - and he who has the
material will also find a furnace in which to prepare it, just as he who has flour
will not be at a loss for an oven in which it may be baked. It is unnecessary to
write a special book concerning this part of the subject. You cannot go wrong, so
long as you observe the proper degree of heat, which holds a middle place
between hot and cold. If you discover this, you are in possession of the secret, and
can practise the Art, for which the CREATOR of all nature be praised world without
end. AMEN.
condition that he (the King) should in person conduct a Crusade against the Turks,
the enemies of God, and that he should thenceforward refrain from making war on
other Christian nations. But, alas, this promise was never fulfilled, because the
King grossly violated his part of the contract, and compelled my dear master to fly
beyond the seas, with sorrow and grief in his soul. My heart still burns within me
when I think of the unjust treatment which he received, and I have no more
earnest longing than once more to behold his bodily presence. For the model of his
daily life, and the purity and integrity of his mind, would move the most
inveterate sinner to repentance. In the meantime, rest assured, most blessed
Raymond, that I and my brethren day by day pour out our prayers before God on
your behalf. All wisdom is derived from God, and ever ends in Him. Any one who
desires knowledge should ask it of Him, for he gives liberally, and without
upbraiding. The height and the depth of all knowledge, and the whole treasure of
wisdom are given unto men of God, because in Him, and to Him, and through Him
are all things, and nothing can happen without His will. In beginning my discourse I
invoke the help of Him Who is the source and origin of all good things. May the
bright light of His Spirit shine in my heart, and guide me into all truth; also
enabling me to point out to others the true path of Knowledge! May this prayer be
granted by Him who is enthroned on High, and rules and governs all things, world
without end! Amen.
"In the Beginning was the Word - full of grace and truth."
Prayer
Holy Lord, Almighty Father, Eternal God, deign to bless and sanctify the fire which
we unworthy men, by invocation of Thy only-begotten Son our Lord Jesus Christ,
presume to bless. Hallow it, most gracious God, with Thy benediction, and let it
tend to the good of the human race, through our Lord Jesus Christ.
Thou art the true light of the eyes, and the light of the senses;
A mirror Thou art of things without and of things within.
Accept this light which I bear, ministering,
Tinged with the unction issued from the peace-bearing virgin.
CHAPTER I
How to prepare the living water which constitutes the life of our Art
Take three oz. of tartar of good claret, strong and pure. Add to it five oz. of
Petroleum, two oz. of living sulphur, two oz. of orange coloured Arsenic, three oz.
of Rabusenum, two oz. of willow charcoal. Mix and distil all these ingredients in
the "bath of Neptune," in a well-stoppered glass jar. Let this jar be about one cubit
high, and carefully closed to prevent any of the spirits or smoke from evaporating.
When you see it turn of a pale colour, take it out of the furnace, and let it cool.
You ought to be able to prepare it in about four days. Be careful not to inhale its
smell, for it is deadly poison. This water should be kept in a stout well-stoppered
glass jar, and used according to the directions given in the following chapters. The
other water should be twice distilled out of the urine of an unpolluted youth of
eighteen; if he be polluted, the water will have no vitality.
[Rabusenum is a certain red substance and earth coming forth with water, which
flows out of minerals, and is brought to perfection in the month of July in a glass
jar exposed to the heat of the sun for 26 days.]
CHAPTER II
Take the water of an unpolluted youth after his first sleep for three or four nights,
until you have three pints. Put it each night into a well-stoppered stone jar;
remove the sediment. Strain out one pint of the thinnest and purest part of the
liquid. Add two glasses of very strong vinegar, two oz. of quicklime, half-an-ounce
of the "living water," of which the preparation has been described above. Put the
mixture into an earthen pot, and place over it an alembic or distilling vessel,
rendered airtight with clay. Let it stand one day and one night before you put it on
the fire. Then expose it to gentle heat, and let it distil continually for five or six
days and nights. Thus let it flow by drops; carefully lute your glass receptacle so
that neither spirit nor smoke may escape, and when the liquor distilling assumes a
blue or pallid colour, then abstract nothing further.
CHAPTER III
Smelt eight oz. of clear, hard iron ore, having no blemishes, in three or four parts,
over a fierce charcoal fire; extinguish it with so much of the Virgin water described
in the second chapter as may be necessary for the purpose. Then take three oz. of
tin, heat it for a short time in the fire, and steep it in the Virgin water. Pound the
iron ore and the tin very small on a marble tablet, and when it begins to cool feed
it with some of the water aforesaid. Pour the whole into a narrow-necked glass
bottle, and seal it up with lead. Put it in a safe place, and in October you should
fill a water-tight box (about one yard in height) with fresh horse dung, and thrust
your glass vessel into it. Next to the bottle let there be a layer of unslaked
quick-lime. Shut the lid of the box closely, and never look at the mixture but at
the time of the full moon. Its colours will continue to change until it becomes
fixed and hardened. Then it is precipitated towards the bottom of the vessel.
When it has been in the box twelve weeks, it should be quite black. You may then
take it out, and keep it till the twentieth day of March, when it should be once
more pounded small, according to the directions given below.
CHAPTER IV
About the fifteenth day of March take three oz. of quicksilver, and add to it
half-an-oz. of "living water." Pass the quicksilver five times through a strainer
purged with lye and well dried. Melt two pounds of lead, and pour it into a pot.
When it becomes liquid, thrust into it a thin round skewer, and when the lead is
still warm, but already fixed, remove the skewer, and pour in the quicksilver
instead. When the whole mass has cooled turn it out on a slab of marble, pour
some oil over it, pound it small, divide it into three parts, mix each with small
pilules of soot. Leave them in a closely sealed vessel for eight days, stamp them to
powder, and nourish this powder with a liquid compounded in equal proportions of
vinegar and "Virgin water." Put the soft paste which must thus be formed into a
high glass distilling vessel. Close up the upper part of the vessel with clay, and tie
it up with a piece of leather or parchment. Then plunge it into a wooden box,
containing glowing coals of juniper wood and oak, and a twentieth part of iron
filings. To test the degree of the fire before inserting the vessel put in it a piece of
dry paper. If it catches alight the fire is not too hot but if the thin shreds which
remain of the paper after burning are also consumed, then the heat is excessive,
and the door must be opened till the temperature lowers; when it has become
properly warm, carefully add to it a spoonful of "living water " (described in the
first chapter). But take care that the still is only three-quarters covered with the
coals, in order that you may, whenever the moon is full, be able quickly to remove
the cover, and see how the work is progressing. Whenever you perform this, add a
spoonful of "living water." At first the colour of the mixture should be black;
afterwards it will become white, and will pass through various changes of colour.
When the mixture turns solid or fixed, its colour should be red of a somewhat dark
tinge and it should also be saline and heavy, no longer flowing or bubbling up
towards the top of the vessel. It ought to be treated in the manner suggested for
forty weeks, beginning on the twenty-fifth of March. By the end of this period the
mixture will have become so hard as to burst the vessel. When this happy event
takes place, the whole house will be filled with a most wonderfully sweet
fragrance; then will be the day of the Nativity of this most blessed Preparation.
Remember, that the iron box with the coals ought to be enclosed in another
wooden box, of which the object is to preserve the compound from the noxious
influences of the air.
CHAPTER V
Take two pounds of pure and soft lead, two pounds of pure tin, and melt them in
the above-mentioned well-covered clay jar. Place the whole on a wood fire, and
keep it in a moderate blaze for three hours. Remove the "foam" of the metallic ore
till the whole mixture is pure and transparent, then add to it a fourth part of an
ounce of the Red Stone powdered. Stir it gently with an iron spoon until the whole
mass turns red. Leave the jar for seventy-two hours, and during the last three
hours expose it once more to the gentle heat of a blazing wood fire. While it is still
liquid you can mould it into any shape you please; when it hardens you have before
your eyes the Consummation of the whole work. Mind you lift up your hands in
grateful prayer to the Giver of all good gifts. So be it.
CHAPTER VI
dried, cover it with thin filings of red or caldarium copper and fine powder of red
arsenic. When it is quite dry, smear all its lower part with saltpetre dissolved for
twelve hours in the " living water" of our first chapter.
It is my wish that Brother Alexander, and Richard, of this our Monastery, should
copy this Testament in the name of the Most Blessed Trinity, and preserve it
carefully.
In the first place, let them diligently keep the secret from all greedy and nefarious
persons, and reveal it to none but the Abbot and Prior, for the time being, of our
Monastery. Nor should it be made known to them until they have sworn on the four
Gospels that they will not reveal it to any men in power, or to any of the inferior
brethren of our Monastery.
Moreover, it is my wish that the Art be not actually exercised in this our
Monastery, except to save it from penury and ruin-a contingency which is not likely
to happen, seeing that I leave to it so great a treasure of precious metals. I also
enjoin upon you who are in authority in this house, to wit, the Abbot and Prior, to
have this my last will and testament copied once in every sixty years, in order that
it may not become illegible, either through the ravages of time, or through a
change in the form of those written characters which render man's thought
permanent.
Furthermore, I command you not to betray the secret of the preparation of the
Red Dragon's Blood, or the quantities of substances required, or the manner of
their treatment, or the time when the work should be taken in hand, to any human
soul, except to the persons named above; and I adjure you to keep and preserve
intact, inviolate, and unbroken the trust committed to you, in the Name of the
Father, the Son, and the Holy Spirit, as you will one day have to answer me before
the judgment seat of Christ. Whoever does not observe this my mandate, let his
name be blotted out from the Book of Life.
Magnesia is the smelted ore of iron. When the mixture is still black it is called the
Black Raven. As it turns- white, it is named the Virgin's Milk, or the Bone of the
Whale. In its red stage, it is the Red Lion. When it is blue, it is called the Blue
Lion. When it is all colours, the Sages name it Rainbow. But the number of such
names is legion: and I can only mention these few. Moreover, they were only
invented for the purpose of confounding the vulgar, and hiding this mystery from
the simple. Whenever you meet with a book full of these strange and outlandish
terms and names, throw it aside at once: it will not teach you anything.
A Subtle Allegory
concerning the Secrets of Alchemy
very useful to possess
and pleasant to read.
By Michael Maier
The Secrets of Alchemy
After spending the best part of my life in the study of the liberal arts and sciences,
and in the company of wise men and judicious scholars, I was compelled, as the
result of my observation of mankind, to arrive at the melancholy conclusion that
the hearts of most persons are set either on ambitious and vainglorious projects,
on sensual pleasures, or on the accumulation of wealth by all and any means; and
that few care either for God or for virtue. At first I did not quite know whether to
become a disciple of the laughing or of the weeping philosopher, or whether to
join in the exclamation of the wise Prince of Israel: "All things are vanity." But at
length the Bible and experience taught me to take refuge in the study of the
hidden secrets of Nature, whether pursued at home, by means of books or abroad,
in the Great Volume of the World. Now, the more I drank of the mighty fount of
knowledge, the more painfully my thirst, like that of Tantalus, seemed to
increase. I had heard that there was a bird called Phoenix, the only one of its kind
in the whole world, whose feathers and flesh constitute the great and glorious
medicine for all passion, pain, and sorrow; which also Helena, after her return
from Troy, had presented in the form of a draught to Telemachus, who thereupon
had forgotten all his sorrows and troubles. This bird I could not indeed hope to
obtain entire, but I was seized with an irresistible longing to become possessed of
at least one of its smallest feathers; and for this unspeakable privilege I was
prepared to spend all my substance, to travel far and wide, and to endure every
hardship. There was, of course, much to discourage me. Some people denied the
very existence of this bird; others laughed at my faith in its wonder-working
properties. I was thus brought for a time to regard all that Tacitus, Pliny, and all
other writers have said as fabulous, and to doubt whether, after all, the different
narcotics and opiates were not a better remedy for anger and sorrow than the
supposed virtues of the Phoenix. Moreover, I had heard of the simple method of
curing these mental ailments suggested by a certain wise man to Augustus, whom
he bade run through the twenty-four letters before saying anything whenever he
was angry; and this suggestion appeared to supersede all other remedies. I had
also read the books of those moral philosophers who undertake to prescribe an
effective remedy for every disease of the mind. But after giving all these boasted
specifics a fair trial, I found, to my dismay, that they were of little practical use.
In many cases, the causes of mental maladies appeared to be material, and to
consist in an excess or defect of the bile, or of some other bodily substance; in all
these cases a medical treatment seemed to be indicated; whence Galen, that
prince among physicians, was led to believe that character depends on
temperaments of the body. As a soldier may lose all his bravery and strength by
being starved and confined in a close prison, so even a good person may yield to
anger, simply through some vicious habit of body. This opinion is most reasonable
in itself, and is borne out, amongst other things, by the testimony which is given
by Arnold of Villanova, in that book of his where he sets forth the virtues of all
medicines by means of tables of the four qualities: "The medicines that conduce to
intellectual excellence are those which strengthen the digestion, and nourish the
brain and the principal vitals, purging out all superfluities, purifying the blood. and
preventing the ascent of vapours to the brain; hence you will find that many
medical writers speak of their medicines as productive of a direct effect upon the
mind, when it is only through the medium of the stomach, the brain, the blood,
the liver, etc., that they tend to brighten the intellectual faculties, by improving
the general health of the brain, and quickening all processes of the body, that you
may say they are productive of joy, because they tend to strengthen the chief
limbs, purify the blood, and produce good animal spirits. Other medicines "lead to
Paradise," as they dispose the heart to charity and to every good work. by their
action upon the blood. Some medicinal herbs have the power of exciting love, by
increasing and clarifying the blood, and thus quickening the sexual instinct; while
others make men chaste and religious, by inducing poverty and frigidity of blood,
and taking away the edge of all sensual appetite. In the same way, it is possible,
by means of certain drugs, to make men stupid and insane, as men are rendered
dull and stolid by drinking, too much wine. You may also notice, sometimes, that
after eating a certain kind of food, men become light-hearted, joyous, and
inclined to dance and sing- though they are ordinarily staid and grave persons --
while other kinds of food have a contrary effect upon them. Thus, a physician has
power to make a miser liberal, a chaste person lascivious, a timid person bold,
simply by changing the complexion of his vital juices. Such are the wonderful
secrets of the medical Art, though of course, they are hidden from the foolish and
the ignorant. There are a great many infatuated persons who will not believe that
medicine can do anything but cure a headache; but such people know little of the
resources of this science. Hippocrates forbad the physicians whom he taught to
reveal these secrets; and it was a wise prohibition." A little further on the same
writer says: " What medicine can produce greater heat than anger? or chill the
body more than fear? or invigorate the nerves more thoroughly than joy? or nourish
and comfort more gently than hope? And what more certain cause of death is there
than despair?" These are the words of the philosopher, and they shew that
medicine may, through the body, cure the mind, and thus supply a remedy for
anger as well as other mental disturbances. It is true that if there is a remedy for
anger, it would, in the present state of the world, hardly be very highly esteemed.
Still it would calm the passions of individuals, although other persons might not
recognise its value. But that which men do. not care to have just now, may one
day be in great demand. Such is the vicissitude of all things human. Galen once
said that the savages of England and Germany were as hostile to the science of
Medicine as they were ignorant of it. But now the descendants of Galen's
countrymen are sunk in barbarism, while the English and Germans are the most
skilful physicians in the world. Thus it seems very likely that this Remedy may be
one day in great request, especially when we consider its vast utility, and the
What has been said about anger applies with equal force to grief; for while the
symptoms of anger are more or less mental, those of grief produce a more
perceptible and lasting effect on the body. This great Remedy for anger and grief,
then, it would be most desirable to have, if we could only find the Phoenix which
affords it, Where shall I look for it? Where shall I enquire after it? Whom shall I ask?
I determined to go abroad, and to search for it till 1 should have found it. Fortune
assists the brave: to the indolent and idle knowledge never comes. I would leave
my native country-dearly as I love it, and sadly as I should miss my friends -- and
wander from land to land until I should be able to return with the eagerly coveted
Medicine. All beginnings are difficult: he who has never been sad, cannot rejoice;
he who has never erred, cannot be brought back to the right way; and as the
Chemists say: "There is in Alchemy a certain noble body, which is moved from
master to master. whose beginning is misery and sourness, whose end is sweetness
and joy." So I expected to endure hardships, and go through bitter experiences,
but I also expected them to be crowned with the delights of success. Of the
existence of the Phoenix I had no doubt. or I could not have looked for it. It is
enough for me to see the Sun and its rays, even though I cannot touch it; and
perhaps it is as well for us that we cannot get so very close to the Sun. But as to
this Medicine which I seek; how can I have a perfect knowledge of it before I see
and touch it? How can I become a Master before I have been a scholar? The
products of all countries are not the same; and perhaps I may learn in one part of
the world what I cannot get to know in another. Moreover, I asked myself the
question: Can a pilgrim's life hurt any one? Are we not all pilgrims here below to
that land whither our Saviour Christ has gone before? And is not the example of
peregrination set us by the swallow, the herald of spring by the crane, the stork,
and other birds of passage? Does not the whole world lie open before man as the
air is everywhere accessible to birds? Great Phoebus himself, the god of the Sun,
journeys day by day over the wide expanse of the sky. The heart of man beats and
pulsates in his bosom from the first to the last hour of his life; and being
surrounded by all these models and examples, it is natural for man to lead the life
of a pilgrim, particularly if that pilgrimage be directed towards a certain goal. The
merchant travels over land and sea to buy the produce of distant climes; but a
nobler merchandise by far are science and knowledge, which are the wares of the
mind. He who stays at home will there bury his talents, and get to know little
about the secrets of the universe Moreover, it is both pleasant to travel and
honourable to be always several hours' journey in advance of the Sun. That which
is most spiritual is most swift in its movements, while the lifeless earth alone is
immovable. The other three elements are in perpetual motion: the air sweeps over
the earth in the shape of winds, hurricanes and gales; fire devours everything
before it as it rushes onward in the conflagration of a great city; water runs along
in rivers and mighty streams, and hastes to reach the sea. Let us also look up and
behold the heavens as they move in their glory. The stars, the sun, and the moon
know the times and seasons of their rising and setting. A cannon ball, if projected
from one of our most powerful guns, would be more than eight days in making the
compass of the world (which is more than 25,000 miles); but the Sun,
notwithstanding its vast size, accomplishes the same distance in 24 hours. It would
make our thoughts reel if we strove to realise the velocity with which Saturn
moves round the Sun, and with which the heavens revolve round their own axis.
But greater still, and far more wonderful, is the speed of human thought, which, in
a moment of time, travels from one end of the heavens to the other. We may
believe that the angels, as spiritual beings, move with the quickness of that which
is spiritual in man, viz. thought. God alone does not move; for He is everywhere.
For all these reasons, I conceived that it would be both interesting, pleasant,
honourable, and eminently profitable for me to follow the example of the whole
world, and to undertake a pilgrimage for the purpose of discovering this wonderful
bird Phoenix. I therefore braced myself for a long journey, determining to travel.
first, through all the countries of Europe, then, if necessary, to America, thence to
Asia, and at last to pass on to Africa. If, after carefully searching for the Phoenix in
all these parts of the world, I did not succeed in finding it or hearing of it, I might
reasonably give up all hopes of ever setting eyes thereon. The plan of my journey
was determined by the relative quality of the elements which the different parts
of the world represent, i.e., Europe stands for earth, America for water, Asia for
air, and Africa for fire; and earth cannot become air except through the medium
of water; nor can water become fire except through the medium of air. I
determined, then, to go first to Europe, which represents the grossest, and last to
Africa, which represents the most subtle element. But my reasons will be set forth
more clearly as I come to speak of the different parts of the world.
EUROPE: EARTH
I left my native town on the day of the vernal equinox, when the Moon and Sun
were both in the sign of Aries, with the intention of first travelling through Europe,
and to enquire everywhere after the Phoenix. I took Europe to represent the
element Earth, because earth forms the foundation of all the ether elements, and
stands out above the water, so Europe is the mother of the whole world, and
though smaller than other continents, is vastly superior to them through the
courage, energy, and mental strength of its inhabitants. Some say that one handful
of earth gives ten handfuls of water, a hundred handfuls of air, and a thousand
handfuls of fire; and this is the relative importance of the different continents, if
Europe answers to earth. Europe has produced the bravest warriors, and the most
distinguished conquerors; and though she has subdued other continents, she has
herself never been subjugated by them. Of the four great world empires, only one
was founded by an Asiatic prince; the Macedonian, the Roman, and the Teutonic
Empires, have all had their centres in Europe. Alexander the Great and Julius
Caesar were among her sons. If we look at a map of Europe we may easily perceive
that in shape this part of the world resembles a virgin; but her heart is that of a
lion. For these reasons, I determined to travel first through this Virgin Lion,
because it clearly corresponds to the fundamental element: earth.
Europe is a Virgin because of her beauty and spotless purity; a Lion because she
has conquered others, but has never herself been conquered. Among the heavenly
bodies the Sun answers to Europe, and among the metals, gold. For though she
produces little gold, and the sun shines upon her with less fierceness than on
Africa, yet she is worthy of being compared to the Sun and gold because of the
excellence of her people, though a few years ago even some real lions were born
in Germany, yet we call her a Lioness only on account of her stoutness of heart.
Europe is the Mother of the World, and Germany is her heart.
Nor is Europe without her marvels. In Pannonia, it is reported, men live in compact
stone houses under water. The hot springs of Carlsbad, it is said, are hardened into
stones. On the coasts of Prussia, a transparent and pellucid stone (amber), formed
out of subterraneous vegetable juices, is cast ashore in large quantities. I do not
mention the coral of the Sicilian sea, which, originally a plant, hardens outside
water into a white or red tree of stone, or the sealed earth of Germany and
Silesia... Europe then, is the Lion Earth. This expression is for those who hear not
with their ears only but also with their brains, it is earth which resists the fire, like
gold, and is not resolved into air. Like the boundary pillar of the gods of old, it
"yields to none." Hence Europe (the gold of the universe) seemed the very place in
which I should be most likely to hear of the Phoenix and its Medicines But most of
those whom I met laughed at my quest, and said that, like Narcissus, I had fallen in
love with the shadow of my own mind, the echo of my vain and ambitious
thoughts, which had no substantial existence apart from my own folly. "The words
of the Alchemists," said they, " are like clouds: they may mean and represent
anything, according to the fancy of him who hears them. And even if there were
such a medicine, human life is too brief for the search, all that makes life worth
living will have to be neglected and thrust aside while you are engaged in hunting
after it. If we can pick up a knowledge of this secret casually, and whilst devoting
ourselves to other pursuits, well; but if not, we can very ill spare the time for a
closer search." These objections (at least the latter half of them) I met as follows:
"The quest of this Medicine demands the whole powers of a man's body and mind.
He who engages in it only casually, cannot hope to penetrate even the outward
rind of knowledge. The object of our search is a profound secret, and a man who is
not prepared to give himself wholly to this enquiry had much better abstain from it
altogether. I readily acknowledge that the powers of my mind are not such as to
justify me in anticipating success. But the spirit within me impels me to undertake
this search; and I am confident that God will at the last reward my patience, and
my humble waiting upon Him. As every King loves his Queen, as every bridegroom
is devoted to his bride, so I regard this science as more beautiful and lovely than
anything else in the world besides Now, beautiful things are hard to win, and hard
toil is the way to all that is great and glorious." This was the gist of my answer.
Now I had already travelled through a great part of Europe, when it occurred to
me that Italy and Spain are constantly mentioned by the Ancients as the great
seats of secret knowledge, and I therefore directed my steps thitherward. In Spain
I heard that some Arabs (Geber, Avicenna, and others) had lived there a long time
ago, and these had possessed the wonderful Medicine; I was also told a great deal
about Hercules and his achievement in securing the golden apples of the
Hesperides, and also the golden cup, wherein he received the medicine for anger
and sorrow. Now all prudent men have decided that it contained a small portion of
the feathers of the Phoenix. I saw that Geryon with the three bodies was the
theme of the philosopher's writings, that Hercules was a laborious artist, seeker of
the Medicine. But nobody was able to give me any definite information. I did not,
however, wish to leave Europe without visiting the Canary Islands, which are seven
in number and are named: Lancerotta, Bonaventura, Great Canaria, Teneriffe,
Gomera, Ferro,and Palma. Three of them, Lancerotta, Gomera, and Ferro, are
governed each by its own King. Ferro is naturally destitute of good drinking water,
but the inhabitants get a supply of it out of certain broadleaved trees, which distil
sweet water in such quantities as to suffice for the whole island. Strangers and
pirates who land in the island, being ignorant of this fact, are prevented by want
of water from staying in Ferro very long. Now, it happened about this time that
the King of Gomera had died without leaving a male heir, and his subjects refused
to acknowledge the authority of his beautiful daughter Blanche, unless she
accepted the hand of some royal wooer, because they said that it was unworthy of
men to be ruled by a woman, and calculated to injure the manliness of the
national character-as was shewn by the experience of those peoples over whom
women have borne sway for any length of time. For there women had assumed the
place of men, while men were degraded to the position of women; and, as a
consequence, there followed the wildest excesses of profligacy and lewdness. So
the royal maiden was prevailed upon to think of bestowing her hand in marriage.
Now, there was in the island a royal youth, named Brumazar (with beautiful dark
locks and a splendid golden robe),who was passionately enamoured of the royal
maiden Blanche, and was loved by her in return. He wooed and won her, and the
wedding was celebrated on condition that she should bring to him as her dower a
diamond of great value and magnitude, while he should present to her a splendid
ruby of incalculable worth (i.e., worth a million ducats); he, as her King and Lord,
should protect her from all dangers and from the robbers with whom that country
swarms, while she, on the other hand, promised humbly to obey him without
either subterfuge or tergiversation. After these preliminaries, they were linked
together in close and indissoluble marriage, in which they lived long and happily;
and it was predicted that a son should be born to them, who would be a mighty
conqueror, and would carry his victorious arms as far as the Pillars of Dionysus in
India... So you see that I was unable to get any information whatsoever about the
Phoenix in the course of my wanderings through Europe; I therefore determined to
set sail for America, in the hope that I might be more fortunate among the savages
of that Continent For I remembered the words of the poet:
"Accident is a mighty helper; let your hook always be baited; in the least likely
river you may catch your fish."
AMERICA: WATER
In these days, when commerce has opened up, as it were, a highroad across the
seas to America (or India in the West), there is no very great difficulty in reaching
that continent; but far different were the circumstances under which it was first
discovered. After leaving the "Islands of the Blessed," I became a passenger on
board of a ship which had an eagle for its figurehead; and, after weathering many
severe gales and hurricanes, we at length landed in Brazil, a great province of
America, entirely covered with forests. The surface of the country is only dotted
here and there with the homestead of a settler; there are few towns, and the
inhabitants are sunk in ignorance, and unskilled in the arts of civilisation. How,
then, could I hope to hear anything about the Phoenix among people who could
hardly read or write? Yet there are in this country many rare and beautiful birds
which are not found elsewhere, though, of course, the Phoenix, being a miraculous
bird, must not be sought among common fowls. The trees of the land are of a rich
colour and sweet fragrance; and one day when I was enjoying the wild beauty of
the forest, and listening to the natural music of the birds, I happened to find an
apple of unusual and exquisite beauty, which on a closer view exhibited the
following inscription:
After much thinking, it occurred to me that the seed which was in the fruit must
be placed in the earth (its grandmother, since the parent tree was its mother). So I
took it as a gift of God, sowed the seed, and when there had sprung up a little
tree, I grafted it into the parent tree (first having sawn off that tree close to the
ground) and when the two had grown together, they became a much more glorious
tree than either of them had been before, and the fruit was that of the scion
which had been inserted into the parent tree.... It is said that before the Spaniards
reached Brazil, there were no horses in that country, so that the natives regarded
a horse soldier as a monster half man and half beast; but when both horses and
asses had been introduced by the strangers, it was thought most desirable to
obtain also some mules which are the common offspring of these two animals.
Now, there was a certain chief who possessed a large number both of asses and
horses, and he took particular interest in this matter. He knew very well how to
breed horses from horses, and asses from asses, but he was not acquainted with
the proper method of breeding mules from both; while he was au are that all
experiments which are made in the dark, i.e., without the light of previous
experience, are both dangerous and uncertain. The consequence was that all his
efforts to produce a mule out of a stallion and a she ass were doomed to failure,
no doubt because their seeds were not mixed in the right proportion. At last a Sage
who was passing that way, and whose insight into the secret working of Nature was
infinitely keener and more complete than that of those ignorant people, gave our
chief the following advice:
This advice was taken by the chief and, after several failures, his perseverance
Was crowned with complete success. Nor does it appear contrary to Nature's
general plan that two different parents should produce offspring which differs
from them both. Look at the leopard, which is said to be the offspring of the pard
and the lioness; in the same way the wolf and bitch beget the lynx; a scion
inserted into a good tree produces fruit different from those of the parent stock-
new varieties of flowers are obtained by a judicious mingling of the pollen; and the
red powder called "our Tincture," being mixed with quicksilver over the fire,
produces gold which is utterly unlike either the one or the other. Now, these
Americans are able to perform a most singular experiment with metals, and
particularly with gold. They have a kind of water in which gold becomes soft like
wax and capable of being moulded with the hand into any shape they please. This
water is not a corrosive, since it does not burn the fingers of those who take up
the gold. But we need not doubt that it is some chemical discovery, and that it is
obtained by a distilling process... As I could gain no further information in
America, I began to think of taking the first opportunity of crossing to Asia: I took
with me a very heavy and valuable piece of a certain kind of wood, the most
precious I saw here in Brazil, and which is remarkable for its brilliant ebony colour,
for this black colour seems proper to America by reason of the blackish poplars and
the soil dyed with various hues. The colour of this wood seems to arise from the
heat of the sun, and the wonderful peculiarity of the American soil, of which
Monandez, that learned physician of Seville, writes as follows: "The variety of
colour exhibited by the soil of Peru is most remarkable. If you look at it from a
distance, it has the appearance of a patchwork quilt spread out to air in the sun:
one part of it is green, another blue, others again are yellow, white, black, and
red. Now all these are different kinds of mineral earth: the black earth, if mixed
with water or wine, makes an excellent ink, the red soil is said to be the ore of
quicksilver, and the Indians paint themselves with it." -- Well, I took my wood,
went aboard a ship, with a white unicorn for its figure head, and setting sail for
ASIA: AIR
Asia is the third continent of the world, the continent which answers to the
element of Air, and its climate is more temperate than that of the other
continents, as it is equally remote from the intense cold of Europe, and the
intense heat of Africa. Being both warm and moist, it most admirably corresponds
to the element of air; its heat is almost everywhere tempered by the vapours
which ascend from the sea. Moist, warm air has fire for its father, and water for its
mother, and retains the most active qualities of both its parents. Thus air is a
mediator between the two hostile elements, and in its own composition reconciles
their strife. In the same way Asia binds Europe (earth) and Africa (fire) together,
the grossest and the most subtle of the elements; but without Asia (air) there
would be no union between them. By means of air, fire clings gladly to earth, and
fosters it; but without air, the fire soon goes out. It is the prerogative and
distinctive mark of Asia to be the centre of the world, and to bring forth such
fruits as require a warm soft air, as, for instance, dates, balsam, spices of all
kinds, and gold itself. Asia is the cradle of our race, the seat of the first Monarchy,
the birthplace of our Redeemer. From the Persian gulf I travelled straight through
the continent, till I reached those parts of Asia Minor where Jason is said to have
obtained the golden fleece. So, being greatly interested in these old world
occurrences, I walked out one day to a place said to be the field of Mars, and the
site of the Palace of Aetes, the descendant of the Sun; there I met an old man of
venerable aspect and authoritative port, who saluted me graciously, and to whom,
after returning his salutation, I addressed the following words: "Master, if I am not
troubling you too much, kindly enlighten my ignorance, as I can doubt neither your
ability nor your willingness to help a stranger." He having signified his willingness
to do for me all that lay in his power, I asked him whether those things which were
related in history and poetry concerning Jason and his golden fleece, were real
facts or mere poetical fictions. He smiled, and made the following reply to my
question: "I myself am Jason, and better able than any one else to give you
information concerning those things which have happened to myself. You need not
be afraid, for during my lifetime I was no man's enemy, but succoured all, like a
good physician; and now that I no longer belong to this world, I am still as kindly
disposed towards my mortal brethren. On this spot stood the royal seat of my
father-in-law, Aetes, whose father was the Sun-not, indeed, that heavenly
luminary (which would be incredible), but one likest to him in name, and face, and
dignity. The golden fleece of the ram, which Mercury had transmuted, and which
Aetes had hung in the grove of Mars, I obtained in the following manner: Medea
was my chief adviser, and she enabled me by her wise counsel to contend
successfully against the fierce and venomous monsters. The watchful Dragon I
stupefied with a narcotic, which I cast into his maw; and while he was in that
helpless state, I hastened to extract his teeth. These had to be buried in earth first
prepared and ploughed up by means of bulls vomiting fire, which fire was
extinguished by water poured into their mouths. Then Medea gave me the images
of the Sun and Moon, without which, she said, nothing could be done." I asked
where I should find all these things. His answer was that he obtained them Medea,
but he could not tell me where she was be found. "When she left me in her
madness," he said, " she was to wedded to old Aegeus, to whom she bore Medus;
Medus afterwards went to Asia, and became the founder of the Median race." I
wished to ask Jason many more questions, but he excused himself from answering
them, and vanished before my eyes. Then I saw that he had been speaking of the
Medicine of which I was in search, which also he had shadowed out under the
figure of the golden fleece. For the crest of the Phoenix and its feathers are
described by the learned as exhibiting a golden splendour. I did not indeed meet
with many learned men in Asia; but I was well satisfied to have explored that
blessed "aerial earth," especially as Syria and the Holy Land (with their rivers of
Adonis and Jordan, in which the leper Naaman was cleansed) form part of it. In
Syria, it is related that Adonis was killed by a boar, hounded on by Mars, and that
from his wounds there flowed forth that balm by means of which human bodies are
preserved from decomposition. On this continent stood the Holy of Holies, into
which our Most High Priest entered when He had made atonement for the sins of
the whole race on the Cross of Calvary; to Him let us now utter forth the most
ardent desires of our hearts in the following prayer:
O great and merciful Saviour of the world, Jesus Christ, who being God from all
eternity, next madest man in time, in order that, as our Mediator, Thou mightest
unite God and man, by satisfying the eternal and infinite power of God which
human sin had provoked to wrath, that is to say, Thyself, the Father, and the Holy
Spirit. For this purpose Thou wast born into this world and didst go about doing
good among men and didst sanctify this earth by Thy miracles, Passion,
Resurrection, and Ascension. To Thee I pray from the very bottom of my heart that
as Thou hast given this Medicine for the use of men by ordinary means, and
meanwhile hast Thyself cured incurable diseases by Thy Divine power, Who art the
Great Physician: so Thou wouldst bestow the gift of this most precious Medicine
upon me, the very humblest of thy servants, who for the sake of this most blessed
knowledge have taken upon myself so weary a pilgrimage, and so many toils and
hardships, as Thou well knowest -- in order that I may use it to the glory of Thy
Name, and for the relief of my suffering brethren. Thou who art a searcher of
hearts, knowest that I despise all worldly pomp, and desire to consecrate my life
to Thee, if Thou wilt but work in me both the will and the power of performance:
Grant to me the power of exercising boundless charity, of relieving all sufferings,
both bodily and mental: Bless me with the gracious gift of Thy Medicine, which
comes next in value after the peace of mind and eternal happiness which Thou
hast gained for us, in order that its virtue may be effectual in the cure of human
sorrow, disease, and pain; to the everlasting praise of the everblessed Trinity,
world without end, Amen.
When I had poured forth this prayer to the Giver of all good things, I remembered
that besides the land which once flowed with milk and honey, but now, under
Turkish rule, has become utterly barren and sterile, there was also in Asia,
Paradise, which was created for man while he was still perfect. Knowing that this
blessed garden was situated near Babylon, I journeyed to the spot, but found
nothing except a confluence of certain rivers. Thence I travelled to the maritime
parts of India, and found a city, called Ormuz, of which there ran a proverb, that if
the world was a ring, Ormuz would be its gem. In this city there was a great
concourse of eager visitors from the whole neighbourhood; and when I asked one
of them whither he was hastening, he said: To the terrestrial paradise. "What,"
said I, "was I unable to find the ancient garden of Eden, and do these people speak
of a new Paradise! "But the man left me standing there, and pursued his journey as
fast as he could. While I was considering whether I should follow him, it occurred
to me that I should do well to adopt the plan of Columbus, the discoverer of
America. So I went to the different gates of the city, and determined to leave it by
that one where the sweetest and most fragrant odours were borne towards me on
the air. This I did, and I soon found myself on a road where the air was such as
might well come from an earthly Paradise, yet was frequented by very few
travellers. Ormuz being situated on an island, we soon had to cross a sea, where I
saw men fishing, up pearls of the purest whiteness. Having obtained some of these
for love and money, I had no doubt that I had come into possession of one of the
most important substances of the Medicine, for the whiteness of these pearls was
such as to defy exaggeration. After pursuing my journey on the mainland, along a
very narrow by-path, for some time, I reached a point where two roads met, and
there was a statue of Mercury, of which the body was silver while the head was
overlaid with gold. The right hand of this statue pointed towards the Earthly
Paradise, and when I had followed for some time the road which it indicated, I
came to a very broad and deep river, which it was impossible to cross without a
boat, though far and wide there was no boat to be seen; but the beauty of the
other shore convinced me that it must be the Earthly Paradise. The trees which
grew there were covered with golden, orange, citron coloured, purple, and
intensely red flowers. There were evergreen laurels, junipers box-trees, and great
store of blossoms of all colours and of the sweetest fragrance: sunflowers,
amaranths, lilies, roses, hyacinths, &c. The ear was charmed with the songs and
cries of nightingales, cuckoos, parrots, larks, thrushes, and hundreds of other
known and unknown birds; nor was there wanting the sweet music of instruments
and sweet-toned organs; the taste was gratified, as it seemed, with all manner of
delicious fruits, and the fragrance which streamed out on the breeze was such as
charmed while it rendered insensible the olfactory nerves of all the people who
lived round about, just as the noise of the Nile cataracts becomes inaudible to
those who are used to it. But what did the sight of all these glories profit me, who,
for want of one little boat, was unable to get at them? So I turned away, with the
firm resolution of coming back, as soon as I could do so with a better chance of
success; in the meantime, I should be most likely to find the Phoenix that I was in
search of, if I crossed over to Africa without further delay. So I directed my course
towards the Red Sea, and there landed in Africa.
AFRICA: FIRE
When I reached Africa, more than a year had elapsed from my first setting out; the
Sun had once more entered the sign of the Lion, the Moon was at her height in the
house of Cancer. All these were circumstances which inspired me with hope. The
intense heat of the African climate renders the whole continent torrid, sterile, and
dry. It has few rivers, but many wild beasts, which meet together at the riverside,
and bring forth among themselves many new and strange shapes, for which Africa
is so well known. Satyrs, cynocephali, and semi-human beings are said to live
there. There are the Mountains of the Moon, and Atlas that bears up the heavens
on its shoulders: all these abound in minerals and in serpents. There also is
collected the blood of the Dragon which the Dragon has sucked from the Elephant;
but when the Elephant falls dead, the Dragon is crushed, and the blood which it
has drunk is pressed out of it. Again, in the neighbourhood of the Red Sea, an
animal named Ortus has been observed, the colour Of whose head is red, with gold
lines up to the neck, while its eyes are deep black and its feet white, to wit, the
fore feet, but the hind feet are black, the face up to the eyes white--a description
which tallies exactly With that which Avicenna gives of our Medicine. Now I heard
that not far from the Red Sea there lived a prophetess, named the Erytheraean
Sibyl, in a rocky cave; and I thought well first of all to enquire of her concerning
this Phoenix. It is she that prophesied and predicted the coming of the Son of God
in the flesh This assertion has indeed been questioned by many writers, but it is
borne out by Eusebius, the great historian of the Early Church, and by Cicero. the
great orator, who, as is well known, translated this prophecy into the Latin
tongue. Abundant evidence to the same effect may also be collected from the
works of Virgil, the prince of Roman poets. The passage of Cicero which is referred
to by Eusebius, will be found in the second book of his treatise, De Divinatione (On
Divination). . . . When I came to her, I found her sitting in her cave, which was
beautifully overgrown with the spreading boughs of a green tree, and covered with
green sod. I saluted her with the lowliest and most deferential humility. At first
she seemed somewhat startled at my sudden appearance, and hastily retreated to
the interior of the cave. But she was soon won over by my earnest entreaties, and
prevailed upon to shew herself at the entrance of her habitation. "Who art thou,
stranger?" she enquired, "and what wouldest thou of me? Dost thou not know that a
man may not approach a virgin that dwells in solitude?" "It is not forward boldness
that has brought me hither," I replied; " but I have come after mature deliberation,
because I feel that it is you, and you alone, that can resolve certain doubts which
lie heavy on my mind. If you will shew me this great kindness, I, on my part,
promise to do you suit and service, and to fulfil all your commands, as far as lies in
my power" When she heard these words, her countenance cleared, and she asked
me in a more kindly tone what my business was. "I cannot," she continued, "deny
anything to men like you who are anxious to learn." "There are two things," I
returned, concerning which I would crave plain and straightforward instruction
from you. namely, whether there was and is in these countries of Arabia and Egypt
a wonderful bird named Phoenix; whether its flesh and feathers are really an
effectual medicine for anger and grief; and, if so, where the bird is to be found?
"The object of your search," she rejoined, "is a great and glorious one; doubt is the
first stage of knowledge, and you have also come to the right place and the right
person. For the country in which you now find yourself is Araby the Blest, and
nowhere else has the Phoenix ever been found; moreover, I am the only person
who could possibly give you any definite information about it. I will teach you, and
this land will exhibit to you, the glad sight of which I speak. Therefore, listen to
my words Arabs the Blest and Egypt have from of old rejoiced in the sole
possession of the Phoenix, whose neck is of a golden hue, while the rest of its body
is purple, and its head is crowned with a beautiful crest. It is sacred to the Sun,
lives 660 years, and when the last hour of its life approaches, it builds a nest of
cassia and frankincense, fills it with fragrant spices, kindles it by flapping its wings
towards the Sun, and is burnt to ashes with it. From these ashes there is generated
a worm, and out of the worm a young bird which takes the nest, with the remains
of its parent, and carries it to Heliopolis (or Thebes), the sacred city of the Sun in
Egypt. Now, this whole tale which you find in the books of the Ancients is
addressed to the mind rather than to the ear; it is a mystical narrative, and like
the hieroglyphics of the Egyptians, should be mystically (not historically)
understood. An ancient Egyptian writer tells us that the Phoenix rejoices in the
Sun, and that this predilection is its chief reason for coming to Egypt. He also
relates that his countrymen were in the habit of embalming the Phoenix if it died
before its time. If you therefore regard this tale as an allegory, you will not be far
wrong; and you know that the flesh and feathers of this bird were of old used in
Heliopolis as a remedy for anger and grief." When I heard her say this, I was full of
joy, and asked her whether she could tell me how to become possessed of this
Blessed Bird and Medicine. She promised not to forsake me, and to do all in her
power to help me out of my difficulty. "Nevertheless," she continued, "the most
important part of the enterprise must be performed by the toil of your own hands.
I cannot describe to you in exact and unmistakable terms the place where the
Phoenix lives, yet I will endeavour to make it as plain to you as I may. Egypt, you
know, owes all her fertility to the Nile, whose sources are unknown and
undiscoverable; but the mouths by which it is discharged into the sea, are
sufficiently patent to all. The fourth Son of the Nile is Mercury, and to him his
father has given authority to shew you this bird, and its Medicine. This Mercury you
may expect to find somewhere near the seven mouths of the Nile; for he has no
fixed habitation, but is to be found now in one of these mouths, and now in
another." I thanked the Virgin Prophetess most cordially for her gracious
information, and at once set my face towards the mouths of the Nile, which are
seven:-the Canopic, the Bolbitic, the Sebennitic, the Pelusian, the Tenitic, the
Phoenetic and the Mendesic. The way to the Canopic mouth led me through an
ancient Christian burial ground, where a most miraculous occurrence is witnessed
every year on a certain day in May. From dawn to noon on that day the dead
bodies gradually rise from their graves until they are completely visible to the
passers by; and from noon to sunset they gradually sink back again into their
tombs. If this be true, as eye-witnesses testify, it is a most certain proof of the
resurrection of the human body, and exhibits a close analogy to the resuscitation
of the dead Phoenix...When I reached the island of Canopus, I enquired where
Mercury was to be found. But the people were only hopelessly puzzled by my
questions. Some said that, according to Hermes, Egypt exhibits an image of the
heavens, and the seven mouths of the Nile (of which the Canopic is the most
considerable) correspond to the seven planets, the Canopic mouth they called the
habitation of Saturn, the grandfather of Mercury; Mercury was to be found
domiciled in some other mouth of the river. At the Bolbitic mouth none of those
persons of whom I enquired knew anything about Mercury. Near the third or
Sebennitic mouth stood the city of Sebennis, of which the inhabitants were so
savage and cruel towards strangers, and so utterly destitute of all the arts and
graces of civilization, that I could not conceive of Mercury, the god of culture and
science, living in their midst. Moreover, a certain peasant whom I asked whether
Mercury's house was there, old me that he had a house in the town but that he
never lived there. So I at once went on to the fourth or Pelusian mouth of the file.
The famous city of Pelusium is said to have been founded by Peleus, the father of
Achilles. It separates Asia and Arabia from Egypt, and was at one time a most
wealthy town. When I heard of its greatness in commerce and industry, and of the
large quantities of Arabian gold which are imported in this city, one of the
wealthiest marts of Egypt, I felt assured that I should find the dwelling of Mercury
here; but I was told by the inhabitants that he did not come there very often,
though he was received as a most welcome guest whenever he did visit it. This
answer filled me with dismay, which was in proportion to the hopes which I had
conceived, but I determined not to abandon my search till I should have visited the
three remaining mouths of the river.
At the Tenitic mouth of the Nile, I learned quite as much as I had learned
everywhere else, namely-nothing. When the people who lived there told me that
Mercury never came to them at all, I began to bewail my hapless fate, and the
many fruitless journeys I had undertaken; and I now saw that perhaps it would
have been wiser to have begun at the other end. There. however, I was; only two
mouths of the river were left; and in one of these Mercury would be found, if
indeed the Prophetess had spoken true. At the Phoenetic mouth another
disappointment awaited me. Mercury had once lived there, but had long since
migrated somewhere else. At the seventh, or Mendesian mouth, nothing whatever
was known about him. It may easily be imagined that, after this long series of
disappointments, I began to suspect the Sibyl very strongly of having sent me on a
fool's errand, for I had now visited every one of the mouths of the Nile, and yet
had not found even a trace of Mercury in any of them. Or if the words of the
prophetess had been true, it seemed as if the various people of whom I had
enquired must have deceived me with false information. But after more mature
consideration of the answers which had been returned to my questions in the
different places I arrived at the conclusion that I had merely misapprehended their
meaning. So I retraced my steps, and at length succeeded in finding Mercury in one
of the mouths, where the people had at first appeared to know nothing about him.
He shewed me at great length, where I must look for the Phoenix and where I
could obtain possession of it. When I reached the place to which he directed me, I
found that the Phoenix had temporarily deserted it, having chanced to be chosen
umpire between the owl and other birds which pursue it, of which battle we have
treated otherwise. It was expected back in a few weeks; but, as I could not afford
to wait so long just then, I thought I might be content with the information I had
gained, and determined to consummate my search at some future time. So, having
returned to my native land, I composed the following epigrams in honour of the
Sibyl, Mercury, the Phoenix, and the Medicine.
EPIGRAM
In Honour of the Erythreaean Sibyl, named Herophyle
I thank thee, great prophetess, Whose inspiration is not of the fiend, but of the
Spirit of God, that thou didst direct me on my way to the Son of Nilus, who should
shew unto me the bird Phoenix. Full of sacred knowledge, thou didst utter forth
thy oracles when thou didst sing of God who should come in the fashion of a man.
Thou dost love Him who, bearing the sentences of highest justice, will be the
omnipotent judge of the whole world, though thou wert called a Gentile Maiden,
and though men said that thou couldst know nothing of Him. The cave near the
Red Sea cannot hold thy. greatness, when Christ shall claim thee for His own in
Heaven.
EPIGRAM
Dedicated to Mercury of the Sages.
The Latins call thee Mercury, the Messenger of the Gods; among the Greeks thy
name is that of great Hermes. Thou art called Tenthius on the soil of Egypt; thy
father is Nilus, who enriches that soil, and has bequeathed unto thee untold
wealth. Thou hast duly conveyed to the peoples of Egypt the laws which Vulcan,
being in the secret with thee, has given. All nations of the world behold thee with
delight, yet thou desirest to be known to very few. Of how many secrets of Nature
have the keys been entrusted to thy keeping! Thy face is red, thy neck is yellow,
thy bosom is whiter than purest snow. Thy feet are shod with black sandals, a
wand with a double snake in no wise hurts thy hand. This is thine apparel whereby
thou art known to all, O Hermes ! Thy complexion is fittingly of four hues. Thou
didst shew to me the glorious bird Phoenix by the mouth of an interpreter, and I
thank thee for thy love with all my heart; though the words be light, they are
weighty with gratitude.
AN EPIGRAM
In Praise of the Phoenix
O Marvel of the World, prodigy without a blot, unique Phoenix who givest thyself
to the great Sages! Thy feathers are red, and golden the hues of thy neck; thy nest
is built of cassia and Saboean frankincense. When thy life is drawing to a close,
thou knowest the secret way of Nature by which thou art restored to a new
existence. Hence thou gladly placest thyself on the altar of Thebes, in order that
Vulcan may give thee a new body. The golden glory of thy feathers is called the
Medicine of health, and the cure of human woe. Thou has power to cast out
disease and to make the old young again. Thee. Blessed Bird, I would rather have
than all the wealth of the world, and the knowledge of thee was a delight which I
sought for many years. Thou art hidden in the retreat of thine own nest, and if
Pliny writes that he saw thee in Rome, he does greatly err. Thou art safe in thy
home, unless some foolish boy disturb thee: if thou dost give thy feathers to
anyone, I pray thee let him be a Sage.
If anyone will not acknowledge the force of reason, he must needs have recourse
to authority.
An
Open Entrance
to the
Closed Palace
of the King
by
An Anonymous Sage and
Lover of Truth
Table of Contents
CHAPTER I
Of the need of Sulphur for producing the Elixir
Whoever wishes to possess this secret Golden Fleece, which has virtue to
transmute metals into gold, should know that our Stone is nothing but gold
digested to the highest degree of purity and subtle fixation to which it can be
brought by Nature and the highest effort of Art; and this gold thus perfected is
called "our gold," no longer vulgar, and is the ultimate goal of Nature. These
words, though they may be surprising to some of my readers, are true, as I, an
adept, bear witness; and though overwise persons entertain chimerical dreams,
Nature herself is most wonderfully simple. Gold, then, is the one true principle of
purification. But our gold is twofold; one kind is mature and fixed, the yellow
Latten, and its heart or centre is pure fire, whereby it is kept from destruction,
and only purged in the fire. This gold is our male, and it is sexually joined to a
more crude white gold -- the female seed: the two together being indissolubly
united, constitute our fruitful Hermaphrodite. We are told by the Sages that
corporal gold is dead, until it be conjoined with its bride, with whom the
coagulating sulphur, which in gold is outwards, must be turned inwards. Hence it
follows that the substance which we require is Mercury. Concerning this substance,
Geber uses the following words: "Blessed be the Most High God who created
Mercury, and made it an all-prevailing substance." And it is true that unless we had
Mercury, Alchemists might still boast themselves, but all their boasting would be
vain. Hence it is clear that our Mercury is not common mercury; for all common
mercury is a male that is corporal, specific, and dead, while our Mercury is
spiritual, female, living, and life-giving. Attend closely to what I say about our
Mercury, which is the salt of the wise men. The Alchemist who works without it is
like a man who draws a bow without a string. Yet it is found nowhere in a pure
state above ground, but has to be extracted by a cunning process out of the
substance in which it exists.
CHAPTER II
Of the Component Principles of the Mercury of the Sages
Let those who aim to purify Mercury by means of salts, faeces and other foreign
bodies, and by strange chemical processes, understand that though our water is
variousy composed, it is yet only one thing, formed by the concretion of divers
substances of the same essence. The components of our water are fire, the
vegetable "Saturnian liquid," and the bond of Mercury. The fire is that of mineral
Sulphur, which yet can be called neither mineral nor metallic, but partakes of both
characters: it is a chaos or spirit, because our fiery Dragon, that overcomes all
things, is yet penetrated by the odour of the Saturnian liquid, its blood growing
together with the Saturnian sap into one body which is yet neither a body (since it
is all volatile) nor a spirit (since in fire it resembles melted metal). It may thus be
very properly described as chaos, or the mother of all metals. From this chaos I
can extract everything -- even the Sun and Moon -- without the transmutatory
Elixir. It is called our Arsenic, our Air, our Moon, our Magnet, and our Chalybs:
these names representing the different stages of its development, even unto the
manifestation of the kingly diadem, which is cast out of the menstruum of our
harlot. Learn then, who are the friends of Cadmus; who is the serpent that
devoured them; what the hollow oak to which Cadmus spitted the serpent. Learn
who are the doves of Diana, that overcome the green lion by gentleness: even the
Babylonian dragon, which kills everything with its venom. Learn, also, what are the
winged shoes of Mercury, and who are those nymphs whom he charms by means of
his incantations.
CHAPTER III
Concerning the Chalybs of the Sages
Our Chalybs is the true key of our Art, without which the Torch could in no wise be
kindled, and as the true magi have delivered many things concerning it, so among
vulgar alchemists there is great contention as to its nature. It is the ore of gold,
the purest of all spirits; a secret, infernal, and yet most volatile fire, the wonder
of the world, the result of heavenly virtues in the lower world -- for which reason
the Almighty has assigned to it a most glorious and rare heavenly conjunction,
even that notable sign whose nativity is declared in the East. This star was seen by
the wise men of old, and straightway they knew that a Great King was born in the
world. When you see its constellation, follow it to the cradle, and there you will
behold a beautiful Infant. Remove the impurities, look upon the face of the King's
Son; open your treasury, give to him gold, and after his death he will bestow on
you his flesh and blood, the highest Medicine in the three monarchies of the earth.
CHAPTER IV
Of the Magnet of the Sages
As steel is attracted towards the magnet, and the magnet turns towards the steel,
so also our Magnet attracts our Chalybs. Thus, as Chalybs is the ore of gold, so our
Magnet is the true ore of our Chalybs. The hidden centre of our Magnet abounds in
Salt, which Salt is the menstruum in the Sphere of the Moon, and can calcine gold.
This centre turns towards the Pole with an archetic appetite, in which the virtue
of the Chalybs is exalted into degrees. In the Pole is the heart of Mercury, the true
fire (in which is the rest of its Master), sailing through this great sea that it may
arrive at both the Indies, and direct its course by the aspect of the North Star,
which our Magnet will manifest.
CHAPTER V
Of the Chaos of the Sages
Let the student incline his ear to the united verdict of the Sages, who describe this
work as analogous to the Creation of the World. In the Beginning God created
Heaven and Earth; and the Earth was without form and void, and the Spirit of God
moved upon the face of the waters. And God said, "Let there be light," and there
was light. These words are sufficient for the student of our Art. The Heaven must
be united to the Earth on the couch of friendship, so shall he reign in glory for
ever. The Earth is the heavy body, the womb of the minerals, which it cherishes in
itself, although it brings to light trees and animals. The Heaven is the place where
the great Lights revolve, and through the air transmit their influences to the lower
world. But in the beginning all was one confused chaos. Our Chaos is, as it were, a
mineral earth (by virtue of its coagulation), and yet also volatile air -- in the
centre of which is the Heaven of the Sages, the Astral Centre. which with its light
irradiates the earth to its surface. What man is wise enough to evolve out of this
world a new King, who shall redeem his brothers from their natural weaknesses, by
dying, being lifted on high, and giving his flesh and blood for the life of the world ?
I thank Thee, O God, that Thou hast concealed these things from the wise and
prudent, and hast revealed them unto babes!
CHAPTER VI
Of the Air of the Sages
Our air, like the air of the firmament, divides the waters; and as the waters under
the firmament are visible to us mortals, while we are unable to see the waters
above the firmament, so in "our work" we see the extracentral mineral waters, but
are unable to see those which, though hidden within, nevertheless have a real
existence. They exist but do not appear until it please the Artist, as the author of
the New Light has testified. Our air keeps the extracentral waters from mingling
with those at the centre. If through the removal of this impediment, they were
enabled to mingle, their union would be indissoluble. Therefore the external
vapours and burning sulphur do stiffy adhere to our chaos, and unable to resist its
tyranny, the pure flies away from the fire in the form of a dry powder. This then
should be your great object. The arid earth must be irrigated, and its pores
softened with water of its own kind, then this thief with all the workers of iniquity
will be cast out, the water will be purged of its leprous stain by the addition of
true Sulphur, and you will have the Spring whose waters are sacred to the maiden
Queen Diana. This thief is armed with all the malignity of arsenic, and is feared
and eschewed by the winged youth. Though the Central Water be his Spouse, yet
the youth cannot come to her, until Diana with the wings of her doves purges the
poisonous air, and opens a passage to the bridal chamber. Then the youth enters
easily through the pores, presently shaking the waters above, and stirring up a
rude and ruddy cloud. Do thou, O Diana, bring in the water over him, even unto
the brightness of the Moon ! So the darkness on the face of the abyss will be
dispersed by the spirit moving in the waters. Thus, at the bidding of God, light will
appear on the Seventh Day, and then this sophic creating of Mercury shall be
completed, from which time, until the revolution of the year, you may wait for the
birth of the marvellous Child of the Sun, who will come to deliver his brethren
from every stain.
CHAPTER VII
Of the First Operation -- Preparation of Mercury by means of the Flying Eagles
Know, my brother, that the exact preparation of the Eagles of the Sages, is the
highest effort of our Art. In this first section of our work, nothing is to be done
without hard and persevering toil; though it is quite true that afterwards the
substance develops under the influence of gentle heat without any imposition of
hands. The Sages tell us that their Eagles must be taken to devour the Lion, and
that they gain the victory all the sooner if they are very numerous; also that the
number of the work varies between 7 and 9. The Mercury of the Sages is the Bird
of Hermes (now called a goose, now a pheasant). But the Eagles are always
mentioned in the plural, and number from 3 to lo. Yet this is not to be understood
as if there should be so many weights or parts of the water to one of the earth,
but the water must be taken so oftentimes acuated or sharpened as there are
Eagles numbered. This acuation is made by sublimation. There is, then, one
sublimation of the Mercury of the Sages, when one Eagle is mentioned, and the
seventh sublimation will so strengthen your Mercury, that the Bath of your King
will be ready... Let me tell you now how this part of the work is performed. Take 4
parts of our fiery Dragon, in whose belly is hidden the magic Chalybs, and 9 parts
of our Magnet; mingle them by means of a fierce fire, in the form of a mineral
water, the foam of which must be taken away. Remove the shell, and take the
kernel. Purge what remains once more by means of fire and the Sun, which may be
done easily if Saturn shall have seen himself in the mirror of Mars. Then you will
obtain our Chameleon, or Chaos, in which all the virtues of our Art are potentially
present. This is the infant Hermaphrodite, who, through the bite of a mad dog, has
been rendered so fearful of water, that though of a kindred nature, it always
eschews and avoids it. But in the grove of Diana are two doves that soothe its rabid
madness if applied by the art of the nymph Mercury. Take it and plunge it under
water till it perish therein; then the rabid and black dog will appear panting and
half suffocated -- drive him down with vigorous blows, and the darkness will be
dispelled. Give it wings when the Moon is full, and it will fly away as an Eagle,
leaving the doves of Diana dead (though, when first taken they should be living).
Repeat this seven times, and your work is done, the gentle coction which follows is
child's play and a woman's work.
CHAPTER VIII
Of the Difficulty and Length of the First Operation
Some Alchemists fancy that the work from beginning to end is a mere idle
entertainment; but those who make it so will reap what they have sown -- viz.,
nothing. We know that next to the Divine Blessing, and the discovery of the proper
CHAPTER IX
On the Superiority of our Mercury over All Metals
Our Mercury is that Serpent which devoured the companions of Cadmus, after
having first swallowed Cadmus himself, though he was far stronger than they. Yet
Cadmus will one day transfix this Serpent, when he has coagulated it with his
Sulphur. Know that this, our Mercury, is a King among metals, and dissolves them
by changing their Sulphur into a kindred mercurial substance. The Mercury of one,
two, or three eagles bears rule over Saturn, Jupiter, and Venus. The Mercury of
from three to seven eagles sways the Moon; that of ten eagles has power over the
Sun; our Mercury is nearer than any other unto the first ens of metals; it has power
to enter metallic bodies, and to manifest their hidden depths.
CHAPTER X
On the sulphur which is in the Mercury of the Sages
It is a marvellous fact that our Mercury contains active sulphur and yet preserves
the form and all the properties of Mercury. Hence it is necessary that a form be
introduced therein by our preparation, which form is a metallic sulphur. This
Sulphur is the inward fire which causes the putrefaction of the composite Sun. This
sulphureous fire is the spiritual seed which our Virgin (still remaining immaculate)
has conceived. For an uncorrupted virginity admits of a spiritual love, as
experience and authority affirm. The two (the passive and the active principle)
combined we call our Hermaphrodite. When joined to the Sun, it softens,
liquefies, and dissolves it with gentle heat. By means of the same fire it coagulates
itself; and by its coagulation produces the Sun. Our pure and homogeneous
Mercury, having conceived inward Sulphur (through our Art), coagulates itself
under the influence of gentle outward heat, like the cream of milk -- a subtle
earth floating on the water. When it is united to the Sun, it is not only not
coagulated, but the composite substance becomes softer day by day; the bodies
are almost dissolved; and the spirits begin to be coagulated, with a black colour
and a most fetid smell. Hence it appears that this spiritual metallic Sulphur is in
truth the moving principle in our Art; it is really volatile or unmatured gold, and
by proper digestion is changed into that metal. If joined to perfect gold, it is not
coagulated, but dissolves the corporal gold, and remains with it, being dissolved,
under one form, although before the perfect union death must precede, that so
they may he united after death, not simply in a perfect unity, but in a thousand
times more than perfect perfection.
CHAPTER XI
Concerning the Discovery of the Perfect Magistery
There are those who think that this Art was first discovered by Solomon, or rather
imparted to him by Divine Revelation. But though there is no reason for doubting
that so wise and profoundly learned a sovereign was acquainted with our Art, yet
we happen to know that he was not the first to acquire the knowledge. It was
possessed by Hermes, the Egyptian, and some other Sages before him; and we may
suppose that they first sought a simple exaltation of imperfect metals into regal
perfection, and that it was at first their endeavour to develop Mercury, which is
most like to gold in its weight and properties, into perfect gold. This, however, no
degree of ingenuity could effect by any fire, and the truth gradually broke on their
minds that an internal heat was required as well as an external one. So they
rejected aqua fortis and all corrosive solvents, after long experiments with the
same -- also all salts, except that kind which is the first substance of all salts,
which dissolves all metals and coagulates Mercury, but not without violence,
whence that kind of agent is again separated entire, both in weight and virtue,
from the things it is applied to. They saw that the digestion of Mercury was
prevented by certain aqueous crudities and earthy dross; and that the radical
nature of these impurities rendered their elimination impossible, except by the
complete inversion of the whole compound. They knew that Mercury would
become fixed if it could be freed from their defiling presence -- as it contains
fermenting sulphur, which is only hindered by these impurities from coagulating
the whole mercurial body. At length they discovered that Mercury, in the bowels of
the earth, was intended to become a metal, and that the process of development
was only stopped by the impurities with which it had become tainted. They found
that that which should be active in the Mercury was passive; and that its infirmity
could not be remedied by any means, except the introduction of some kindred
principle from without. Such a principle they discovered in metallic sulphur, which
stirred up the passive sulphur in the Mercury, and by allying itself with it, expelled
the aforesaid impurities. But in seeking to accomplish this practically, they were
met by another great difficulty. In order that this sulphur might be effectual in
purifying the Mercury, it was indispensable that it should itself be pure. All their
efforts to purify it, however, were doomed to failure. At length they bethought
them that it might possibly be found somewhere in Nature in a purified condition
-- and their search was crowned with success. They sought active sulphur in a pure
state, and found it cunningly concealed in the House of the Ram. This sulphur
mingled most eagerly with the offspring of Saturn, and the desired effect was
speedily produced -- after the malignant venom of the " air" of Mercury had been
tempered (as already set forth at some length) by the Doves of Venus. Then life
was joined to life by means of the liquid; the dry was moistened; the passive was
stirred into action by the active; the dead was revived by the living. The heavens
were indeed temporarily clouded over, but after a copious downpour of rain,
serenity was restored. Mercury emerged in a hermaphroditic state. Then they
placed it in the fire; in no long time they succeeded in coagulating it, and in its
coagulation they found the Sun and the Moon in a most pure state. Then they
considered that, before its coagulation, this Mercury was not a metal, since, on
being volatilised, it left no residue at the bottom of the distilling vessel; hence
they called it unmatured gold and their living (or quick) silver It also occurred to
them that if gold were sown, as it were, in the soil of its own first substance, its
excellence would probably be enhanced; and when they placed gold therein, the
fixed was volatilised, the hard softened, the coagulated dissolved, to the
amazement of Nature herself. For this reason they wedded these two to each
other, put them in a still over the fire, and for many days regulated the heat in
accordance with the requirements of Nature. Thus the dead was revived, the body
decayed, and a glorified spirit rose from the grave; the soul was exalted into the
Quintessence -- the Universal Medicine for animals, vegetables, and minerals.
CHAPTER XII
The Generic Method of Making the Perfect Magistery
The greatest secret of our operation is no other than a cohobation of the nature of
one thing above the other, until the most digested virtue be extracted out of the
digested body of the crude one. But there are hereto requisite: Firstly, an exact
measurement and preparation of the ingredients required; secondly, an exact
fulfilment of all external conditions; thirdly a proper regulation of the fire;
fourthly, a good knowledge of the natural properties of the substances; and fifthly,
patience, in order that the work may not be marred by overgreat haste. Of all
these points we will now speak in their proper order.
CHAPTER XIII
Of the Use of Mature Sulphur in the Work of the Elixir
We have spoken of the need of Mercury, and have described its properties more
plainly and straightforwardly than has ever been done before. God knows that we
do not grudge the knowledge of this Art to our brother men; and we are not afraid
that it can ever become the property of any unworthy person. So long as the secret
is possessed by a comparatively small number of philosophers, their lot is anything
but a bright and happy one; surrounded as we are on every side by the cruel greed
and -- the prying suspicion of the multitude, we are doomed, like Cain, to wander
over the earth homeless and friendless. Not for us are X the soothing influences of
domestic happiness; not for us the delightful confidences of friendship. Men who
covet our golden secret pursue us from place to place, and fear closes our lips,
when love tempts us to open ourselves freely to a brother. Thus we feel prompted
at times to burst forth into the desolate exclamation of Cain: "Whoever finds me
will slay me." Yet we are not the murderers of our brethren; we are anxious only
to do good to our fellow-men. But even our kindness and charitable compassion
are rewarded with black ingratitude- ingratitude that cries to heaven for
vengeance. It was only a short time ago that, after visiting the plague-stricken
haunts of a certain city, and restoring the sick to perfect health by means of my
miraculous medicine, I found myself surrounded by a yelling mob, who demanded
that I should give to them my Elixir of the Sages; and it was only by changing my
dress and my name, by shaving off my beard and putting on a wig, that I was
enabled to save my life, and escape from the hands of those wicked men. And
even when our lives are not threatened, it is not pleasant to find-ourselves,
wherever we go, the central objects of human greed... I know of several persons
who were found strangled in their beds, simply because they were suspected of
possessing this secret, though, in reality, they knew no more about it than their
murderers; it was enough for some desperate ruffians, that a mere whisper of
suspicion had been breathed against their victims. Men are so eager to have this
Medicine that your very caution will arouse their suspicions, and endanger your
safety. Again, if you desire to sell any large quantity of your gold and silver, you
will be unable to do so without imminent risk of discovery. The very fact that
anyone has a great mass of bullion for sale would in most places excite suspicion.
This feeling will be strengthened when people test the quality of our gold; for it is
much finer and purer than any of the gold which is brought from Barbary, or from
the Guinea Coast; and our silver is better even than that which is conveyed home
by the Spanish silver fleet. If, in order to baffle discovery, you mix these precious
metals with alloy, you render yourself liable, in England and- Holland at least, to
capital punishment; for in those countries no one is permitted to tamper with the
precious metals except the officers of the mint, and the licensed goldsmiths. I
remember once going, in the disguise of a foreign merchant to a goldsmith's shop,
and offering him 600 pounds worth of our pure silver for sale. He subjected it to
the usual tests, and then said: "This silver is artificially prepared." When I asked
him why he thought so, his answer was: "I am not a novice in my profession, and
know very well the exact quality of the silver which is brought from the different
mines." When I heard these words I took myself away with great secrecy and
dispatch, leaving the silver in the hands of the goldsmith. On this account, and by
reason of the many and great difficulties which beset us, the possessors of this
Stone, on every side, we do elect to remain hidden, and will communicate the Art
to those who are worthily covetous of our secrets, and then mark what public good
will befall. Without Sulphur, our Mercury would never be properly coagulated for
our supernatural work; it is the male substance, while Mercury may be called the
female; and all Sages say that no tincture can be made without its latten, which
latten is gold, without any double speaking. Wise men, notwithstanding, can find
this substance even on the dunghill; but the ignorant are unable to discern it even
in gold. The tincture of gold is concealed in the gold of the Sages, which is the
most highly matured of bodies; but as a raw material it exists only in our Mercury;
and it (gold) receives from Mercury the multiplication of its seed, but in virtue
rather than in weight. The Sages say that common gold is dead, while their's is
living; and common gold is dead in the same sense in which a grain of wheat is
dead, while it is surrounded by dry air; and comes to life, swells, softens, and
germinates only when it is put into moist earth. In this sense gold, too, is dead, so
long as it is surrounded by the corporeal husk, always allowing, of course, for the
great difference between a vegetable grain and metallic gold. Our grain is
quickened in water only; and as wheat, while it remains in the barn is called grain,
and is not destined to be quickened, because it is to be used for bread making --
but changes its name, when it is sown in the field, and is then called seedcorn; so
our gold, while it is in the form of rings, plate, and coins, is called common gold,
because in that state it is likely to remain unchanged to the end of the world; but
potentially it is even then the gold of the Sages, because if sown in its own proper
element, it would in a few days become the Chaos of the Sages. Hence the Sages
bid you revive the dead (i.e., the gold which already appeared doomed to a living
death) and mortify the living, i.e., the Mercury which, imparting life to the gold, is
itself deprived of the vital principle. Their gold is taken in a dead, their water in a
living, state, and by their composition and brief coction, the dead gold revives and
the living Mercury dies, i.e., the spirit is coagulated, the body is dissolved, and
thus both putrefy together, until all the members of the compound are torn into
atoms. The mystery of our Art, which we conceal with so great care, is the
preparation of the Mercury, which above ground is not to be found made ready to
our hand. But when it is prepared, it is "our water" in which gold is dissolved,
whereby the latent life of the gold is set free, and receives the life of the
dissolving Mercury, which is to gold what good earth is to the grain of wheat. When
the gold has putrefied in the Mercury, there arises out of the decomposition of
death a new body, of the same essence, but of a glorified substance. Here you
have the whole of our Philosophy in a nutshell. There is no secret about it, except
the preparation of Mercury, its mingling with the gold in the right proportions, and
the regulation of the fire in accordance with its requirements. Gold by itself does
not fear the fire; hence the great point is, to temper the heat to the capacity of
the Mercury. If the Mercury is not properly prepared, the gold remains common
gold, being joined with an improper agent; it continues unchanged, and no degree
of heat will help it to put off its corporeal nature. Without our Mercury the seed
(i.e., gold) cannot be sown; and if gold is not sown in its proper element, it cannot
be quickened any more than the corn which the West Indians keep underground, in
air-tight stone jars, can germinate. I know that some self-constituted "Sages" will
take exception to this teaching, and say that common gold and running Mercury
are not the substance of our Stone. But one question will suffice to silence their
objections: Have they ever actually prepared our Tincture? I have prepared it more
than once, and daily have it in my power; hence I may perhaps be permitted to
speak as one having authority. Go on babbling about your rain water collected in
May, your Salts, your sperm which is more potent than the foul fiend himself, ye
self-styled philosophers; rail at me, if you like; all you say is conclusively refuted
by this one fact -- you cannot make the Stone. When I say that gold and Mercury
are the only substances of our Stone I know what I am writing about; and the
Searcher of all hearts knows also that I say true. The time has arrived when we
may speak more freely about this Art. For Elias the artist is at hand, and glorious
things are already spoken of the City of God. I possess wealth sufficient to buy the
whole world -- but as yet I may not use it on account of the craft and cruelty of
wicked men. It is not from jealousy that I conceal as much as I do: God knows that
I am weary of this lonely, wandering life, shut out from the bonds of friendship,
and almost from the face of God. I do not worship the golden calf, before which
our Israelites bow low to the ground; let it be ground to powder like the brazen
serpent. I hope that in a few years gold (not as given by God, but as abused by
man) will be so common that those who are now so mad after it, shall
contemotuously spurn aside this bulwark of Antichrist. Then will tie day of our
deliverance be at hand when the streets of the new Jerusalem are paved with
gold, and its gates are made of great diamonds. The day is at hand when, by
means of this my Book, gold will have become as common as dirt; when we Sages
shall find rest for the soles of our feet, and render fervent thanks to God. My heart
conceives unspeakable things, and is enlarged for the good of the Israel of God.
These words I utter forth with a herald's clarion tones. My Book is the precursor of
Elias, designed to prepare the Royal way of the Master; and would to God that by
its means all men might become adepts in our Art -- for then gold, the great idol of
mankind, would lose its value, and we should prize it only for its scientific
teaching. Virtue would be loved for its own sake. I am familiar with many
possessors of this Art who regard silence as the great point of honour. But I have
been enabled by God to take a different view of the matter; and I firmly believe
that I can best serve the Israel of God, and put my talent out at usury, by making
this secret knowledge the common property of the whole world. Hence I have not
conferred with flesh and blood, nor attempted to obtain the consent of my Brother
Sages. If the matter succeeds according to my desire and prayer, they will all
rejoice that I have published this Book.
CHAPTER XIV
Of the Circumstantial and Accidental Requisites of our Art
We have weeded out all vulgar errors concerning our Art, and have shewn that gold
and Mercury are the only substances required. We have shewn that this gold is to
be understood, not metaphorically, but in a truly philosophical sense. We have also
declared our Mercury to be true quicksilver, without any ambiguity of acceptation.
The latter, we have told you, must be made by art, and be a key to the former.
We have made everything as clear as noonday; and our teaching is based, not on
hearsay, or on the writings of others, but on our own personal and oft repeated
experience. The things we faithfully declare are what we have both seen and
known. We have made and do possess the Stone -- the great Elixir. Moreover, we
do not grudge you this knowledge, but wish you to attain it out of this Book. We
have spoken out more plainly than any of our predecessors; and our Receipt, apart
from the fact that we have not called things by their proper names, is perfectly
trustworthy. It remains for us to give you some practical tests by which the
goodness or unsuitableness of your Mercury may be known. and some directions for
amending its defects. When you have living Mercury and gold, there remains to be
accomplished, first, the purging of the Mercury and the gold, then their espousal,
and finally the regulation of the fire.
CHAPTER XV
Of the Incidental Purging of Mercury and Gold
Perfect gold is found in the bowels of the earth in little pieces, or in sand. If you
can meet with this unmixed gold, it is pure enough; if not, purge it with antimony
or royal cement, or boil it with aqua fortis, the gold being first granulated. Then
smelt it, remove the impure sediment, and it is ready. But Mercury needs inward
and essential purging. which radical cleansing is brought about by the addition of
true Sulphur, little by little, according to the number of the Eagles. Then it also
needs an incidental purgation for the purpose of removing from its surface the
impurities which have, by the essential purgation, been ejected from the centre.
This process is not absolutely necessary, but it is useful, as it accelerates the
work. Therefore, take your Mercury, which you have purified with a suitable
number of Eagles, sublime it three times with common salt and iron filings, and
wash it with vinegar and a moderate quantity of salts of ammonia, then dry and
distil in a glass retort, over a gradually increasing fire, until the whole of the
Mercury has ascended. Repeat this four times, then boil the Mercury in spirits of
vinegar for an hour, stirring it constantly. Then pour off the vinegar, and wash off
its acidity by a plentiful effusion of spring water. Dry the Mercury, and its
splendour will be wonderful. You may wash it with wine, or vinegar and salt, and
so spare the sublimation; but then distil it at least four times without addition,
after you have perfected all the eagles, or washings, washing the chalybeat retort
every time with ashes and water; then boil it in distilled vinegar for half a day,
stirring it strongly at times. Pour off the blackish vinegar, add new, then wash with
warm water. This process is designed to purge away the internal impurities from
the surface. These impurities you may perceive if, on mixing Mercury with purest
gold, you place the amalgam on a white sheet of paper. The sooty blackness which
is then seen on the paper is purged away by this process.
CHAPTER XVI
Of the Amalgam of Mercury and Gold, and of their respective Proportions
When you have done all this, take one part of pure and laminated gold, or fine
gold filings, and two parts of Mercury; put them in a heated (marble) jar, i.e.,
heaved with boiling water, being taken out of which it dries quickly, and holds the
heat a long time. Grind with an ivory, or glass, or stone, or iron, or boxwood pestle
(the iron pestle is not so good; I use a pestle of crystal): pound them, I say, as
small as the painters grind their colours; then add water so as to make the mass as
consistent as half melted butter. The mixture should be fixable and soft, and
permit itself to be moulded into little globules -- like moderately soft butter; it
should be of such a consistency as to yield to the gentlest touch. Moreover, it
should be of the same temperature throughout, and one part should not be more
liquid than another. The mixture will be more or less soft, according to the
proportion of Mercury which it contains; but it must be capable of forming into
those little globules, and the Mercury should not be more lively at the bottom than
at the top. If the amalgam be left undisturbed, it will at once harden; you must
therefore judge of the merits of the mixture, while you are stirring it; if it fulfils
the above conditions, it is good Then take spirit of vinegar, and dissolve in it a
third part of salt of ammonia, put the amalgam into this liquid, let the whole boil
for a quarter-of-an-hour in a long necked glass vessel; then take the mixture out of
the glass vessel, pour off the liquid, heat the mortar, and pound the amalgam (as
above) vigorously, and wash away all blackness with hot water. Put it again into
the liquid, let it boil up once more in the glass vessel, pound it as before, and
wash it. Repeat this process until the blackness is entirely purged out. The
amalgam will then be as brilliant and white as the purest silver. Once more
regulate the temperature of the amalgam according to the rules given above; your
labour will be richly rewarded. If the amalgam be not quite soft enough, add a
little Mercury. Then boil it in pure water, and free it from all saltness and acidity.
Pour off the water, and dry the amalgam. Make quite sure that it is thoroughly
dried, by waving it to and fro on the point of a knife over a sheet of white paper.
CHAPTER XVII
Concerning the Size, Form, Material, and Mode of Securing the Vessel
Let your glass distilling vessel be round or oval; large enough to hold neither more
nor much less than an ounce of distilled water in the body thereof. Let the height
of the vessel's neck be about one palm, hand-breath, or span, and let the glass be
clear and thick (the thicker the better, so long as it is clear and clean, and permits
you to distinguish what is going on within) -- but the thickness should be uniform.
The substance which will go into this vessel consists of 1/2 oz. of gold, and one oz.
of mercury; and if you have to add 1/3 oz. of mercury, the whole compound will
still be less than 2 oz. The glass should be strong in order to prevent the vapours
which arise from our embryo bursting the vessel. Let the mouth of the vessel be
very carefully and effectually secured by means of a thick layer of sealing-wax.
The utensils and the materials required are not then very expensive -- and if you
use my thick distilling-vessel you will avoid loss by breakage. The other
instruments that are requisite are not dear. I know that many will take exception
to this statement; they will say that the pursuit of our Art is a matter of all but
ruinous expense. But my answer consists in a simple question: What is the object
of our Art? Is it not to make the Philosopher's Stone -- to find the liquid in which
gold melts like ice in tepid water? And do those good people who are so eager in
their search after "Mercury of the Sun," and "Mercury of the Moon," and who pay so
high a price for their materials, ever succeed in this object? They cannot answer
this question in the affirmative. One florin will buy enough of the substance of our
water to quicken two pounds of mercury, and make it the true Mercury of the
Sages. But, of course, glass vessels, coals, earthen vessels, a furnace, iron vessels,
and other instruments, cannot be bought for nothing. Without a perfect body, our
ore, viz., gold, there can be no Tincture, and our Stone is at first vile, immature,
and volatile, but when complete it is perfect, precious, and fixed. These two
aspects of our Stone are the body, gold, and the spirit, or quicksilver.
CHAPTER XVIII
Of the Furnace or Athanor of the Sages
I have spoken about Mercury, Sulphur, the vessel, their treatment, etc. etc.; and,
of course, all these things are to be understood with a grain of salt. You must
understand that in the preceding chapters I have spoken metaphorically; if you
take my words in a literal sense, you will reap no harvest except your outlay. For
instance, when I name the principal substances Mercury and gold -- I do not mean
common gold in the state in which it is sold at the goldsmiths -- but it must be
prepared by means of our Art You may find our gold in common gold and silver, but
it is easier to make the Stone than to get its first substance out of common gold.
"Our gold" is the Chaos whose soul has not been taken away by fire. The soul of
common gold has retired before the fiery tyranny of Vulcan into the inmost
citadel. If you seek our gold in a substance intermediate between perfection and
imperfection, you will find it: but otherwise, you must unbar the gates of common
gold by the first preparatory process (ch. xv.), by which the charm of its body is
broken, and the husband enabled to do his work. If you choose the former course,
you shall use only gentle heat; in the latter case, you will require a fierce fire. But
here you will be hopelessly lost in a labyrinth, if you do not know your way out of
it. But whether you choose our gold, or common gold, you will in either case need
an even and continual fire. If you take our gold, you will finish the work a few
months sooner, and the Elixir will be ten times more precious than that prepared
from common gold. If you work with "our gold," you will be assisted in its
calcination, putrefaction, and dealbation by its gentle inward (natural) heat. But
in the case of common gold, this heat has to be applied externally by foreign
substances, so as to render it fit for union with the Virgin's Milk. In neither case,
however, can anything be effected without the aid of fire. It was not, then, in vain
that Hermes counts fire next to the Sun and Moon as the governor of the work. But
this is to be under stood of the truly secret furnace, which a vulgar eye never saw.
There is also another furnace, which is called our common furnace, made of
potter's earth, or of iron and brass plates, well compacted with clay. This furnace
we call Athanor, and the shape which I like best is that of a tower with a "nest" at
the top. The "tower" should be about three feet high, and nine fingers wide within
the plates. A little above the ground, let there be a little opening of about three
or four fingers wide, for removing the cinders; over that, there should be a
fire-place built with stones. Above this, we place the furnace itself, which should
be such as to exclude all draughts and currents of air. The coals are put in from
above, and the aperture should then be carefully closed. But it is not necessary
that your furnace should exactly correspond to the description which I have given
so long as it fulfils the following conditions: firstly, it must be free from draughts;
secondly, it must enable you to vary the temperature, without removing your
vessel; thirdly, you must be able to keep up in it a fire for ten or twelve hours,
without looking to it. Then the door of our Art will be opened to you; and when
you have prepared the Stone, you may procure a small portable stove, for the
purpose of multiplying it.
CHAPTER XIX
Of the Progress of the Work during the First Forty Days
When you have prepared our gold and Mercury in the manner described, put it into
our vessel, and subject it to the action of our fire; within 40 days you will see the
whole substance converted into atoms, without any visible motion, or perceptible
heat (except that it is just warm). If you do not yet rightly know the meaning of
"our gold," take one part of common gold (well purified), and three parts of our
Mercury (thoroughly purged), put them together as directed (cap. xvi), place them
over the fire, and there keep them at the boiling point, till they sweat, and their
sweat circulates. At the end of 90 days you will find that the Mercury has
separated and reunited all the elements of the common gold. Boil the mixture 50
days longer, and you will discover that our Mercury has changed the common gold
into "our gold," which is the Medicine of the first order. It is already our Sulphur,
but it has not yet the power of tinging. This method has been followed by many
Sages, but it is exceedingly slow and tedious, and is only for the rich of the earth.
Moreover, when you have got this Sulphur do not think that you possess the Stone,
but only its true Matter, which you may seek in an imperfect thing, and find it
within a week, by our easy yet rare way, reserved of God for His poor, contemned,
and abject saints. Hereof I have now determined to write much, although in the
beginning of this Book I decreed to bury it in silence. This is the one great sophism
of all adepts; some speak of this common gold and silver, and say the truth, and
others say that we cannot use it, and they too, say the truth. But in the presence
of God I will call all our adepts to account, and charge them with jealous surliness.
I, too, had determined to tread the same path, but God's hand confounded my
scheme. I say then, that both ways are true, and come to the same thing in the
end -- but there is a vast difference at the beginning. Our whole Art consists in the
right preparation of our Mercury and our gold. Our Mercury is our way, and without
it nothing is effected. Our gold is not common gold, but it may be found in it; and
if you operate on our Mercury with common gold (regulating the fire in the right
way), you will after 150 days have our gold, since our gold is obtained from our
Mercury. Hence if common gold have all its atoms thoroughly severed by means of
our Mercury, and then reunited by the same agency, the whole mixture will, under
the influence of fire, become our gold. But, if, without this preparatory purging,
you were to use common gold with our Mercury for the purpose of preparing the
Stone, you would be sadly mistaken; and this is the great Labyrinth in which most
beginners go astray, because the Sages in writing of these ways as two ways,
purposely obscure the fact that they are only one way (though of course the one is
more direct than the other). The gold of the Sages may then be prepared out of
our common gold and our Mercury, from which there may afterwards be obtained
by repeated liquefactions, Sulphur and Quicksilver which is incombustible, and
tinges all things else. In this sense, our Stone is to be found in all metals and
minerals, since our gold may be got from them all -- but most easily, of course,
from gold and silver. Some have found it in tin, some in lead, but most of those
who have pursued the more tedious method, have found it in gold. Of course, if
our gold be prepared in the way I have described, out of common gold (in the
course of 150 days), instead of being found ready made, it will not be so effectual,
and the preparation of the Stone will take 1 1/2 years instead of 7 months. I know
both ways, and prefer the shorter one; but I have described the longer one as well
in order that I may not draw down upon myself the scathing wrath of the "Sages."
The great difficulty which discourages all beginners is not of Nature's making: the
Sages have created it by speaking of the longer operation when they mean the
shorter one, and vice versa. If you choose common gold, you should espouse it to
Venus (copper), lay them together on the bridal bed, and, on bringing a fierce fire
to bear on them, you will see an emblem of the Great Work in the following
succession of colours: black, the peacock's tail, white, orange, and red. Then
repeat the same operation with Mercury (called Virgin's Milk), using the "fire of the
Bath of Dew," and (towards the end) sand mixed with ashes. The substance will
first turn a much deeper black, and then a completer white and red. Hence if you
know our Art, extract our gold from our Mercury (this is the shorter way), and thus
perform the whole operation with one substance (viz., Mercury); if you can do this,
you will have attained to the perfection of philosophy. In this method, there is no
superfluous trouble: the whole work, from beginning to end, is based upon one
broad foundation -- whereas if you take common gold, you must operate on two
substances, and both will have to be purified by an elaborate process. If you
diligently consider what I have said, you have in your hand a means of unravelling
all the apparent contradictions of the Sages. They speak of three operations: the
first, by which the inward natural heat expels all cold through the aid of external
fire, the second, wherein gold is purged with our Mercury, through the mediation
of Venus, and under the influence of a fierce fire; the third, in which common gold
is mixed with our Mercury, and the ferment of Sulphur added. But if you will
receive my advice, you will not be put out by any wilful obscurity on the part of
the Sages. Our sulphur you should indeed strive to discover; and if God enlightens
you, you will find it in our Mercury. Before the living God I swear that my teaching
is true. If you operate on Mercury and pure common gold, you may find "our gold"
in 7 to 9 months, and "our silver" in 5 months. But when you have these, you have
not yet prepared our Stone: that glorious sight will not gladden your eyes until you
have been at work for a year-and-a-half. By that time you may obtain the elixir by
subjecting the substance to very gentle continuous heat.
CHAPTER XX
Of the Appearance of Blackness in the Work of the Sun and Moon
If you operate on gold and silver, for the purpose of finding our Sulphur, let your
substance first become like a thin paste, or boiling water, or liquid pitch; for the
operation of our gold and Mercury is prefigured by that which happens in the
preparation of common gold with our Mercury. Take your substance and place it in
the furnace, regulate the fire properly for the space of twenty days, in which time
you will observe various colours, and about the end of the fourth week, if the fire
be continuous, you will see a most amiable greenness, which will last for about ten
days. Then rejoice, for in a short time it will be as a black coal, and your whole
compound shall be reduced to atoms. The operation is a resolution of the fixed
into the not fixed that both afterwards, being conjoined, may make one matter,
partly spiritual and partly corporal. Once more, I assure you, the regulation of the
fire is the only thing that I have hidden from you. Given the proper-regimen, take
the Stone, govern it as you know how, and then these wonderful phenomena will
follow: The fire will at once dissolve the Mercury and the Sulphur like wax; the
Sulphur will be burnt, and change its colours from day to day; the Mercury will
prove incombustible, and only be gradually tinged (and purified, without being
infected) with the colours of the Sulphur. Let the heaven stoop to the earth, till
the latter has conceived heavenly seed. When you see the substances mingle in
your distilling vessel, and assume the appearance of clotted and burnt blood, be
sure that the female has received the seed of the male. About seventeen days
afterwards your substance will begin to wear a yellow, thick, misty, or foamy
appearance. At this time, you must take care not to let the embryo escape from
your vessel; for it will give out a greenish, yellow, black, and bluish vapour and
strive to burst the vessel. If you allow these vapours (which are continuous when
the Embryo is formed) to escape, your work will be hopelessly marred. Nor should
you allow any of the odour to make its way through any little hole or outlet; for
the evaporation would considerably weaken the strength of the Stone. Hence the
true Sage seals up the mouth of his vessel most carefully. Let me advise you,
moreover, not to neglect your fire, or move or open the vessel, or slacken the
process of decoction, until you find that the quantity of the liquid begins to
diminish; if this happens after thirty days, rejoice, and know that you are on the
right road. Then be doubly careful, and you will, at the end of another fortnight,
find that the earth has become quite dry and of a deep black. This is the death of
the compound; the winds have ceased, and there is a great calm. This is that great
simultaneous eclipse of the Sun and Moon, when the Sea also has disappeared. Our
Chaos is then ready, from which, at the bidding of God, all the wonders of the
world may successively emerge.
CHAPTER XXI
Of the Caution required to avoid Burning the Flowers
The burning of the flowers is fatal, yet soon committed: it is chiefly to be guarded
against after the lapse of the third week. In the beginning there is so much
moisture that if the fire be too fierce it will dry up the liquid too quickly, and you
will prematurely obtain a dry red powder, from which the principle of life has
flown; if the fire be not strong enough the substance will not be properly matured.
Too powerful a fire prevents the true union of the substances. True union only
takes place in water. Bodies collide, but do not unite; only liquids (and spirits) can
truly mingle their substance. Hence our homogeneous metallic water must be
allowed to do its work properly, and should not be dried up, until this perfect
mutual absorption has taken place in a natural manner. Premature drying only
destroys the germ of life, strikes the active principle on the head as with a
hammer, and renders it passive. A red powder is indeed produced, but long before
the time: for redness should be preceded by blackness. It is true that, in the
beginning of our work, when heaven is wedded to earth, and earth conceives the
fire of nature, a red colour does appear. But the substance is then sufficiently
moist; and the redness soon gives way to a green colour, which in its turn gradually
yields to blackness. Do not be in a hurry; let your fire be just powerful enough, but
not too powerful; steer a straight course between Scylla and Charybdis: you will
behold in your vessel a variety of colours and grotesque transformations -- until
the substance settles down into a powder of intense blackness. This should happen
within the first fifty days. If it does not, either your Mercury, or the regulation of
your fire, or the composition of your substance is at fault -- if, indeed, you have
not moved or shaken your glass vessel.
CHAPTER XXII
Of the Regimen of Saturn
All the Sages who have written on our Art, have spoken of the work and regimen of
Saturn; and their remarks have led many to choose common lead as the substance
of the Stone. But you should know that our Saturn, or lead, is a much nobler
substance than gold. It is the living earth in which the soul of gold is joined to
Mercury, that they may bring forth Adam and his wife Eve. Wherefore, since the
highest has so lowered itself as to become the lowest, we may expect that its
blood may be the means of redeeming all its brethren. The Tomb in which our King
is buried, is that which we call Saturn, and it is the key of the work of
transmutation; happy is he who can salute this planet, and call it by its right
name. It is a boon which is obtained by the blessing of God alone; it is not of him
that willeth, or of him that runneth; but God bestoweth it on whom He will.
CHAPTER XXIII
Of the different Regimens of this Work
Let me assure you that in our whole work there is nothing hidden but the regimen,
of which it was truly said by the Sage that whoever knows it perfectly will be
honoured by princes and potentates. I tell you plainly that if this one point were
clearly set forth, our Art would become mere women's work and child's play: there
would be nothing in it but a simple process of "cooking." Hence it has always been
most carefully concealed by the Sages. But I have determined to write in a more
sympathetic and kindly spirit: know then that our regimen throughout consists in
coction and digestion, but that it implies a good many other processes, which
those jealous Sages have made to appear different by describing them under
different names. But we intend to speak more openly in regard to this subject.
CHAPTER XXIV
Of the First Regimen, which is that of Mercury
This first regimen has been studiously kept secret by all the Sages. They have
spoken of the second regimen, or that of Saturn, as if it were the first, and have
thus left the student without guidance in those operations which precede the
appearance of that intense blackness. Count Bernard, of Trevisa, says, in his
Parable, that When the King has come to the Fountain, he takes off the golden
garment, gives it to Saturn, and enters the bath alone, afterwards receiving from
Saturn a robe of black silk. But he does not tell us how long it takes to put off that
golden robe; and thus, like all his brethren, leaves the poor beginner to grope in
the dark during 40 or 50 days. From the point where the stage of blackness is
reached to the end of the work their directions are more full and intelligible. It is
in regard to these first 40 days that the student requires additional light. This
period represents the regimen of Mercury (of the Sages), which is alone active
during the whole time, the other substance being temporarily dead. You should
not suffer yourself to be deluded into the belief that when your matters are
joined, namely, our Sun and Mercury, the "setting of the Sun" can be brought about
in a few days. We ourselves waited a tedious time before a reconciliation was
made between the fire and the water. As a matter of fact, the Sages have called
the substance, throughout this first period, Rebis, or Two-thing: to shew that the
union is not effected till the operation is complete. You should know, then, that
though our Mercury consumes the Sun, yet a year after you shall separate them,
unless they are connected together by a suitable degree of fire. It is not able to do
anything at all without fire. We must not suppose that when our gold is placed in
our Mercury it is swallowed up by it in the twinkling of an eye. This conception
rests on a misunderstanding of Count Bernard's teaching about the King's plunge in
the fountain. But the solution of gold is a more difficult matter than these gentry
appear to have any idea of. It requires the highest skill so to regulate the fire in
the first stage of the work as to solve the bodies without injuring the tincture.
Attend to my teaching therefore. Take the body which I have shewed you, put it
into the water of our sea, and bring to bear on the compound the proper degree of
heat, till dews and mists begin to ascend, and the moisture is diminished night and
day without intermission. Know that at first the two do not affect each other at
all, and that only in course of time the body absorbs some of the water, and thus
causes each to partake of the other's nature. Only part of the water is sublimed;
the rest gradually penetrates the pores of the body, which are thereby more and
more softened, till the soul of the gold is enabled gently to pass out. Through the
mediation of the soul the body is reconciled and united to the spirit, and their
union is signalized by the appearance of the black colour. The whole operation
lasts about 40-50 days, and is called the Regimen of Mercury, because the body is
passive throughout, and the spirit, or Mercury, brings about all the changes of
colour, which begin to appear about the 20th day, and gradually intensify till all be
at last completed in black of the deepest dye, which the both day will manifest.
CHAPTER XXV
The Regimen of the Second Part, which is that of Saturn
The Regimen of Mercury, the operation whereof despoils the King of his golden
garments, is followed by the Regimen of Saturn. When the Lion dies the Crow is
born. The substance has now become of a uniform colour, namely, as black as
pitch, and neither vapours, or winds, or any other signs of life are seen; the whole
is dry as dust, with the exception of some pitch-like substance, which now and
then bubbles up; all presents an image of eternal death. Nevertheless, it is a sight
which gladdens the heart of the Sage. For the black colour which is seen is bright
and brilliant; and if you behold something like a thin paste bubbling up here and
there, you may rejoice. For it is the work of the quickening spirit, which will soon
restore the dead bodies to life. The regulation of the fire is a matter of great
importance at this juncture; if you make it too fierce, and thus cause sublimation
at this stage, everything will be irrecoverably spoilt. Be content, therefore, to
remain, as it were, in prison for forty days and nights, even as was the good
Trevisan, and employ only gentle heat. Let your delicate substance remain at the
bottom, which is the womb of conception, in the sure hope that after the time
appointed by the Creator for this Operation, the spirit will arise in a glorified
state, and glorify its body -- that it will ascend and be gently circulated from the
centre to the heavens, then descend to the centre from the heavens, and take to
itself the power of things above and things below.
CHAPTER XXVI
Of the Regimen of Jupiter
Black Saturn is succeeded by Jupiter, who exhibits divers colours. For after the
putrefaction and conception, which has taken place at the bottom of the vessel,
there is once more a change of colours and a circulating sublimation. This Reign or
Regimen, lasts only three weeks. During this period you see all conceivable colours
concerning which no definite account can be given. The "showers" that fall will
become more numerous as the close of this reign approaches, and its termination
is signalized by the appearance of a snowy white streaky deposit on the sides of
the vessel. Rejoice, then, for you have successfully accomplished the regimen of
Jupiter. What you must be particularly careful about in this operation, is to
prevent the young ones of the Crow from going back to the nest when they have
once left it; secondly, to let your earth get neither too dry by an immoderate
sublimation of the moisture, nor yet to swamp and smother it with the moisture.
These ends will be attained by the proper regulation of the outward heat.
CHAPTER XXVII
Of the Regimen of the Moon
When the Reign of Jupiter comes to an end (towards the close of the fourth
month) you will see the sign of the waxing moon (Crescent), and know that the
whole Reign of Jupiter was devoted to the purification of the Laton. The
mundifying spirit is very pure and brilliant, but the body that has to be cleansed is
intensely black. While it passes from blackness to whiteness, a great variety of
colours are observed; nor is it at once perfectly white; at first it is simply white --
afterwards it is of a dazzling, snowy splendour. Under this Reign the whole mass
presents the appearance of liquid quicksilver. This is called the sealing of the
mother in the belly of the infant whom she bears; and its intermediate colours are
more white than black, just as in the Reign of Jupiter they were more black than
white. The Reign of the Moon lasts just three weeks; but before its close, the
substance exhibits a great variety of forms; it will become liquid, and again
coagulate a hundred times a day; sometimes it will present the appearance of
fishes' eyes, and then again of tiny silver trees, with twigs and leaves. Whenever
you look at it you will have cause for astonishment, particularly when you see it all
divided into beautiful but very minute grains of silver, like the rays of the Sun.
This is the White Tincture, glorious to behold, but nothing in respect of what it
may become.
CHAPTER XXVIII
Of the Regimen of Venus
The substance, if left in the same vessel, will once more become volatile and
(though already perfect in its way) will undergo another change. But if you take it
out of the vessel, and after allowing it to cool, put it into another, you will not be
able to make anything of it. In this Reign you should also give careful attention to
your fire. For the perfect Stone is fusible and if the fire be too powerful the
substance will become glazed, and unsusceptible of any further change. This
"vitrification" of the substance may happen at any time from the middle of the
Reign of the Moon to the tenth day of the Reign of Venus, and should be carefully
guarded against. The heat should be gentle so as to melt the compound very slowly
and gradually; it will then raise bubbles, and receive a spirit that will rise upward,
carrying the Stone with it, and imparting to it new colours, especially a
copper-green colour, which endures for some time, and does not quite disappear
till the twentieth day; the next change is to blue and livid, and at the close of this
Reign the colour is a pale purple. DO not irritate the spirit too much -- it is more
corporeal than before, and if you sublime it to the top of the vessel, it will hardly
return. The same caution should be observed in the Reign of the Moon, when the
substance begins to thicken. The law is one of mildness, and not of violence, lest
everything should rise to the top of the vessel, and be consumed or vitrified to the
ruin of the whole work. When you see the green colour, know that the substance
now contains the germ of its highest life. DO not turn the greenness into blackness
by immoderate heat. This Reign is maintained for forty days.
CHAPTER XXIX
Of the Regimen of Mars
When the Regimen of Venus is over, and therein has appeared the philosophical
tree, with all its branches and leaves, the Reign of Mars begins with a light yellow,
or dirty brown colour, but at last exhibits the transitory hues of the Rainbow, and
the Peacock's Tail. At this stage the compound is drier, and often shews like a
hyacinth with a tinge of gold. The mother being now sealed in her infant's belly,
swells and is purified, but because of the present great purity of the compound, no
putridness can have place in this regimen, but Some obscure colours are chief
actors, while some middle colours come and go, and they are pleasant to look on.
Our Virgin Earth is now undergoing the last degree of its cultivation, and is getting
ready to receive and mature the fruit of the Sun. Hence you should Weep up a
moderate temperature; then there will be seen, about the thirtieth day of this
Reign, an orange colour, which, within two weeks from its first appearance, will
tinge the whole substance with its own hue.
CHAPTER XXX
Of the Regimen of the Sun
As you are now approaching the end of the work, the substance receives a golden
tinge, and the Virgin's Milk which you give your substance to drink has assumed a
deep orange colour. Pray to God to keep you from haste and impatience at this
stage of the work; consider that you have now waited for seven months, and that
it would be foolish to let one hour rob you of the fruits of all your labour.
Therefore be more and more careful the nearer you approach perfection. Then you
will first observe an orange-coloured sweat breaking out on the body; next there
will be vapour of an orange hue. Soon the body below becomes tinged with violet
and a darkish purple. At the end of fourteen or fifteen days, the substance will be,
for the most part, humid and ponderous, and yet the wind still bears it in its
womb. Towards the 26th day of the Reign it will begin to get dry, and to become
liquid and solid in turn (about a hundred times a day); then it becomes granulated;
then again it is welded together into one mass, and so it goes on changing for
about a fortnight At length, however, an unexpectedly glorious light will burst
from your substance, and the end will arrive three days afterwards. The substance
will be granulated, like atoms of gold (or motes in the Sun), and turn a deep red -a
red the intensity of which makes it seem black like very pure blood in a clotted
state. This is the Great Wonder of Wonders, which has not its like on earth.
CHAPTER XXXI
Of the Fermentation of the Stone
I forgot to warn you in the last chapter to be on your guard against the danger of
vitrification; too fierce a fire would render your substance insoluble and prevent
its granulation. You now possess the incombustible red Sulphur which can no
longer be affected in any way by fire. In order to obtain the Elixir from this
Sulphur by reiterate solution and coagulation, take three parts of purest gold, and
one part of this fiery Sulphur. Melt the gold in a clean crucible, and then cast your
Sulphur into it (protecting it well from the smoke of the coals) Make them liquid
together, when you will obtain a beautiful mass of a deep red, though hardly
transparent. This you should permit to cool, and pound into a small powder. Of
this powder take one part, and two parts of our Mercury; mix them well, and put
them in a glass vessel, well sealed. They should be exposed to gentle heat for two
months. This is the true fermentation, which may be repeated if needful.
CHAPTER XXXII
The Imbibition of the Stone
Many authors take fermentation in this work for the invisible external agent, which
they call ferment; by its virtue the fugitive and subtle spirits, without laying on of
hands, are of their own accord thickened, and our before-mentioned fermentation
they call cibation with bread and milk. But I follow my own judgment There is
another operation, called Imbibition of the Stone, by which its quantity rather
than its quality is increased. It is this: Add to three parts of your perfect Sulphur
(either white or red) one part of water, and after six or seven days' coction the
water will become thick like the Sulphur Add again as much water as you did
before; and when this is dried up, with a convenient fire, add three distinct times
so much water as shall be equal to one-third of the original quantity of Sulphur.
Then add (for the 7th imbibition) five parts of water (the parts being equal to the
original parts of the Sulphur). Seal up the vessel; subject it to gentle coction, and
let the compound pass through all the different Reigns of the original Substance,
which will be accomplished in a month. Then you have the true Stone of the third
order, one part of which will perfectly tinge 1,000 parts of any other metal.
CHAPTER XXXIII
The Multiplication of the Stone
Take the perfect Stone; add one part of it to three or four parts of purified
Mercury of our first work, subject it to gentle coction for seven days (the vessel
being carefully sealed up), and let it pass through all the Reigns, which it will do
very quickly and smoothly. The tinging power of the substance will thus be exalted
a thousandfold; and if you go through the whole process a second time (which you
can do with ease in three days) the Medicine will be much more precious still. This
you may repeat as often as you like; the third time the substance will run through
all the Reigns in a day, the fourth time in a single hour, and so on -- and the
improvement in its quality will be most marvellous. Then kneel down and render
thanks to God for this precious treasure.
CHAPTER XXXIV
Of Projection
Take four parts of your perfect Stone, either red or white (of both for the
Medicine): melt them in a clean crucible. Take one part of this pulverisable
mixture to ten parts of purified Mercury; heat the Mercury till it begins to crackle,
then throw in your mixture, which will pierce it in the twinkling of an eye;
increase your fire till it be melted, and you will have a Medicine of an inferior
order. Take one part of this, and add it to a large quantity of well purged and
melted metal, which will thereby be transmuted into the purest silver or gold
(according as you have taken white or red Sulphur). Note that it is better to use a
gradual projection, for otherwise there may be a notable loss of the Medicine. The
better the metals are purged and refined, the quicker and more complete will the
transmutation be.
CHAPTER XXXV
Of the Manifold uses of this Art
He that has once found this Art, can have nothing else in all the world to wish for,
than that he may be allowed to serve his God in peace and safety. He will not care
for pomp or dazzling outward show. But if he lived a thousand years, and daily
entertained a million people, he could never come to want, since he has at hand
the means of indefinitely multiplying the Stone both in weight and virtue, and thus
of changing all imperfect metals in the world into gold. In the second place, he has
it in his power to make stones and diamonds far more precious than any that are
naturally procured. In the third place, he has an Universal Medicine, with which he
can cure every conceivable disease, and, indeed, as to the quantity of his
Medicine, he might heal all sick people in the world. Now to the King Eternal,
Immortal, and sole Almighty, be everlasting praise for these His unspeakable gifts
and invaluable treasures. I exhort all that possess this Treasure, to use it to the
praise of God, and the good of their neighbours, in order that they may not at the
last day be eternally doomed for their ingratitude to their Creator.
tories with stills and alembics, and approach the work with a wonderful
appearance of profundity. They adopt an obscure jargon, speak of the first matter
of the metals, and discuss with a learned air the rotation of the elements, and the
marriage of Gabritius with Beya. In the meantime, however, they do not succeed
in bringing about any metamorphosis of the metals, except that of their gold and
silver into copper and bronze.
When captious despisers of our Art see this, they draw from such constant failures
the conclusion that our Art is a combination of fiction and imposture; whilst those
who have ruined themselves by their folly confirm this suspicion by preying on the
credulity of others, pretending to have gained some skill by the loss of their
money. In this way the path of the beginner is beset with difficulties and pestilent
delusions of every kind; and, through the fault of these swindlers, who give
themselves such wonderful airs of profundity and learning, our Art itself has fallen
into utter disrepute, though these persons, of course, know nothing whatever
about it. The beginner finds it extremely difficult to distinguish between the false
and the true in this vast Labyrinth of Alchemy. Bernard of Trevisa warns him to
eschew like the plague these persons who hold out so many vain and empty
promises; while I have written this Treatise for the guidance of the blind, and the
instruction of the erring. I wish, in the first place, to clear our Art from the
slanders which have been cast upon it, then to describe the qualifications of its
students and its methods of procedure. After these prefatory explanations, I will
gird myself to a description of the Art itself.
Before I say anything else, I would record my most earnest protest against that
method of reasoning by which the deceptions of certain wretched sophists are laid
to the charge of this science. The wickedness of some of its lying professors can
prove nothing either for or against its genuineness. Such a position could be made
good only by arguments based on natural relations; but such arguments it is
impossible to find. The light of Nature is too bright to be darkened by these
obscurists. I hope my Book will shew that the Transmutation of Metals, from an
imperfect to a perfect state, is a real and true achievement, and that by the
co-operation of Nature and Art. The only thing that distinguishes one metal from
another, is its degree of maturity, which is, of course, greatest in the most
precious metals; the difference between gold and lead is not one of substance, but
of digestion; in the baser metal the coction has not been such as to purge out its
metallic impurities. If by any means this superfluous impure matter could be
organically removed from the baser metals, they would become gold and silver. So
miners tell us that lead has in many cases developed into silver in the bowels of
the earth; and we contend that the same effect is produced in a much shorter
time by means of our Art. It is a fact that the Mercury which is generated in the
bowels of the earth, is the common substance of all metals -- since this Mercury
will enter into combination with every kind of metal -- which could not be the case
if it were not naturally akin to them all. Mercury is a water that will mix with
nothing that is not of the same nature. By Art, the handmaid of Nature, Mercury
can be so successively concocted with all metals, that one and the same under the
same colour and flux, may subalternately shew and express the true temperature
and properties of them all. Moreover, all metals are capable of being resolved into
running Mercury -- and surely this could not be if it were not their common
substance. Again, the Mercury of lead may become that of iron, the Mercury of
iron that of copper; while the Mercury of tin may even be transmuted into that of
silver and gold -- a fact which triumphantly demonstrates the substantial affinity
of all the metals. From antimony, too, a good Mercury is obtained, which some of
our Artists are able to change into metallic mercury. It is also a well-established
fact that the Mercury gained from any metallic or mineral body possesses the
properties of assimilating common Mercury to its own nature; thus common
Mercury may become that of all metals in turn. Do not these arguments clearly
shew that there is one Mercury, and that in the various metals it is only
differentiated according to their different degrees of digestion or purity? I do not
see how these arguments can be answered. It is possible indeed that some dull
person may allege in refutation of our reasoning his inability to accomplish those
chemical transformations on which it is based; but such operators would be
vindicating too great an honour for their ignorance if they claimed to advance it as
an argument against the truth of our Art. They must not make their own little
understandings the standard or measure of the possibilities of Nature. At any rate,
my word is as good as theirs (and better, since they can never prove a negative),
and I do most positively and solemnly assert that I have with my own hands
performed every one of the experiments which I have described; and I know many
others whose experience has shewn these things to be true. How can our
opponents hope to prevail against eye-witnesses by bare negation? My testimony is
not addressed. Therefore, I will now go on to add a word or two about the
qualifications of those who should study this noble science. Our Art has fallen into
disrepu e, as I have said, through the stupidity and - dishonesty of many of its
professors. They are ignorant mechanics who, not having skill and brains enough
for an honest trade, must needs meddle with our Art, and, of course, soon lose all
they possess. Others, again are only just less ignorant than these persons; they are
in too great a hurry to make gold before they have mastered even the rudiments of
natural science; of course they fail, spend all they have, borrow money from their
friends, amuse themselves and others with hopes of infinite wealth, learn to talk a
barbarous semiphilosophical jargon, and afford a capital handle to those who have
an interest in abusing our Art. Again, there are others who really have a true
knowledge of the secret, but who grudge others the light which has irradiated
their own path; and who therefore write about it in hopelessly puzzling language,
which the perplexed beginner cannot possibly understand. To this class belong
Geber, Arnold, and Lullius, who would have done much better service to the
student, if they had never dipped pen in ink. The consequence is that every one
who takes up this study at once finds himself lost in a most perplexing labyrinth of
falsehood and uncertainty, in which he has no clue. I will therefore try to give him
some sound advice as to the best way of accomplishing his object.
In the first place, let him carry on his operations with great secrecy in order that
no scornful or scurrilous person may know of them; for nothing discourages the
beginner so much as the mockery, taunts, and well-meant advice of foolish
outsiders. Moreover, if he does not succeed, secrecy will save him from derision; if
he does succeed, it will safeguard him against the persecution of greedy and cruel
tyrants. In the second place, he who would succeed in the study of this Art, should
be persevering, industrious, learned, gentle, good-tempered, a close student, and
neither easily discouraged nor slothful; he may work in co-operation with one
friend, not more, but should be able to keep his own counsel; it is also necessary
that he should have a little capital to procure the necessary implements etc., and
to provide himself with food and clothing while he follows this study, so that his
mind may be undistracted by care and anxiety. Above all, let him be honest,
God-fearing, prayerful, and holy. Being thus equipped, he should study Nature,
read the books of genuine Sages, who are neither impostors nor jealous churls, and
study them day and night; let him not be too eager to carry out every idea
practically before he has thoroughly tested it, and found it to be in harmony not
only with the teaching of all the Sages, but - also of Nature herself. Not until then
let him gird himself for the practical part of the work, and let him constantly
modify his operations until he sees the signs which are described by the Sages. Nor
let him despair though he take many false steps; for the greatest philosophers
have learned most by their mistakes. For his guidance in these operations he will
find all the light he requires in the following treatises.
CHAPTER II
Of the Origin of this Art and its Writers; its Fundamental Metallic Principles,
and the Gradual Production of Metals and Minerals
Hermes, surnamed Trismegistus, is generally regarded as the father of this Art; but
there are different opinions with regard to his identity. Some say he was Moses; all
agree that he was a very clear-sighted philosopher, the first extant author on the
subject, and was also of Egyptian extraction. Others say that Enoch invented the
Art, and, before the coming of the Flood described it on the so-called emerald
tables, which were afterwards found by Hermes in the valley of Hebron. Many
assert that it was known to Adam, who revealed it to Seth; that Noah carried the
secret with him into the Ark, and that God revealed it to Solomon. But I do not
agree with those who claim for our Art a mystical origin, and thus only make it
ridiculous in the eyes of a scornful world. If it is founded on the eternal verities of
Nature, why need I trouble my head with the problem whether this or that
antediluvian personage had a knowledge of it? Enough for me to know that it is
now true and possible, that it has been exercised by the initiated for many
centuries, and under the most distant latitudes; it may also be observed that
though most of these write in an obscure, figurative, allegorical, and altogether
perplexing style, and though some of them have actually mixed falsehood with
truth, in order to confound the ignorant, yet they, though existing in many series
of ages, differing in tongue and nation, have not diversely handled one operation,
but do all exhibit a most marvellous and striking agreement in regard to the main
features of their teaching -- an agreement which is absolutely inexplicable, except
on the supposition that our Art is something more than a mere labyrinth of
perplexing words. Our Art is most plainly and straightforwardly expounded by
Bernard of Trevisa, Ripley the English man, Flamellus the Frenchman, Sendivogius,
the author of the "New Light," the anonymous author of the "Arcanum of Hermes,"
who also wrote Enchiridion Physicae Restituae, and "The Ladder of Philosophers,"
the great "Rosary," the "Child's Play," the Tract of Dionysius Zachary, the works of
Morienus, the works of Egidius de Vadis, Augurellus' poem entitled "Goldmaking,"
the works of Peter Bonus of Ferrara, and the "Abridged Rosary." Let the student
procure one or more of these, and similar genuine works on Alchemy, and let him
study the secrets of Nature by the light which they throw upon it. He will find a
knowledge of natural science, and more particularly of mineralogy, indispensable
for his purpose.
All philosophers tell us that there are four elements, which compose all things,
and, by means of their diverse combination, produce various forms. But the truth
is that there are only three elements, i.e., those which of their own nature are
cold -- air, water, and earth. The defect of heat which we perceive in them is in
proportion to their distance from the sun. Fire I do not acknowledge as an
element. There is no fire, except the common fire which burns on the hearth; and
its heat is essentially destructive. The heat there is in things is the product either
of light, or motion, or life, or alterative processes. Fire is not an element, but a
robber that preys on the products of the four elements; it is a violent corruptive
motion caused by the clashing of two active principles. Thus, we see that it is an
operation of two other substances, not a substance in itself -- a result of the active
co-operation of a comburent and a combustible. The nature and characteristic
quality of the three elements is cold, and they possess heat only as an accident...
Nor is it true that objects are formed by a mixture of these three elements; for
dissimilar things can never really unite, seeing that union is a complete mixture
and concretion of the smallest atoms or molecules of two substances. But such a
mixture is impossible in the case of two dissimilar matters, as, for instance,
between water and earth (or water and wine); they admit of being separated at
any time on account of the disproportion of their smallest particles. It may be said
that for the sake of union the grosser element becomes as subtle as the other; but
if this were the case, if for the purpose of union water became as subtle as air,
that would simply mean that water became air, an assumption which would thus
fail to prove the possibility of an amalgamation of water and air. Is it not a simpler
and more credible supposition that only water or air, as the case may be, enters
into the composition of any given object? But if any one still persists in maintaining
this permutation of the elements (which, after all, would only mean that all things
consist of air) -- let me ask the humble question -- by the activity of what agent
they are so transmuted? Moreover, one would also be glad to enquire what is the
use of this permutation of earth into water, and of water into air? What can earth
converted into water, or water converted into air, perform, that could not be just
as well accomplished by simple unchanged water or air? Surely, Nature does
nothing in vain: I but here would be a difficult and wasteful process of
transmutation constantly going on, which is not calculated to serve any useful
purpose whatsoever. If it be said that earth rarefied into water is like water, yet
not exactly water, my answer is that this is a mere quibble about words, and that
if the rarefied earth is only like water, and not really water, it cannot possibly
combine with it in its smallest particles; so nothing is gained by this hypothesis.
Hence we may conclude that all things derive their origin from one element, which
can be neither earth nor air. This I could prove at great length if I were not
cramped for space. It follows, then, that water must be the first principle of all
things, i.e., of all concrete bodies in this world; earth is the fundamental element
in which all bodies grow and are preserved; air is the medium into which they
grow, and by means of which the celestial virtues are communicated to them. The
seed of all things has been placed by God in water. This seed some exhibit openly,
like vegetables, some keep in their kidneys, like animals; some conceal in the
depths of their essential being, like metals. The seed is stirred into action by its
form (i.e., a certain appropriate celestial influence) coagulates the material
water, and passes through a series of fermentative processes (fermentation being
the principle of all transmutation), until it has produced that for the production of
which it was specially suited. If the seed is metallic, there; generated from it first
a dry liquid, which does not wet the hand viz., Mercury, the mother of all metals.
Mercury may be described as the true first matter of metals; for not until the
elemental water has become Mercury can it be affirmed with any degree of
certainty that a metal or mineral must result from it. Water is, in itself,
potentially the seed of either an animal vegetable, or mineral; but Mercury is
metallically differentiated water, ie., it is water passed into that stage of
development, in which it can no longer produce anything but mineral substances.
Mercury, then, is the common seed of gold, silver, copper, tin iron, lead, etc.;
their difference is only to be sought in the degree of their digestion. The digestive
is not any fat sulphur which is brought to bear on them from without; but Mercury
contains within itself the active principle of its development, viz., the inward heat
due to celestial influences, causing vitality, and dependent on the fitness of the
womb. These heavenly influences are at work throughout the world; but their
exact mode of action is determined by the potential nature of the seed; if the
inward life be metallic, the course of its development by means of outward agents
will also be metallic. Still Mercury develops only where these outward influences
(celestial and terrestrial) can be brought to bear. In every other place it will
appear a cold, dead, and lifeless substance. But in the centre of its nativity it is
quickened by the action of celestial influences, conveyed to it through the medium
of air, whence results heat, wherewith life is necessarily associated. Now, the
womb in which this Mercury is placed, is either more, less, or not at all suited to
it; and according to the different degrees of this fitness, the substance either
remains altogether stationary, or is more or less perfectly developed; imperfection
of development yields the imperfect metals, while by means of perfect
development are produced silver and gold; but all metals, though differentiated by
the degree of their digestion or maturity, have the same first substance, viz.,
Mercury. The dross and impurities which are largely found in the base metals, form
no part of the original Mercury but are added afterwards through some flaw in the
process of coagulation, or through the impurity of the place or womb in which
their metallic generation (fermentation) takes place. But I will now go on to deal
with the special subject of this Treatises, viz., . the renovation or multiplication of
gold and silver.
CHAPTER III
Of the Generation of Gold and Silver from the Mercurial Substance, and the
Possibility of bringing Imperfect Metals to the same State of Perfection
To the aforesaid source (Mercury) we trace the birth of gold, and of its sister,
silver; they represent this substance brought to perfection by means of digestion.
Perfection is of two kinds, inchaotive or complete, partial or entire. Complete
perfection (the complete digestion of all crudities and elimination of all
impurities) is the ultimate aim of Nature; and she has reached it in our gold, which
with its brilliancy lights up the whole earth. Inchaotive perfection may be so
named, not absolutely but relatively, when compared with essentially imperfect
bodies. Those bodies are formally or essentially imperfect in the composition of
which the impure predominates over the pure, so that they could never of
themselves (by natural development attain perfection; this is the case with all
metals except gold and silver. But whenever the pure is freed from the corruptive
tyranny of the impure, and obtains the mastery over it, we have inchaotive
perfection, though the development of the body may be still incomplete. These
crudities and impurities do not originally belong to the metallic substance, and are
very well capable of being separated from it; if they are so purged off before
coagulation, we get a perfect metal. But even if they are coagulated together with
the Mercury, it is still possible to separate them from it, and thus to perfect the
Mercury. It is on this possibility that our Art is based; and its business is to perform
this separation. The base metals contain the same mercury as gold; if we can free
this Mercury from the impurities which hinder its development, it must also go on
to perfection, i.e., become gold. If we could find some separating agent which
would perform this office for the impure minerals, it would also be a digestive,
i.e., it would quicken the inward metallic digestion of the long-entombed Mercury.
Such a separant is our divine Arcanum, which is the heavenly spirit of water with
fiery penetrative power. Compared with common gold, it is what the soul is in
comparison of the body; and having attained the highest degree of corporeal
fixity, it takes up the Mercury of the base metals into its own nature, and protects
it from the fire while the impurities are being burnt up. The Mercury of the base
metals (unlike the Mercury of gold), if exposed to the fire without such protection,
would not be able to encounter the searching ordeal, but (having no cohesion with
its impure body and possessing no fixity in itself) would simply evaporate, and
leave the impurities to be burned. But our Arcanum, being both a spiritual and a
homogeneous substance, is capable of entering into a perfect atomic union with
the imperfect metals, of taking up into its own nature that which is like to it, and
of imparting to this Mercury its own fixity, and protecting it from the fire, so when
the fire has burnt up all the impurities, that which is left is, of course, pure gold or
silver, according to the quality of the Medicine -- which from that time forward is
(like all other gold and silver) capable of resisting the most searching ordeal. So
you see we do not, as is sometimes said, profess to create gold and silver, but only
to find an agent which -- on account of its homogeneity and spirituality -- is
capable of entering into an intimate (atomic) and maturing union with the Mercury
of the base metals. And we contend that our Elixir is calculated, by the intense
degree of its fixity and colour, to impart these qualities to any homogeneous
substance which does not possess them.
CHAPTER IV
CHAPTER V
induction that this inward agent (which is, properly speaking, the seed) is really
there. Hence we call the whole of the water seed, just as we call the whole of the
grain seed, though the germ of life is only a smallest particle of the grain. But the
seminal life is not distinct from the remaining substance of metals; rather, it is
inseparably mingled with the smallest parts of the body. Roughly speaking,
however, we describe the whole of our golden water as the seed of gold, because
this seminal virtue pervades it in a most subtle manner. This seminal virtue the
ancient Sages called the hidden ferment, the poison, or the invisible fire; again,
they said that it was fire, or that fire resided in the water; they distinguished
between soul and spirit, of which the former is the medium, the latter the active
virtue. If anyone wonders that we describe water as the seat of the seed, or the
seminal spirit, let him remember that in the beginning the Spirit of God moved on
the face of the waters, i.e., penetrated them with His heavenly quickening power.
Thus, from the very first day of Creation, water has been the source and element
of all things. For water alone contains the seeds of all things; yet in vegetables
they are put forth in crude air; in animals they are preserved in the kidneys; while
in minerals they are diffused throughout the whole substance; nevertheless, seed
can never leave its original seat (i.e., water). Things are preserved by that from
which they derive their origin; for the cause of their origin being removed, the
things which are the effect must also cease to exist; hence the multiplication and
nutrition of all things is in water and through water. Vegetables are generated and
nourished by the aqueous Teffas of the earth; animals by the liquid chyle; metals
by the mercurial liquid. Animals preserve their seed in their kidneys, and in due
time project it into the proper womb, where it is first moulded into a tender and
very compacted foetus; this fetus is nourished by the liquid female menstruum,
and thus grows until the time comes for it to be born. Then it is nourished with
milk until it can bear stronger food; but this solid food does not become real
nutriment until the stomach has converted it into a liquid chyle (as, for instance,
bones in the stomach of the dog). In the same way the metals keep their perfect
seed where it cannot be seen; but even there it is preserved in water. Thence the
Artist extracts it, puts it into its own proper womb, where it is cherished and
grows, until (by means of corruption) it attains to its glorification. This is a most
difficult operation, because the Metals, in which the seed is hidden, are so firmly
and tightly compacted, and will not yield to violence, but only to a gentle and
exquisitely subtle chemical process. Then I say to you, that there is a womb into
which the gold (if placed therein) will, of its own accord, emit its seed, until it is
debilitated and dies, and by its death is renewed into a most glorious King, who
thenceforward receives power to deliver all his brethren from the fear of death.
CHAPTER VI
of that which is fixed, and the subsequent corruption of its particular form. To
break up gold in this way is the most profound secret in the world. It is not brought
about by corrosive depravation of the metal, nor by the usual method of
dissolution, but by our philosophical solution of the metal into mercurial water, by
means of a previous mercurial calcination (made by means of the agent ), which is
produced through the subtle rotation and conversion of the elements; this
calcination, again, is a mortification of our homogeneous liquid with the dry
element belonging to it; afterwards the dry is so far revived by means of this same
liquid, that the perfectly matured virtue, extracted from the substance by the
solvent, is the cause of this calcination and solution. Here, then, there is no room
for the action of a corrosive. Gold, which is the most solid, strong, fire-proof, and
fixed of all substances, is to be volatilised, and no mere corrosive will accomplish
such a perfect change of nature. The mighty agent required for this purpose must
be homogeneous, amicable, and spiritual, i.e., it must be akin to the body (of
gold), and yet strong enough to overcome it; and penetrate to its very core, still
leaving each smallest part of the gold true gold. Gold does not easily give up its
nature, and will fight for its life, but our agent is strong enough to overcome and
kill it, and then it also has power to restore it to life, and to change the lifeless
remains into a new pure body.
CHAPTER VII
Of the First Agent or Womb, into which our Seed should be emitted and where
it is matured
There remains to be found an Agent, by means of which the aforesaid operation
may be performed. For this purpose we require a homogeneous water. For we have
seen that the seed Of gold is concealed, and can remain effectual only in water,
and this water must be homogeneous with the body, or else it could not penetrate
all the thick integuments by means of which this seed is secured. For like
generates like, that is to say, every agent that exercises a generative action upon
anything, transmutes it (as far as possible) into its own nature. The Agent then
must be akin to the body which is to be dissolved, and, moreover, perfectly pure
from all dross or alloy. Again, whereas gold is fixed and solid, the Agent must be
highly volatile and spiritual; gold is thick and gross, our Agent is subtle gold is dead
our Agent is living and life-giving: in short, our Agent should have all those
qualities which gold has not, and which it is to impart to the gold. Hence we
conclude that Mercury alone is the true Key of our Art; for it is in truth the dry
water described by the Sages, which, though liquid, does not wet the hands, nor
anything else that does not belong to the unity of its substance. Mercury is our
doorkeeper, our balm, our honey, oil, urine, may-dew, mother, egg, secret
furnace, oven, true fire, venomous Dragon, Theriac, ardent wine, Green Lion, Bird
of Hermes, Goose of Hermogenes, two-edged sword in the hand of the (Cherub
that guards the Tree of Life, &c., &c.; it is our true, secret vessel, and the Garden
of the Sages, in which our Sun rises and sets. It is our Royal Mineral, our
triumphant vegetable Saturnia, and the magic rod of Hermes, by means of which
he assumes any shape he likes. It is of this water that the Sage uses the words: "Let
Alchemists boast as much as they like, but without this water the transmutation of
metals is impossible. In Nature it is not such as we use it in our Art; it is a most
common thing, and yet the most precious treasure of all the world... Therefore,
Son of Knowledge, pay diligent heed to my words: Take that which in itself is most
impure, the strumpet woman, purge it radically of all its uncleanness, and extract
from it that which is most pure, namely, our menstruum (solvent), the Royal
Diadem." Behold, I have told you in a few words that which ennobles the Sage,
delivers him from error, and leads him to the most beautiful meadow of delights...
The Arcanum which we seek is nothing but gold exalted to its highest degree of
perfection, through the operation of Nature assisted by our Art. When the sperm
hidden in the body of gold is brought out by means of our Art, it appears under the
form of Mercury, whence it is exalted into the quintessence which is first white,
and then, by means of continuous coction becomes red. All this is the work of our
homogeneous Agent our Mercurial Ponticum, which is pure crystalline without
transparency, liquid without humectation, and, in short, the true Divine water,
which is not found above-ground, but is prepared by the hand of the Sage, with the
co-operation of Nature, which we know, have seen, have made, and still possess
which also we desire to make known to the true students of our Art, while it is our
wish to hide it only from the unworthy.
CHAPTER VIII
Concerning the Genealogy of the Mercury of the Sages, its Origin, Birth, and the
Signs which precede and accompany it
Some boastful and arrogant sophists, who have read in books that our Mercury is
not common Mercury, and who know that it is called by different names, do not
blush to come forward as pretenders to a knowledge of this Art, and take upon
themselves to describe this solvent as diaphanous and limpid, or as a metallic gum
which is permiscible with metals, though they do not in reality know anything
whatsoever about it. The same may be said of those who would extract our
Mercury from herbs or other still more fantastic substances. These gentry know not
why the Sages do not use Mercury such as is sold by apothecaries as their
substance. They are aware of the fact, but are unacquainted with its causes; and
the consequence is the idea which they have that anything which changes the
nature of common Mercury, will convert it into that of the Sages. But in regard to
these foolish persons, I have already expressed our opinion... All metals, as I
demonstrated in the second chapter, have the same substantial principle, viz.,
Mercury. From this proposition it follows that the substance of common Mercury is
homogeneous with that of all the other metals, and if the Mercury of the Sages be
the homogeneous metallic water, it can differ from common Mercury only in
respect of its purity and heat. The first substance of common Mercury is that of all
other metals, viz., our Mercury. So long as it remains in the veins of the earth, in a
place perfectly adapted to its generation, and is sheltered from crude air, it
retains its inward movement and heat, which are the cause of all metallic
development. But if it be marred by any accident, or if the place become unfit for
it, the inward movement is stopped, and the germinal life chilled like that of an
egg which a hen has left after sitting on it for some time. This is the reason why
those who have attempted to digest common Mercury by means of artificial heat
have failed as ludicrously as any one who should endeavour to incubate artificially
an addled egg. The difference between the egg and the metal is that our Art is
capable of making good the damage, but not by artificial means. We have a crude,
undigested, frigid, unmatured metallic mass, which wants the form of our Mercury,
for which it must exchange its own, if it is to become that which we seek. With
this end in view, its deficiencies are twofold; its nature is clogged with superfluous
foreign matter, and it does not possess the requisite spiritual virtue. Its
superfluities consist of earthy leprosy, and aqueous dropsy. Its deficiency is one of
true sulphureous heat, by means of which it would be enabled to purge off these
superfluities. Water, indeed, is the womb, but no womb can receive a vital germ
without warmth. Supplement your (common) Mercury, therefore, with the inward
fire which it needs, and it will soon get rid of all superfluous dross. If you can do
this, you have accomplished the great feat of the Sages. Jupiter has recovered his
empire; the black clouds of Saturn are dispersed, and the sparkling fountain wells
forth clear and pure. This substance will dissolve gold by means of a true
philosophical solution, which is as different as can be from that foolish use of
corrosives which only destroy the metallic nature. This Mercury (with) gold and
silver naturally produces the Arcanum, or potable gold, as all adepts know and can
testify.
Here I conclude this Tract, as all that remains to be said is set forth in a special
(the next) Treatise.
It is prepared from one substance, with which the art of chemistry is conversant,
to which nothing is added, from which nothing is taken away, except that its
superfluities are removed. No one will question the utility of our Art, if he believes
that it enables us to transmute base metals into gold. That base metals are
capable of such transmutation is clear; Nature has destined them all to become
gold, but they have not been perfectly matured. If, then, that which hinders their
perfect digestion be removed, they will all become gold; for crude, cold, and
moist Mercury is the common first substance of gold as well as of the other metals.
Hence all other metals may be perfected into gold, by the aid of our Divine
Magistery, which, being projected upon imperfect metals, has power to quicken
the maturing process by as much as itself exceeds the standard maturity of gold.
How patent, then, must the spiritual nature of our Stone be, which can effect
more in one hour by a bare projection than Nature in the course of ages. If that
substance which Nature supplies be taken in hand by Art, dissolved, coagulated,
and digested, its perfection is increased from a monadic to a denary virtue; by
repeating the same process, it is increased a hundred-fold, and then a
thousand-fold, etc. This wonderful Medicine penetrates each smallest part of the
base metals (in the proportion of 1::1,000) and tinges them through and through
with its own noble nature: your arithmetic will fail sooner than its all-prevailing
power. Each smallest part that is pervaded with the vitalizing power of the Elixir in
its turn tinges that part which is nearest to it until the whole mass is leavened with
its marvellous influence, and brought to the perfection of gold. This is done in a
very short time, on account of the spiritual nature of the agent; it is the true
metallic fire, and as a common fire warms even those parts of any object which
are not in immediate contact with the fire, so this Elixir penetrates dissolved and
melted metals in a moment of time-just in the same way as the virtue of leaven or
yeast is brought to bear even upon those parts of the meal which it never reaches.
A reproach is sometimes levelled at our Art, as though it claimed the power of
creating gold; every attentive reader; of our former tract will know that it only
arrogates to itself the power of developing, through the removal of all defects and
superfluities, the golden nature, which the baser metals possess in common with
that highly-digested metallic substance.
Listen, then, while I make known to you the Grand Arcanum of this
wonder-working Stone, which at the same time is not a stone, which exists in
every man, and may be found in its own place at all times. L he knowledge which I
declare is not intended for the unworthy, and will not be understood by them. But
to you who are earnest students of Nature God will, at His own time, reveal this
glorious secret.
I have shewn that the transmutation of metals is not a chimerical dream, but a
sober possibility of Nature, who is perfectly capable of accomplishing it without
the aid of magic and that this possibility of metallic transmutation is founded upon
the fact that all metals derive their origin from the same source as gold, and have
only been hindered from attaining the same degree of maturity by certain
impurities, which our Magistery is able to remove. Let me tell you, then, what is
the nature of this grand arcanum, which the Sages have called the Philosopher's
Stone, but which is in every man, in every thing, at every season of the year, if it
be sought in the right place.
It must consist of the elements, for they are the universal substance of all things,
and as it is of a nature homogeneous with that of gold, it must be that which
contains the qualities of all elements in such a combination as to render it
incapable of being destroyed by fire. It follows, then, that you must look for the
substance of our Stone in the precious metals, since the required combination of
elements is not found anywhere else. Those foolish sophists who seek it outside
the domain of metals will never arrive at any satisfactory conclusion. For there is
only one true principle, and nothing heterogeneous must be introduced into our
Magistery.
For as a lion is always born of a lion, and a man of a man, so all things owe their
birth to that which they are like; that which is combustible is derived from that
which is combustible, that which is indestructible from that which is
indestructible. Nor must we expect to find the principle which imparts the
qualities of gold anywhere but in gold itself. If, indeed, we were able to create the
sperm of things, we might hope to evolve this metallic principle from plants or
animals which do not contain it; but that is the privilege of God alone. We must be
content to dispose and develop the sperm which is made ready to our hands-new
things we are unable to produce, and even if we could, our artificial seed would be
no better than that which Nature has provided. If any one calling himself a Sage
cannot use the things which are already created, it does not seem likely that he
will be able to create new things out of heterogeneous substances-the seeds of
metals out of herbs or animals.
Thus, you see that the Stone which is to be the transformer of metals into gold
must be sought in the precious metals, in which it is enclosed and contained.
But why is it called a Stone, though it is not a stone; and how is it to be found? The
Sages describe it as being a stone and not a stone; and the vulgar, who cannot
imagine how so wonderful a thing should be produced except by art-magics decry
our science as impious, wicked, and diabolical. Some silly persons clamour for an
Act making the profession or practice of this Art punishable by statute law. Now,
one can hardly be angry with the illiterate and ignorant persons who raise this cry;
but when it is taken up by men of exalted station and profound learning, one
hardly knows what to say. These men I also reckon among the rude multitude,
because they are deplorably ignorant of everything pertaining to our Art, and yet,
forgetful of their dignity, they join in the hue and cry against it, like so many
cowardly village curs. It is neither religious nor wise to judge that of which you
know nothing; and yet that is exactly what these people do, who claim to be both
But let us return to the point from which we strayed. Some Alchemists who are in
search of our Arcanum seek to prepare something of a solid nature, because they
have heard the object of their search described as a Stone.
Know, then, that it is called a stone, not because it is like a stone, but only
because, by virtue of its fixed nature, it resists the action of fire as successfully as
any stone. In species it is gold, more pure than the purest; it is fixed and
incombustible like a stone, but its appearance is that of very fine powder,
impalpable to the touch, sweet to the taste, fragrant to the smell, in potency a
most penetrative spirit, apparently dry and yet unctuous, and easily capable of
tinging a plate of metal. It is justly called the Father of all miracles, containing as
it does all the elements in such a way that none predominates, but all form a
certain fifth essence; it is thus well called our gentle metallic fire. It has no name
of its own; yet there is nothing in the whole world whose name it might not with
perfect propriety bear. If we say that its nature is spiritual, it would be no more
than the truth; if we described it is as corporeal, the expression would be equally
correct; for it is subtle, penetrative, glorified, spiritual gold. It is the noblest of all
created things after the rational soul, and has virtue to repair all defects both in
animal and metallic bodies, by restoring them to the most exact and perfect
temper; wherefore is it a spirit or quintessence.
But I must proceed to answer the second and more important part of my question.
How is this Stone to be obtained? It does not exist in Nature, but has to be
prepared by Art, in obedience to Nature's law. Its substance is in metals; but in
form it differs widely from them, and in this sense the metals are not our Stone.
For if we would elicit our Medicine fro.-n the precious metals, we must destroy the
particular metallic form, without impairing its specific properties. The specific
properties of the metal have their abode in its spiritual part, which resides in
homogeneous water. Thus we must destroy the particular form of gold, and change
it into its generic homogeneous water, in which the spirit of gold is preserved; this
spirit afterwards restores the consistency of its water, and brings forth a new form
(after the necessary putrefaction), a thousand times more perfect than the form of
gold which it lost by being reincrudated.
The whole process which we employ closely resembles that followed by Nature in
the bowels of the earth, except that it is much shorter. Nature produces the
metals out of cold and humid Mercury by assiduous digestion; our Art takes the
same crude, cold, and humid Mercury, and conjoins with it mature gold, by a
secret artifice; the mixture represents a new and far more potent Mercury, which,
by digestion, becomes not common gold, but one far more noble, which can
transmute imperfect metals into true gold.
Thus, you see that though our Stone is made of gold alone, yet it is not common
gold. In order to elicit our gold from common gold, the latter must be dissolved in
our mineral water which does not wet the hands; this water is Mercury extracted
from the red servant, and it is capable of accomplishing our work without any
further trouble to the Artist. It is that one true, natural, first-substance, to which
But remember that our albification is by no means an easy task. Gold which has
been thus whitened can never resume its old form, for, instead of being corporeal
and fixed, it is now spiritual and volatile. Concentrate your whole mind, therefore,
on the whitening of the Laton. It is easier to make gold than thus to destroy its
form; he who so dissolves it may be said rather to coagulate it-for dissolution of
the body and coagulation of the spirit are coincident in it.
Consider these signs, ye sons of knowledge. That which dissolves is spirit; that
which coagulates is body. A body cannot enter a body so as to cause dissolution;
but a spirit can enter it, attenuate and rarefy it; and as you seek water, you need
water to bring it to light; for every Agent has a tendency to assimilate to itself
that which it acts upon, and every natural effect is conformed to the nature of the
efficient; hence water is necessary if you would extract water from earth.
When I speak of water, I do not mean aquafortis, royal water, or any other
corrosive whatsoever, for these waters, instead of dissolving metals, only corrode,
mar, and corrupt them, without destroying their old form, to which task they are
insufficient, as they are not of a metallic nature. No, our water is the water
Mercury, which dissolves homogeneous metallic bodies, and mingles with them in
indissoluble union, abides with them, is digested with them, and together with
them becomes that spiritual whole which we seek. For everything that dissolves a
substance naturally (still preserving the specific properties of the thing dissolved)
becomes one with it both materially and formally, coalesces with it, and is
thickened by it, thus nourishing it; as we see in the case of a grain of wheat,
which, when dissolved by the humid earthy vapour, thereby takes up that vapour
as its radical moisture, and grows together with it into a plant. We may also
observe that, every natural dissolution being a quickening of that which was dead,
this quickening can take place only through some vital agent which is of the same
essence with the dead thing; if we wish to quicken the (dead) grain of wheat, we
can do this only by means of an earthy vapour, which, like the grain itself, is a
product of the earth. For this reason common Mercury can have no quickening
effect on gold, because it is not of the same essence with it. A grain of wheat sown
in marshy soil, so far from being quickened into life, is, on the contrary,
destroyed, because the aqueous humour of the soil is not of the same nature. In
like manner, gold, if mixed with common Mercury, or with anything except its own
essential humour, is not dissolved, because such waters are too cold, crude, and
impure; for which reason, being utterly unlike gold, they cannot amalgamate with
it, or attain with it to a far nobler degree of development. Our Mercury, indeed, is
cold and unmatured in comparison with gold; but it is pure, hot, and well-digested
in respect of common Mercury, which resembles it only in whiteness and
fluxibility. Our Mercury is, in fact, a pure water, clean, clear, bright, and
resplendent, worthy of all admiration.
If you wish for a more particular description of our water I am impelled by motives
of charity to tell you that it is living, fluxible, clear, nitid, as white as snow, hot,
humid, airy, vaporous, and digestive, and that gold melts in it like ice in warm
water; moreover, that in it is contained the whole regimen of fire, and the sulphur
which exists but does not predominate in it. This water is the true Keeper of our
Gates, the Bath of the King and of his Queen, which warms them incessantly, but is
not taken of their substance, and is distinct from the whitening substance of the
water, though the two are united and appear under the same flowing form and
colour. It is our vessel, our fire, the abode of our furnace, by whose continuous
and gentle warmth the whole substance is digested. If you know this water, it will
be seen to contain all our fires, all our proportions of weight, all our regimens. It is
Bernard of Trevisa's clear pellucid Fountain, in which our King is cleansed and
strengthened to overcome all his foes. All you have to do is to find this water and
to put into it the purified body; out of the two Nature will then produce our Stone.
This mineral water can be extracted only from those things which contain it; and
that thing from which it is most easily obtained is difficult to discover, as is also
the mode of its extraction. It dissolves gold without violence, is friendly to it
washes away its impurities, and is white, warm, and clear Without our Mercury,
Alchemy could not be a science, but only a vain and empty pretence. If you can
obtain it, you have the key of the whole work, with which you can open the most
secret chambers of knowledge. Its nature is the same as that of gold, but its
substance is different, and the preparation of it causes a great stench. Weigh well
the possibilities of Nature; refrain from introducing any heterogeneous element
into our Magistery, and do not blame me if you fail to understand my words. . Our
Stone is produced from one thing, and four mercurial sub-. stances, of which one is
mature; the others pure, but crude, two of them being extracted in a wonderful
manner from their ore by means of the third. The four are amalgamated by the
intervention of a gentle fire, and there subjected to coction day by day, until they
all become one by natural (not manual) conjunction.
Afterwards, the fire being changed, these volatile substances should be fixed and
digested by means of heat which becomes a little more powerful every day (i.e.,
by means of fixed and incombustible Sulphur of the same genus) until the whole
compound attains the same essence, fixity, and colour.
There are twelve degrees or phases of this our process, which I may briefly
enumerate and describe as follows. The first is Calcination.
Calcination is the first purgation of the Stone, the drying up of its humours,
through its natural heat, which is stirred into vital action by the external heat of
water-whereby the compound is converted into a black powder, which is yet
unctuous, and retains its radical humour.
This calcination is performed for the purpose of rendering the substance viscous,
spongy, and more easily penetrable; for gold in itself is highly fixed, and difficult
of solution even in our water; but through this calcination it becomes soft and
white, and we observe in it two natures, the fixed and the volatile, which we liken
to two serpents. In order that a full dissolution may be made, there is need of
contrition, that calcination may afterwards produce a viscous state, when it will
be fit for dissolution.
When the substances are first mixed, they are at enmity with each other, by
reason of their contrary qualities, for there is the heat and dryness of the Sulphur
fiercely contending with the cold and moisture of the Mercury. They can only be
reconciled in a medium which partakes of both natures, and the medium in which
heat and cold are reconciled is dryness which can co-exist with both. Thus cold
and heat are brought to dwell peaceably together in the dryness of the earth, and
dryness and moisture in the coldness of the water. This reconciliation of contrary
Its sufficient cause is the action of the inward heat upon the moisture, whereby
everything that resists it is converted into a very fine powder; the moving and
instrumental cause is the fire contrary to Nature, which, being hidden in our
solvent water, battles with its moisture and digests it into a viscous or unctuous
powder.
This operation takes place before our dissolution, because whenever bodies are
dissolved, the spirits in their turn are congealed. Again, the woman must reign,
before she is overcome by the man. The dominion of the woman is in the water,
and if the man overcome her in the element in which both her qualities of coldness
and moisture inhere, he will easily conquer her where she has only one quality.
Calcination, then, is the beginning of the work, and without it there can be neither
peaceable commixtion nor proper union. The first dealbation reduces the
substance to its two principles, sulphur and quicksilver, the first of which is fixed,
while the other is volatile. They are compared to two serpents, the fixed
substance to a serpent without, and the volatile substance to a serpent with,
wings. One serpent holds in his mouth the tail of the other, to shew that they are
indissolubly conjoined by community of birth and destiny, and that our Art is
accomplished through the joint working of this Mercurial Sulphur, and sulphureous
Mercury. Hence the whole compound is at this stage called Rebis, because there
are two substances but only one essence. They are not really two, but one and the
same thing the Sulphur is matured and well digested Mercury, the Mercury is crude
and undigested Sulphur. It has already been said that in our Art we imitate
Nature's method of producing metals in the bowels of the earth, except that our
method is shorter and more subtle. In metallic veins only crude and frigid Mercury
is found, in which the inward heat or dryness (i.e., Sulphur) can scarce make its
influence felt. No digestive heat is found there, but in the course of ages an
imperceptible motion changes this metallic principle. In the course of centuries,
however, this imperceptible digestive heat changes the Mercury into what is then
called fixed Sulphur, though before it was denominated Mercury.
But in our Art, we have something besides crude and frigid Mercury, viz., mature
gold, with its manifold active qualities. These are united to the passive qualities of
our Mercury; and so one aids and perfects the other, and as we have two fires,
instead of the one slow inward fire of Mercury, the operation is more expeditious,
and something far nobler than common gold is produced.
Thus you see that in our Art we have two Sulphurs and two Mercuries (i.e.,
Sulphur, and Mercury of Mercury, and Sulphur and Mercury of gold), but their only
difference consists in degrees of perfection and maturity. Now, the perfect body
of gold is reduced to its (two) first principles by means of our Divine water which
does not wet the hands (viz., Mercury and Sulphur). This operation for a time gives
the ascendancy to the female agent; but this being unnatural, the male agent soon
reasserts itself, and by means of its heat dries up the moisture of the female
agent, and-through calcination-converts it all into a most subtle and viscous
powder, which powder is then changed by dissolution into a water, in which the
spirits of the solvent and the thing dissolved, the male and the female principles,
are mingled. But the inward heat, which has once been roused into action, still
continues to work, separating the subtle (which floats on the surface) from the
gross (which sinks to the bottom), until the man has gained the upper hand, the
inseparable union takes place, and the male impregnates the female; the female
brings forth a nebulous vapour, in which they are putrefied and decay, and from
which both arise with a glorious body, no longer two, but only one by inseparable
conjunction. This new birth is then coagulated, sublimed, nourished, and exalted
to the highest degree of perfection, and may afterwards be indefinitely multiplied
by fermentation, and used both for projection and as an Universal Medicine. We
see, then, that these black and fetid ashes are not to be despised, since they
contain the Diadem of our King; your substance will never be white, if it has not
first been black. It is by means of putrefaction and decay that it attains the
glorified body of its resurrection. Therefore, you should honour the tomb of our
King, for unless you do so, you will never behold him coming in his glory.
A great many students make a mistake at the very outset by performing this
calcination on a wrong substance-borax, or alum, or ink, or vitriol, or arsenic, or
seeds, or plants, or wine, vinegar, urine, hair, blood, gum, resin, etc; or they
choose a false method, and corrode instead of calcining the metallic bodies on
which they operate. Calcination can take place only by means of the inward heat
of the body, assisted by friendly outward warmth; but calcination by means of a
heterogeneous agent can only destroy the metallic nature, in so far as it has any
effect at all. Every calcination of gold, which is not succeeded by a spontaneous
dissolution, without laying on of hands, is also fallacious.
The true calcination is by means of Mercury, which (being added to gold in due
proportions) softens and dissolves the gold, and, by its inward heat, united to
outward heat, stirs into action the native heat of the gold, and thus causes it to
dry up its humidity into that fine, viscous, black powder. And this is the true key of
the work-to incrudate the mature by the conjunction of an immature-being
incrudated to calcine it-being calcined to dissolve it-and all this philosophically,
not vulgarly.
The outward signs of the calcination are as follows:-When the gold has become
saturated with water, and the fire of the Mercury has called into play the heat of
the bath, the water which was so brilliant begins to grow dim, then visibly swells
and bubbles, until the whole becomes a fatty and viscous powder, which, however,
still retains its radical humour. For when the heat first begins to operate, the cold
and the moist seek refuge by rising to the top; thence they descend in liquid form
and assimilate as much of the substance as they can to themselves; thus the
powder is converted into a glutinous water. For between the different processes of
our Art, there exists such a concatenation that not one can be produced or
understood without the rest. In order to hide our meaning from the unworthy, we
speak of several operations; but all these-the whole progress of the substance from
black to white and red-should be philosophically understood as one operation, one
thing, one successive disposition to black, white, and red.
The following rules should be observed if you wish to bring about true calcination:-
In the first place, you must procure our Mercury; common Mercury will produce no
effect if you operate on it till doomsday.
Secondly, the external fire of the furnace should be neither too violent (in order
that the equilibrium of chemical forces in the substance may not be disturbed),
nor yet too gentle, so that the action of the inward fire may not languish for want
of outward heat. It should be just such as to keep up an equable vital warmth.
In the third place, the Laton should receive neither too much nor too little to
drink. If it receive too much, it will not be able to give it out, and a nebulous
tempest will arise; if too little, it will be burnt to cinders. The activity of the
Sulphur must dry up the superfluous humour of the Mercury; therefore, the active
(sulphur) must not be swamped with too much sperm; nor must the moisture be
choked with too much earth. The proportions should be between two or three
parts of water to one of gold; but the larger the quantities of both substances, the
more perfect will the calcination and dissolution be. The chief mistake against
which you must guard is the swamping of your earth with water. For the earth
contains the fire, which is the principal digestive in our Art.
In the fourth place, you should take care to seal up your vessel properly, to
prevent the spirit from evaporating. Consider how carefully Nature has closed up
the female womb to prevent anything from escaping or entering that might prove
hurtful to the young life; and quite as much (if not more) care is required in our
Magistery. For when the embryo is being formed, great winds arise, which must
not be allowed to escape-or else our labour will have been all in vain.
The fifth requisite in our work is patience. You must not yield to despondency, or
attempt to hasten the chemical process of dissolution. For if you do so by means of
violent heat, the substance will be prematurely parched up into a red powder, and
the active vital principle in it will become passive, being knocked on the head, as
it were, with a hammer. But our true calcination preserves the radical humour in
the body dissolved, and converts it into an unctuous black powder. Patience is,
therefore, the great cardinal virtue in Alchemy. It must not be supposed that the
signs and colours which I describe appear on the first day, or even within the first
week: Bernard of Trevisa tells us that he waited in an anguish of expectation for
forty days, and then returned and saw clouds and mists. You need the patience of
the husbandman, who, after committing the seed to the earth, does not disturb
the soil every day to see whether it is growing... As soon as you have prepared
your substance i.e., mixed mature yellow sulphur with its crude white sulphur, put
them in a vessel and let them stand undisturbed; at the end of twenty-four hours,
the Mercury, which is attempting to rouse the latent fire of the sulphur, will begin
to effervesce and send up bubbles. But little variation of colour shall appear until
the object of the Mercury has been accomplished, and the Royal Bath prepared; at
first it is the Mercury alone that is at work. When, however, the Bath has been
made hot (i.e., the inward warmth of the gold roused) the greater part of our work
is over, and we shall be easily able to distinguish the various operations. The first
colour which appears after the silver colour of the amalgamated body, is not
perfect blackness, but only a darkish white; the blackness becomes more
pronounced day by day, until the substance assumes a brilliant black colour. This
black is a sign that the dissolution is accomplished, which does not come about in
one hour, but gradually, by a continuous process; for the Tincture which comes out
of the Sun and Moon appears black to the eyes, but is insensibly and imperceptibly
extracted. When the whole of the Tincture has been extracted from the body that
is to be dissolved, the blackness is complete. The more you digest the substance at
first, the more you subtilize the gross, and blacken the compound. There are four
principal colours, the first of which is blackness; and it is of all colours the most
tardy in making its appearance. But as soon as the highest degree of intense
blackness has been reached (there being no idle intervals in our work), that colour
begins little by little to yield to another. The time during which this blackness is
developed is very long, and so is the time during which it disappears; but it is only
for one moment that the blackness neither increases nor decreases: for things find
rest only in that which is the end of their being, but blackness is not the end of our
substance.
The advent of the blackness is like the coming of the night, which is preceded by a
long twilight-when the last ray of light has faded away, the blackness of night has
come; only our work is more tedious, and the change is, therefore, still less
perceptible.
It may be objected that the black tincture begins to be extracted as soon as the
inward heat is roused, and that, therefore, the colour which appears must be,
from the very first, an intense black. My answer is that the Tincture which is
extracted is, as a matter of fact, not black, but of a dazzling white; and that the
blackness is produced gradually, through the action of the water on the body, out
of which it draws the soul (the tincture), thus giving the body up to decomposition.
It is this putrefaction (the result of the mutual action of the Sulphur and Mercury)
which imparts to the Tincture its black colour; in itself the Tincture is brilliantly
white. How long, then, will you have to wait till perfect blackness appears?
Flamellus tells us that this intense blackness comes at the end of about forty days.
Ripley advises us to let the mingled substances remain together for six weeks, until
the conception has taken place, during which time the fire must be very gentle.
And Bernard (of Trevisa) suggests the same thing, when he says in his parable: "
The King doffs his glorious robes, and gives them to Saturn, who clothes him in a
garment of black silk, which he retains for forty days." Of course, the blackness
which is here spoken of is not equally intense all the time, as you will understand
from what has been said above.
In the course of this change from white to black, the substance naturally passes
through a variety of intermediate colours; but these colours (being more or less
accidental) are not invariably the same, and depend very much on the original
proportion in which the two substances are combined. In the second stage, during
which the substance changes from black to white, it is already far purer, the
colours are more lucid, and more to be depended upon. In the two phases there
are intermediate colours; but in the first they are more dingy and obscure than in
the second, and very much less numerous. In the progress of the substance from
blackness to whiteness (i.e., the second phase of our Magistery), the most
beautiful colours are seen in a variety such as eclipses the glory of the rainbow;
before the perfection of blackness is reached, there are also some transition
colours, such as black, azure, and yellow-and the meaning of these colours is that
your substance is not yet completely decayed; while the body is dying, the colours
are seen, until black night shrouds the whole horizon in pitchy gloom. But when
the process of resurrection begins (in the second phase) the hues are more
numerous and splendid, because the body is now beginning to be glorified, and has
become pure and spiritual.
But in what order do the colours of which we speak appear? To this question no
definite answer can be given, because in this first phase there are so much
uncertainty and variation. But the colours will be the clearer and more distinct,
the purer your water of life is. The four principal colours (white, black, white red),
always follow in the same order; but the order of the intermediate colours cannot
be so certainly determined, and you ought to be content if within the first 40 days
you get the black colour. There is only one caution you should bear in mind, in
regard to this point: if a reddish colour appears before the black (especially if the
substance begins to look dry and powdery at the same time), you may be almost
sure that you have marred your substance by too violent a fire. You should be very
careful, then, about the regulation of your fire; if the fire be just hot enough, but
not too hot, the inward chemical action of our water will do the rest.
Our Solution, then, is the reducing of our Stone to its first matter, the
manifestation of its essential liquid, and the extraction of natures from their
profundity, which is finished by bringing them into a mineral water; nor is this
operation easy: those who have tried can bear out the truth of my words.
Index Previous
The five last operations are the result of natural fire which increases and gets
stronger from day to day, purifying the putrefied substance of its dross, by
continual ascensions and descents. This process is therefore called distillation,
volatilization, ablution, imbibition, humectation of the earth, and is continued
until the dryness gradually thickens the substances, and, finally, under the
influence of coction or continued sublimation, induces fixation, the terminal point
of which is exaltation, an exaltation which is not local, from the bottom to the
surface, but qualitative, from vileness to the highest excellence.
These operations are sometimes called regimens; but there. are only two kinds of
fire, the natural and the non-natural, the latter being employed to call out the
activity of the former. Putrefaction precedes regeneration, and is caused by the
strife of the two fires. That part of the work which is subsequent to putrefaction
and conjunction, when the Sulphur and the water have become one, and also
receive congelation, is effected by the natural fire alone.
The substances are our body (commonly styled Lemnian earth) and our water (our
true rain water). Our water is the life of all things, and if you can by much toil
obtain it, you will have both silver and gold. It is the water of Saltpetre, and
outwardly resembles Mercury, while inwardly at its heart there burns purest
infernal fire. Do not be deceived with common quicksilver, but gather that Mercury
which the returning Sun, in the month of March, diffuses everywhere, till the
month of October, when it is ripe.
Know that our Mercury is before the eyes of all men, though it is known to few.
When it is prepared, its splendour is most admirable; but the sight is vouchsafed to
none, save the sons of knowledge. Do not despise it, therefore, when you see it in
sordid guise; for if you do, you will never accomplish our Magistery -- and if you
can change its countenance, the transformation will be glorious. For our water is a
most pure virgin, and is loved of many, but meets all her wooers in foul garments,
in order that she may be able to distinguish the worthy from the unworthy. Our
beautiful maiden abounds in inward hidden graces; unlike the immodest woman
who meets her lovers in splendid garments. To those who do not despise her foul
exterior, she then. appears in all her beauty, and brings them an infinite dower of
riches and health. Our Queen is pure above measure, and her splendour like that
of a celestial being -- and so indeed she is called by the Sages, who also style her
their quintessence. Her brilliancy is such as baffles imagination, and, if you would
have any idea of it, you must see it with your own eyes. Our water is serene,
crystalline, pure, and beautiful- though it can assume its true form only through
the aid of our Art. In that form it is our sea, our hidden fountain, from which gold
derives its birth by natural descent; yet it is also stronger than gold, and
overcomes it, wherefore gold is united to it, and is washed in it, and the two
together grow up into a strong hero, whom neither Pope nor Emperor can buy for a
price. Hence you should, above all things, seek this water, by means of which
(with the solitary addition of a clean and perfect body) the Stone may be
prepared.
But it requires profound study to become acquainted with all the secrets of our
sea, and with its ebb and flow. It took me 18 months, after I had discovered the
spring of our water, to find the method of making it well forth, because I did not
know the meaning of the fiery furnace of the Sages. When I discovered it, indeed,
the sight which I beheld richly rewarded me for all my pains. I was then suddenly,
as by a flash of inspiration, enabled to understand all the secret words and
enigmas of the Sages. Our water is the fire which causes both death, and, through
death, a more glorious life. Whoever discovers it has reached the autumn of his
Magistery, as Nature will then (when the pure body has been put into it) perform
all the other processes, and carry the substance onward to perfection through all
the different regimens. This water, though one, is not simple, but compounded of
two things: the vessel and the fire of the Sages. and the bond which holds the two
together. So when we speak of our vessel, and our fire, we mean by both
expressions, our water; nor is our furnace anything diverse or distinct from our
water. There is then one vessel, one furnace, one fire, and all these make up one
water. The fire digests, the vessel whitens and penetrates, the furnace is the:
bond which comprises and encloses all, and all these three are our Mercury. There
are many kinds of fire (and of water) in our Magistery, but all these only represent
different aspects of our Mercury.
There is only one thing in the whole world from which our Mercury can be
obtained. It is like gold in essence, but different in substance, and if you change
its elements you will have what you seek. Join heaven to earth in the fire of love,
and you will see in the middle of the firmament the bird of Hermes. Do not
confound the natures, but separate and re-combine them, and you will reign in
honour all your life.
In the South-west there is a high mountain (very near the Sun), one of seven, and
the second in height This mountain is of a very hot temperature (because it is not
far from the Sun), and in this mountain is enclosed a vapour or spirit, whose
services are indispensable for our work. But it does not ascend, unless it is
quickened, nor is it quickened unless you dig knee-deep on the summit of the
mountain. If you do this, a subtle exhalation (or spirit) ascends, and is congealed
by the air into drops of beautifully limpid water -- which is our water, our fire, our
vessel, and our furnace; not common Mercury, but the hot and moist liquid of most
pure Salt, which we call Mercury, because in comparison with the Sun, it is
immature and cold. If the Almighty had not created this Mercury, the
transmutation of metals would be impossible, because gold does not tinge unless it
be first tinged itself. Our Mercury is the beloved spouse of gold, and changes its
body into a purely spiritual substance; gold loves it so, that for very love he dies,
and is revived by his spouse, and she is impregnated by him, and conceives, and
bears a most beautiful royal son. The whole knowledge of our Art consists in the
discovery of this our sea; any Alchemist who is ignorant of it, is simply wasting his
money. Our sea is derived from the mountain of which I told you above. The
exhalation or white smoke which ascends there, will accomplish our whole
Magistery. There is another secret which you should know if you wish to see your
hope fulfilled, viz., how you are to dig a hole in the mountain, as its surface is
impenetrable to ordinary tools, its dryness being such that it has become harder
than a flint. But in the places of Saturn a small herb is found, called Saturnia,
whose twigs appear dry, but in whose roots there is abundance of juice. This herb
you should carefully take up with the roots, and carry with you to the foot of the
mountain, and, with the help of fire, bury it beneath the mountain; its virtue will
at once penetrate the whole mountain, and soften its earth. Then you may ascend
to the summit, easily dig a hole knee deep, and pour in so much dry and viscous
water, that it penetrates to where the herb lies buried, and makes it ascend as a
fume, which carries upward with it the spirit of the mountain. This spirit is the
strength of fire mingling with water, and dwelling in it. The spirit of Saturnia is the
whitening fume, the vapour of the mountain is fire, and all these things are fire.
Thus you obtain Saturnia, the royal plant and mineral herb, which together with
fat flesh makes such a soup as to eclipse the richest banquets in the world. Here is
an enigmatic description of our water, which should in course of time and study,
become plain to the diligent enquirer. There is the King (gold), and the water
which is the King's Bath; our water is the vessel, inasmuch as our King is enclosed
in it, and the furnace, inasmuch as our fire is enclosed in it, and our fire, inasmuch
as the virtue or spirit of the mountain dwells in it, and the woman, inasmuch as it
receives the vapour of the plant Saturnia; and as the dear friend of the Sun
penetrates, whitens, and softens it, and causes it to emit its sperm. Then the fiery
virtue which is in the water, begins to act on our body, wasting and mortifying it,
until at length the innate heat of the Sun is roused into activity. Our Stone is
called a little world, because it contains within itself the active and the passive,
the motor and the thing moved, the fixed and the volatile, the mature and the
crude -- which, being homogeneous, help and perfect each other. We have already
shewn that our object in adding matured Sulphur to crude Mercury (the same thing
in different stages of development), is to shorten and accelerate the natural
process. Gold is a hot and dry body, silver a frigid and humid one, Mercury the
means of conveying tinctures. The body of the Sun is most highly digested, that of
the Moon imperfect and immature, while Mercury is the bond by which these two
contraries are united. Join the Moon to Mercury by means of proper heat, so that
the two become one Mercury which retains its inward fire; then the Mercury will
be freed from all dross and superfluities, and it will become transparent like the
tears we shed, though not exactly perspicuous. If you then unite this purified
Mercury to gold, in which is the Moon and fire, the hot and dry will love the-cold
and humid, and they will unite on the bed of the fire of friendship; the man will
dissolve over the woman, and the woman be coagulated over the man, till the
spirit and the body become one by commixtion. Continue the same operation (let
the heaven descend to the earth) till the spirit puts on the body, and both are
fixed together. Then our Stone will have obtained its royal virtue. For Mercury is
the water of all metals, and they are digested in it. When vegetables are boiled in
ordinary water, which is naturally frigid and humid, it partakes of their qualities,
and is yet separable from them; so the pure Mercury, which is in all metals and
minerals, is perfectly separable from the dross and foreign matter which has
become mixed up with them; yet the different minerals and metals qualify the
Mercury in the same way as the water is qualified by the vegetables cooked in it.
There are these two differences between the Mercury and the water, that the
water is not coagulated and fixed with the vegetables as our water is with the
metals; and that, while the colour of common water is changed by anything boiled
in it, Mercury retains its own colour and fluxibility, though its essence is qualified.
Therefore the Mercury is effectual in the dissolution of the metal, and the metal in
the coagulation of the Mercury; and as, in the dissolution, the form and colour of
the metal is latent in the form and colour of the Mercury, so, in coagulation, the
form and colour of the Mercury is hidden in the form and colour of the metal;
neither do the qualities of the metal in dissolution prevent the fluxibility of the
Mercury, nor the qualities of Mercury in coagulation the fixity of the metal. Do you
not here observe a wonderful harmony between Mercury and the metals? For their
love is like that of mother and son, sister and brother, male and female. Hence
they are calculated mutually to perfect each other, the water imparting to the
body a spiritual and volatile nature, while the body gives to the water a corporeal
substance. The reason that the colour of Mercury is not changed in coction by the
dissolved body, is this: the earth and water in the Mercury are homogeneous, and
so well tempered that neither can be separated from the other, and they are so
well mixed that the whole substance exhibits (together with great fluxibility) so
great a consistency as entirely to conceal the colours -- and only if a part of the
Mercury is destroyed or marred by some deleterious chemical corrosive, are the
colours seen. The relations of Mercury in respect of earth and water are these: in
respect of water it is fluxible and liquid, in respect of earth it moistens nothing
but what is of the same essence with it. These hints will enable you to detect any
errors in your treatment of Mercury. Some obstruct or divide its homogeneity by
unduly drying up its water; others corrupt the earth and render it diaphanous by
disproportionate mixing. Mercury is the sperm of the metals; it contains in itself
the Sulphur by which alone it is digested (through which Nature would in course of
time have matured it into gold); nor would it be possible to convert Mercury into
gold without it. This mature Sulphur, then, is radically mixed with the Mercury,
and rapidly digests it, while itself is putrefied by the Mercury, and is revived again,
not as common, but as spiritual, penetrative, and tinging gold, which has power to
purify imperfect metals of all their dross, and to change them into its own nature.
Thus you see that none of the Mercury should be destroyed, or violently dealt
with; all you have to do is to add to it a mature body sprung from the same root,
and mix the two in their smallest parts, by mea s of our cunning conjunction
(which is performed, not by a manual, but by a purely natural process, of which
the Artist does not even understand the cause). We must distinguish, however,
between our transmutative conjunction, and a sort of conjunction practised by
sophists which is merely a fusing together of the two substances, and leaves each
exactly what it was before. In our operation the spirit of gold infuses itself into the
spirit of Mercury, and their union becomes as inseparable as that of water mixed
with water. The conjunction can take place only by means of the Moon or an
imperfect body and fire; and this Moon is the sap of the water of life, which is
hidden in Mercury, and is stirred up by fire; it is a spirit which enters the body,
and compels it to retain its soul. We speak not of common Mercury (which lacks
the spirit and fire), but of our Mercurial water -- though common Mercury may be
made like it by the addition of that which it lacks. Our conjunction is the grand
secret of our Art for earth is not inseparably united to water, but the union of
water with water is indissoluble; hence our conjunction can take place only after
dissolution, which dissolution takes place through the Moon and fire that are in the
Mercury. For the Moon penetrates and whitens, and the fire mortifies and frets,
while water combines both these properties, according to the philosophical
dictum: "The fire which I shew you, is water," and, "Unless the bodies are
subtilized by fire and water, nothing can be done in our Magistery." Thus
everything, from beginning to end, is accomplished, not by sophistical operations,
but by our Mercury, which, unless it be violently impeded, is kept to the right road
by the necessity of arriving at a certain goal.
Some Alchemists fail because they put (common) gold with Mercury in a phial over
the fire, and thus sow good seed in barren earth. But gold is not the substance of
our Stone in its whole essence, nor yet Mercury. What we want for our work of
generation is the seed of gold which is profoundly hidden in our metal. This seed
must be received into its own proper womb, and there mingle with the female
seed, in order that, being kindly fostered with heat, and fed with its proper
aliment, it may become that part of gold which is of abundant use in our work. It
is not the whole of a man that generates the infant, but only his seed, which is
rightly disposed in the proper womb; and so only the seed of gold (and not the
whole metal) is useful for our metallic generation. Gold is the Father of our Stone,
the substance of our Stone is in gold, but gold is not the substance of our Stone;
yet there is that in gold (the sperm) which, by right manipulation, may become our
Stone. We extract from gold, by a cunning process, that which is its most highly
matured virtue, and this is called, not common, dead, but our living gold. The
difference between common gold and our gold, is that which exists between a
Father and his seed; common gold is dead and useless, as far as our work is
concerned, until it emits its living seed. Take the body of gold, then, and gently
extract from it its seed, and you will have the living male seed of our Stone, which
we now no longer call gold, but ore, magnesia, lead, etc. -- because it is no longer
a body, like gold, but a chaos, or spirit, which cannot revert to its corporeal form.
Aristotle says: "The first thing you should do is to sublime the Mercury, then you
should put a pure body into the pure Mercury." The sublimation of the Mercury
which is here referred to, is not an artificial, but a true and natural one. It is the "
first preparation of the thin substance," by which the eclipse caused by the
interposition of Earth is removed from the Moon, enabling her to receive the light
of the Sun -- which happens when the murky sphere of Saturn (that overshadowed
the whole horizon) is removed, and Jupiter ascends the throne; then there rises
upward a mist of dazzling whiteness, whence there is distilled upon the earth a
pure, sweet, and fragrant dew, that softens it and stirs up great winds at its
centre; these winds bear our Stone upward, where it is endowed with heavenly
virtue, and thence descending once more to its nurse, the earth, is clothed upon
with a corporeal nature, and thus receives the strength both of things above and of
things below. This living gold is "that which is, but does not appear till it pleases
the Artist, and in the knowledge of which is the secret of all perfection." Mercury
is our field, in which the Sun rises and sets; let the two be inseparably united on
the bed of love, till from this (regenerate) Mercury there comes forth a quickening
virtue, which is able to raise the dead. Then there will appear the royal child,
whose father is the Sun, whose mother is the Moon... Besides these things, we
need, of course, a furnace of clay, a vessel of glass, and a triple fire; but we do
not call these three our vessel, our fire, or our furnace, because ordinary sophists
employ these things as well as the Sages; when we speak of our vessel, our
furnace, and our fire, the terms are to be interpreted in accordance with the
explanation which we gave above. Of this fire a Sage might well say: "Behold, the
fire, which I will shew you, is water "; - and again, "The vessel of the Sages is their
water." Another Sage says, that all our operations take place in our humid fire, in
our secret furnace, and our hidden vessel, and thereby clearly shews that there
must be a fire, vessel, and furnace, other than those which ignorant Alchemists
possess in greater perfection and abundance than we. Our appliances are part of
our substance, and are described by Sendivogius, for instance, as the "vessel of
Nature," and the "fire of Nature." This practice is followed by Flamellus, Artephius,
Lullius, and all other Sages; and I tell you that these three appliances are, after
all, only one; for the nature of our substance is one. Our fire is that which
dissolves and heats bodies more effectually than ordinary fire; hence it is called
ardent wine and a most strong fire, and the Sages bid us burn our ore with our
most strong fire -- words which are falsely interpreted of an ordinary coal fire. Of
this fire John Mehungus writes: "No artificial fire can infuse so high a degree of
heat as that which comes from heaven."